Off on a
Comet
or Hector Servadac
by Jules Verne
CHAPTER I
A CHALLENGE
Nothing, sir, can induce me to surrender my claim."
"I am sorry, count, but in such a matter your views cannot modify mine."
"But allow me to point out that my seniority unquestionably gives
me a
prior right."
"Mere seniority, I assert, in an affair of this kind, cannot
possibly
entitle you to any prior claim whatever."
"Then, captain, no alternative is left but for me to compel you
to yield
at the sword's point."
"As you please, count; but neither sword nor pistol can force
me to forego
my pretensions. Here is my card."
"And mine."
This rapid altercation was thus brought to an end by
the formal
interchange of the names of the disputants.
On one of the cards was
inscribed:
_Captain
Hector
Servadac,
Staff Officer, Mostaganem._
On the other was the
title:
_Count Wassili
Timascheff,
On board the Schooner "Dobryna."_
It did not take long to arrange that seconds should be appointed,
who
would meet in Mostaganem at two o'clock that day;
and the captain and the
count were on the point of parting
from each other, with a salute of
punctilious courtesy,
when Timascheff, as if struck by a sudden thought, said
abruptly:
"Perhaps it would be better, captain, not to allow the
real
cause of this to transpire?"
"Far better," replied Servadac; "it is undesirable in every way
for any
names to be mentioned."
"In that case, however," continued the count, "it will be
necessary to
assign an ostensible pretext of some kind.
Shall we allege a musical dispute?
a contention in which I
feel bound to defend Wagner, while you are the
zealous
champion of Rossini?"
"I am quite content," answered Servadac, with a smile;
and with another
low bow they parted.
The scene, as here depicted, took place upon the extremity of a
little
cape on the Algerian coast, between Mostaganem and Tenes,
about two miles
from the mouth of the Shelif. The headland rose
more than sixty feet
above the sea-level, and the azure waters
of the Mediterranean, as they
softly kissed the strand, were tinged
with the reddish hue of the ferriferous
rocks that formed its base.
It was the 31st of December. The noontide
sun, which usually illuminated
the various projections of the coast with a
dazzling brightness,
was hidden by a dense mass of cloud, and the fog, which
for some
unaccountable cause, had hung for the last two months over
nearly
every region in the world, causing serious interruption to
traffic
between continent and continent, spread its dreary veil
across
land and sea.
After taking leave of the staff-officer, Count Wassili Timascheff
wended
his way down to a small creek, and took his seat in the stern of a
light
four-oar that had been awaiting his return; this was immediately pushed
off
from shore, and was soon alongside a pleasure-yacht, that was lying
to,
not many cable lengths away.
At a sign from Servadac, an orderly, who had been standing at
a respectful
distance, led forward a magnificent Arabian horse;
the captain vaulted into
the saddle, and followed by his attendant,
well mounted as himself, started
off towards Mostaganem. It was
half-past twelve when the two riders
crossed the bridge that had been
recently erected over the Shelif, and a
quarter of an hour later
their steeds, flecked with foam, dashed through the
Mascara Gate,
which was one of five entrances opened in the embattled
wall
that encircled the town.
At that date, Mostaganem contained about fifteen thousand
inhabitants,
three thousand of whom were French. Besides being one of
the principal
district towns of the province of Oran, it was also a military
station.
Mostaganem rejoiced in a well-sheltered harbor, which enabled her
to
utilize all the rich products of the Mina and the Lower Shelif. It
was
the existence of so good a harbor amidst the exposed cliffs of this
coast
that had induced the owner of the _Dobryna_ to winter in these
parts,
and for two months the Russian standard had been seen floating from
her yard,
whilst on her mast-head was hoisted the pennant of the French Yacht
Club,
with the distinctive letters M. C. W. T., the initials of Count
Timascheff.
Having entered the town, Captain Servadac made his way towards
Matmore,
the military quarter, and was not long in finding two friends
on
whom he might rely--a major of the 2nd Fusileers, and a captain
of the 8th
Artillery. The two officers listened gravely enough
to Servadac's
request that they would act as his seconds in an affair
of honor, but could
not resist a smile on hearing that the dispute
between him and the count had
originated in a musical discussion.
Surely, they suggested, the matter might
be easily arranged; a few
slight concessions on either side, and all might be
amicably adjusted.
But no representations on their part were of any
avail.
Hector Servadac was inflexible.
"No concession is possible," he replied, resolutely. "Rossini
has
been deeply injured, and I cannot suffer the injury to be
unavenged.
Wagner is a fool. I shall keep my word. I am quite
firm."
"Be it so, then," replied one of the officers; "and after all,
you know, a
sword-cut need not be a very serious affair."
"Certainly not," rejoined Servadac; "and especially in my case,
when I
have not the slightest intention of being wounded at all."
Incredulous as they naturally were as to the assigned cause of the
quarrel,
Servadac's friends had no alternative but to accept his
explanation,
and without farther parley they started for the staff office,
where, at two
o'clock precisely, they were to meet the seconds of Count
Timascheff.
Two hours later they had returned. All the preliminaries
had been arranged;
the count, who like many Russians abroad was an
aide-de-camp of the Czar,
had of course proposed swords as the most
appropriate weapons, and the duel
was to take place on the following morning,
the first of January, at nine
o'clock, upon the cliff at a spot about a mile
and a half from the mouth
of the Shelif. With the assurance that they
would not fail to keep their
appointment with military punctuality, the two
officers cordially wrung
their friend's hand and retired to the Zulma Cafe
for a game at piquet.
Captain Servadac at once retraced his steps and left
the town.
For the last fortnight Servadac had not been occupying his proper
lodgings
in the military quarters; having been appointed to make a local
levy,
he had been living in a gourbi, or native hut, on the Mostaganem
coast,
between four and five miles from the Shelif. His orderly was
his
sole companion, and by any other man than the captain the enforced
exile
would have been esteemed little short of a severe penance.
On his way to the gourbi, his mental occupation was a very
laborious
effort to put together what he was pleased to call
a rondo, upon a model of
versification all but obsolete.
This rondo, it is unnecessary to conceal, was
to be an ode
addressed to a young widow by whom he had been captivated, and
whom
he was anxious to marry, and the tenor of his muse was intended
to
prove that when once a man has found an object in all respects
worthy of his
affections, he should love her "in all simplicity."
Whether the aphorism were
universally true was not very material
to the gallant captain, whose sole
ambition at present was to construct
a roundelay of which this should be the
prevailing sentiment.
He indulged the fancy that he might succeed in
producing
a composition which would have a fine effect here in
Algeria,
where poetry in that form was all but unknown.
"I know well enough," he said repeatedly to himself, "what I want to
say.
I want to tell her that I love her sincerely, and wish to
marry her;
but, confound it! the words won't rhyme. Plague on it!
Does nothing
rhyme with 'simplicity'? Ah! I have it
now:
'Lovers should,
whoe'er they be,
Love in all simplicity.'
But what next? how am I to go on? I say, Ben
Zoof," he called
aloud to his orderly, who was trotting silently close in his
rear,
"did you ever compose any poetry?"
"No, captain," answered the man promptly: "I have never made
any
verses, but I have seen them made fast enough at a booth
during the fete of
Montmartre."
"Can you remember them?"
"Remember them! to be sure I can. This is the way they began:
'Come in! come in! you'll not repent
The entrance money you have
spent;
The wondrous mirror in this place
Reveals your future sweetheart's
face.'"
"Bosh!" cried Servadac in disgust; "your verses are detestable
trash."
"As good as any others, captain, squeaked through a reed pipe."
"Hold your tongue, man," said Servadac peremptorily;
"I have made another
couplet.
'Lovers
should, whoe'er they
be,
Love in all
simplicity;
Lover, loving
honestly,
Offer
I myself to thee.'"
Beyond this, however, the captain's poetical genius was impotent to carry
him;
his farther efforts were unavailing, and when at six o'clock he
reached
the gourbi, the four lines still remained the limit of his
composition.
CHAPTER II
CAPTAIN SERVADAC AND HIS ORDERLY
At the time of which I write, there might be seen in the registers
of
the Minister of War the following entry:
SERVADAC (_Hector_), born at St. Trelody in the district of
Lesparre,
department of the Gironde, July 19th, 18--.
_Property:_ 1200 francs in rentes.
_Length of service:_ Fourteen years, three months, and five days.
_Service:_ Two years at school at St. Cyr; two years at L'Ecole
d'Application;
two years in the 8th Regiment of the Line; two years in the
3rd Light Cavalry;
seven years in Algeria.
_Campaigns:_ Soudan and Japan.
_Rank:_ Captain on the staff at Mostaganem.
_Decorations:_ Chevalier of the Legion of Honor, March 13th, 18--.
Hector Servadac was thirty years of age, an orphan without lineage
and
almost without means. Thirsting for glory rather than for
gold,
slightly scatter-brained, but warm-hearted, generous, and brave,
he
was eminently formed to be the protege of the god of battles.
For the first year and a half of his existence he had been
the
foster-child of the sturdy wife of a vine-dresser of Medoc--
a lineal
descendant of the heroes of ancient prowess; in a word,
he was one of those
individuals whom nature seems to have
predestined for remarkable things, and
around whose cradle
have hovered the fairy godmothers of adventure and good
luck.
In appearance Hector Servadac was quite the type of an officer; he was
rather
more than five feet six inches high, slim and graceful, with dark
curling
hair and mustaches, well-formed hands and feet, and a clear blue
eye.
He seemed born to please without being conscious of the power he
possessed.
It must be owned, and no one was more ready to confess it than
himself,
that his literary attainments were by no means of a high
order.
"We don't spin tops" is a favorite saying amongst artillery
officers,
indicating that they do not shirk their duty by frivolous pursuits;
but it
must be confessed that Servadac, being naturally idle, was very much
given
to "spinning tops." His good abilities, however, and his ready
intelligence
had carried him successfully through the curriculum of his early
career.
He was a good draughtsman, an excellent rider--having thoroughly
mastered
the successor to the famous "Uncle Tom" at the riding-school of St.
Cyr--
and in the records of his military service his name had several times
been
included in the order of the day.
The following episode may suffice, in a certain degree,
to illustrate his
character. Once, in action, he was
leading a detachment of infantry
through an intrenchment.
They came to a place where the side-work of the
trench had been
so riddled by shell that a portion of it had actually fallen
in,
leaving an aperture quite unsheltered from the grape-shot
that was
pouring in thick and fast. The men hesitated.
In an instant Servadac
mounted the side-work, laid himself
down in the gap, and thus filling up the
breach by his own body,
shouted, "March on!"
And through a storm of shot, not one of which touched the prostrate
officer,
the troop passed in safety.
Since leaving the military college, Servadac, with the exception
of his
two campaigns in the Soudan and Japan, had been always
stationed in
Algeria. He had now a staff appointment at Mostaganem,
and had lately
been entrusted with some topographical work
on the coast between Tenes and
the Shelif. It was a matter of
little consequence to him that the
gourbi, in which of necessity
he was quartered, was uncomfortable and
ill-contrived; he loved
the open air, and the independence of his life suited
him well.
Sometimes he would wander on foot upon the sandy shore,
and
sometimes he would enjoy a ride along the summit of the cliff;
altogether
being in no hurry at all to bring his task to an end.
His occupation,
moreover, was not so engrossing but that he could
find leisure for taking a
short railway journey once or twice
a week; so that he was ever and again
putting in an appearance
at the general's receptions at Oran, and at the
fetes given
by the governor at Algiers.
It was on one of these occasions that he had first met Madame de
L----,
the lady to whom he was desirous of dedicating the rondo, the first
four
lines of which had just seen the light. She was a colonel's
widow,
young and handsome, very reserved, not to say haughty in her
manner,
and either indifferent or impervious to the admiration which she
inspired.
Captain Servadac had not yet ventured to declare his
attachment;
of rivals he was well aware he had not a few, and amongst these
not
the least formidable was the Russian Count Timascheff. And
although
the young widow was all unconscious of the share she had in the
matter,
it was she, and she alone, who was the cause of the challenge just
given
and accepted by her two ardent admirers.
During his residence in the gourbi, Hector Servadac's sole
companion was
his orderly, Ben Zoof. Ben Zoof was devoted,
body and soul, to his
superior officer. His own personal
ambition was so entirely absorbed in
his master's welfare,
that it is certain no offer of promotion--even had it
been
that of aide-de-camp to the Governor-General of Algiers--
would have
induced him to quit that master's service.
His name might seem to imply that
he was a native of Algeria;
but such was by no means the case. His true
name was Laurent;
he was a native of Montmartre in Paris, and how or why he
had
obtained his patronymic was one of those anomalies which the
most
sagacious of etymologists would find it hard to explain.
Born on the hill of Montmartre, between the Solferino tower and the
mill
of La Galette, Ben Zoof had ever possessed the most
unreserved
admiration for his birthplace; and to his eyes the heights and
district
of Montmartre represented an epitome of all the wonders of the
world.
In all his travels, and these had been not a few, he had
never
beheld scenery which could compete with that of his native home.
No
cathedral--not even Burgos itself--could vie with the church
at
Montmartre. Its race-course could well hold its own against
that at
Pentelique; its reservoir would throw the Mediterranean
into the shade; its
forests had flourished long before the invasion
of the Celts; and its very
mill produced no ordinary flour,
but provided material for cakes of
world-wide renown.
To crown all, Montmartre boasted a mountain--a veritable
mountain;
envious tongues indeed might pronounce it little more than a
hill;
but Ben Zoof would have allowed himself to be hewn in pieces
rather
than admit that it was anything less than fifteen thousand
feet in
height.
Ben Zoof's most ambitious desire was to induce the captain to go
with him
and end his days in his much-loved home, and so incessantly
were Servadac's
ears besieged with descriptions of the unparalleled
beauties and advantages
of this eighteenth arrondissement of Paris,
that he could scarcely hear the
name of Montmartre without a conscious
thrill of aversion. Ben Zoof,
however, did not despair of ultimately
converting the captain, and meanwhile
had resolved never to leave him.
When a private in the 8th Cavalry, he had
been on the point of quitting
the army at twenty-eight years of age, but
unexpectedly he had been appointed
orderly to Captain Servadac. Side by
side they fought in two campaigns.
Servadac had saved Ben Zoof's life in
Japan; Ben Zoof had rendered
his master a like service in the Soudan.
The bond of union thus
effected could never be severed; and although Ben
Zoof's achievements
had fairly earned him the right of retirement, he firmly
declined all
honors or any pension that might part him from his superior
officer.
Two stout arms, an iron constitution, a powerful frame, and
an
indomitable courage were all loyally devoted to his master's
service,
and fairly entitled him to his _soi-disant_ designation of "The
Rampart
of Montmartre." Unlike his master, he made no pretension to any
gift of
poetic power, but his inexhaustible memory made him a living
encyclopaedia;
and for his stock of anecdotes and trooper's tales he was
matchless.
Thoroughly appreciating his servant's good qualities, Captain
Servadac
endured with imperturbable good humor those idiosyncrasies,
which
in a less faithful follower would have been intolerable,
and from time to
time he would drop a word of sympathy that served
to deepen his subordinate's
devotion.
On one occasion, when Ben Zoof had mounted his hobby-horse,
and was
indulging in high-flown praises about his beloved
eighteenth arrondissement,
the captain had remarked gravely,
"Do you know, Ben Zoof, that Montmartre
only requires a matter
of some thirteen thousand feet to make it as high as
Mont Blanc?"
Ben Zoof's eyes glistened with delight; and from that moment Hector
Servadac
and Montmartre held equal places in his affection.
CHAPTER III
INTERRUPTED EFFUSIONS
Composed of mud and loose stones, and covered with a thatch of
turf
and straw, known to the natives by the name of "driss," the
gourbi,
though a grade better than the tents of the nomad Arabs, was yet
far
inferior to any habitation built of brick or stone. It adjoined an
old
stone hostelry, previously occupied by a detachment of engineers,
and
which now afforded shelter for Ben Zoof and the two horses.
It still
contained a considerable number of tools, such as mattocks,
shovels, and
pick-axes.
Uncomfortable as was their temporary abode, Servadac and his
attendant
made no complaints; neither of them was dainty
in the matter either of board
or lodging. After dinner,
leaving his orderly to stow away the remains
of the repast
in what he was pleased to term the "cupboard of his
stomach."
Captain Servadac turned out into the open air to smoke his
pipe
upon the edge of the cliff. The shades of night were drawing
on.
An hour previously, veiled in heavy clouds, the sun had sunk
below the
horizon that bounded the plain beyond the Shelif.
The sky presented a most singular appearance. Towards the
north,
although the darkness rendered it impossible to see beyond
a
quarter of a mile, the upper strata of the atmosphere were
suffused with a
rosy glare. No well-defined fringe of light,
nor arch of luminous rays,
betokened a display of aurora borealis,
even had such a phenomenon been
possible in these latitudes;
and the most experienced meteorologist would
have been puzzled
to explain the cause of this striking illumination on this
31st
of December, the last evening of the passing year.
But Captain Servadac was no meteorologist, and it is to be
doubted
whether, since leaving school, he had ever opened his "Course
of
Cosmography." Besides, he had other thoughts to occupy his mind.
The
prospects of the morrow offered serious matter for consideration.
The captain
was actuated by no personal animosity against the count;
though rivals, the
two men regarded each other with sincere respect;
they had simply reached a
crisis in which one of them was _de trop;_
which of them, fate must
decide.
At eight o'clock, Captain Servadac re-entered the gourbi, the
single
apartment of which contained his bed, a small writing-table, and
some
trunks that served instead of cupboards. The orderly performed
his
culinary operations in the adjoining building, which he also used as
a
bed-room, and where, extended on what he called his "good oak
mattress,"
he would sleep soundly as a dormouse for twelve hours at a
stretch.
Ben Zoof had not yet received his orders to retire, and
ensconcing
himself in a corner of the gourbi, he endeavored to doze--a
task
which the unusual agitation of his master rendered somewhat
difficult.
Captain Servadac was evidently in no hurry to betake himself to
rest,
but seating himself at his table, with a pair of compasses and a
sheet
of tracing-paper, he began to draw, with red and blue crayons,
a
variety of colored lines, which could hardly be supposed to have
much
connection with a topographical survey. In truth, his character
of
staff-officer was now entirely absorbed in that of Gascon poet.
Whether he
imagined that the compasses would bestow upon his verses
the measure of a
mathematical accuracy, or whether he fancied
that the parti-colored lines
would lend variety to his rhythm,
it is impossible to determine; be that as
it may, he was devoting
all his energies to the compilation of his rondo, and
supremely
difficult he found the task.
"Hang it!" he ejaculated, "whatever induced me to choose this meter?
It is
as hard to find rhymes as to rally fugitive in a battle.
But, by all the
powers! it shan't be said that a French officer
cannot cope with a piece of
poetry. One battalion has fought--
now for the rest!"
Perseverance had its reward. Presently two lines, one red, the other
blue,
appeared upon the paper, and the captain
murmured:
"Words, mere
words, cannot
avail,
Telling
true heart's tender tale."
"What on earth ails my master?" muttered Ben Zoof; "for the last hour he
has
been as fidgety as a bird returning after its winter migration."
Servadac suddenly started from his seat, and as he paced the room
with all
the frenzy of poetic inspiration, read
out:
"Empty words
cannot convey
All a lover's heart would say."
"Well, to be sure, he is at his everlasting verses again!"
said Ben Zoof
to himself, as he roused himself in his corner.
"Impossible to sleep in such
a noise;" and he gave vent
to a loud groan.
"How now, Ben Zoof?" said the captain sharply. "What ails you?"
"Nothing, sir, only the nightmare."
"Curse the fellow, he has quite interrupted me!" ejaculated the
captain.
"Ben Zoof!" he called aloud.
"Here, sir!" was the prompt reply; and in an instant the orderly was
upon
his feet, standing in a military attitude, one hand to his
forehead,
the other closely pressed to his trouser-seam.
"Stay where you are! don't move an inch!" shouted Servadac; "I have
just
thought of the end of my rondo." And in a voice of
inspiration,
accompanying his words with dramatic gestures, Servadac began to
declaim:
"Listen, lady, to my vows --
O, consent to be my spouse;
Constant
ever I will be,
Constant . . . ."
No closing lines were uttered. All at once, with unutterable
violence,
the captain and his orderly were dashed, face downwards, to the
ground.
CHAPTER IV
A CONVULSION OF NATURE
Whence came it that at that very moment the horizon underwent so
strange
and sudden a modification, that the eye of the most practiced
mariner
could not distinguish between sea and sky?
Whence came it that the billows raged and rose to a height
hitherto
unregistered in the records of science?
Whence came it that the elements united in one deafening crash;
that the
earth groaned as though the whole framework of the globe
were ruptured; that
the waters roared from their innermost depths;
that the air shrieked with all
the fury of a cyclone?
Whence came it that a radiance, intenser than the effulgence
of the
Northern Lights, overspread the firmament, and momentarily
dimmed the
splendor of the brightest stars?
Whence came it that the Mediterranean, one instant emptied of its
waters,
was the next flooded with a foaming surge?
Whence came it that in the space of a few seconds the moon's disc
reached
a magnitude as though it were but a tenth part of its ordinary
distance
from the earth?
Whence came it that a new blazing spheroid, hitherto unknown to
astronomy,
now appeared suddenly in the firmament, though it were but to lose
itself
immediately behind masses of accumulated cloud?
What phenomenon was this that had produced a cataclysm so tremendous
in
effect upon earth, sky, and sea?
Was it possible that a single human being could have survived
the
convulsion? and if so, could he explain its mystery?
CHAPTER V
A MYSTERIOUS SEA
Violent as the commotion had been, that portion of the Algerian
coast
which is bounded on the north by the Mediterranean, and on the
west
by the right bank of the Shelif, appeared to have suffered little
change.
It is true that indentations were perceptible in the fertile
plain,
and the surface of the sea was ruffled with an agitation that
was
quite unusual; but the rugged outline of the cliff was the same
as
heretofore, and the aspect of the entire scene appeared unaltered.
The stone
hostelry, with the exception of some deep clefts in its walls,
had sustained
little injury; but the gourbi, like a house of cards
destroyed by an infant's
breath, had completely subsided, and its two
inmates lay motionless, buried
under the sunken thatch.
It was two hours after the catastrophe that Captain Servadac
regained
consciousness; he had some trouble to collect his thoughts,
and the first
sounds that escaped his lips were the concluding
words of the rondo which had
been so ruthlessly
interrupted;
"Constant
ever I will be,
Constant . . . ."
His next thought was to wonder what had happened; and in order to find
an
answer, he pushed aside the broken thatch, so that his head appeared
above
the _debris_. "The gourbi leveled to the ground!" he exclaimed,
"surely
a waterspout has passed along the coast."
He felt all over his body to perceive what injuries he had sustained,
but
not a sprain nor a scratch could he discover. "Where are you,
Ben
Zoof?" he shouted.
"Here, sir!" and with military promptitude a second head protruded
from
the rubbish.
"Have you any notion what has happened, Ben Zoof?"
"I've a notion, captain, that it's all up with us."
"Nonsense, Ben Zoof; it is nothing but a waterspout!"
"Very good, sir," was the philosophical reply, immediately followed
by the
query, "Any bones broken, sir?"
"None whatever," said the captain.
Both men were soon on their feet, and began to make a vigorous
clearance
of the ruins, beneath which they found that their arms, cooking
utensils,
and other property, had sustained little injury.
"By-the-by, what o'clock is it?" asked the captain.
"It must be eight o'clock, at least," said Ben Zoof, looking at
the sun,
which was a considerable height above the horizon.
"It is almost time for us
to start."
"To start! what for?"
"To keep your appointment with Count Timascheff."
"By Jove! I had forgotten all about it!" exclaimed Servadac. Then
looking
at his watch, he cried, "What are you thinking of, Ben Zoof? It
is
scarcely two o'clock."
"Two in the morning, or two in the afternoon?" asked Ben Zoof,
again
regarding the sun.
Servadac raised his watch to his ear. "It is going," said he; "but, by
all
the wines of Medoc, I am puzzled. Don't you see the sun is in the
west?
It must be near setting."
"Setting, captain! Why, it is rising finely, like a conscript at the
sound
of the reveille. It is considerably higher since we have been
talking."
Incredible as it might appear, the fact was undeniable that the sun
was
rising over the Shelif from that quarter of the horizon behind
which it
usually sank for the latter portion of its daily round.
They were utterly
bewildered. Some mysterious phenomenon must not
only have altered the
position of the sun in the sidereal system,
but must even have brought about
an important modification of the earth's
rotation on her axis.
Captain Servadac consoled himself with the prospect of reading
an
explanation of the mystery in next week's newspapers, and turned
his
attention to what was to him of more immediate importance.
"Come, let us be
off," said he to his orderly; "though heaven
and earth be topsy-turvy, I must
be at my post this morning."
"To do Count Timascheff the honor of running him through the body,"
added
Ben Zoof.
If Servadac and his orderly had been less preoccupied, they would
have
noticed that a variety of other physical changes besides
the apparent
alteration in the movement of the sun had been evolved
during the atmospheric
disturbances of that New Year's night.
As they descended the steep footpath
leading from the cliff towards
the Shelif, they were unconscious that their
respiration became
forced and rapid, like that of a mountaineer when he has
reached
an altitude where the air has become less charged with
oxygen.
They were also unconscious that their voices were thin and
feeble;
either they must themselves have become rather deaf, or it was
evident
that the air had become less capable of transmitting sound.
The weather, which on the previous evening had been very foggy,
had
entirely changed. The sky had assumed a singular tint, and was
soon
covered with lowering clouds that completely hid the sun.
There were, indeed,
all the signs of a coming storm, but the vapor,
on account of the
insufficient condensation, failed to fall.
The sea appeared quite deserted, a most unusual circumstance along this
coast,
and not a sail nor a trail of smoke broke the gray monotony of water
and sky.
The limits of the horizon, too, had become much circumscribed.
On
land, as well as on sea, the remote distance had completely disappeared,
and
it seemed as though the globe had assumed a more decided convexity.
At the pace at which they were walking, it was very evident that the
captain
and his attendant would not take long to accomplish the three miles
that lay
between the gourbi and the place of rendezvous. They did not
exchange a word,
but each was conscious of an unusual buoyancy, which
appeared to lift up their
bodies and give as it were, wings to their
feet. If Ben Zoof had expressed
his sensations in words, he would have
said that he felt "up to anything,"
and he had even forgotten to taste so
much as a crust of bread, a lapse
of memory of which the worthy soldier was
rarely guilty.
As these thoughts were crossing his mind, a harsh bark was heard to
the
left of the footpath, and a jackal was seen emerging from a large
grove of
lentisks. Regarding the two wayfarers with manifest uneasiness,
the
beast took up its position at the foot of a rock, more than thirty
feet in
height. It belonged to an African species distinguished
by a black
spotted skin, and a black line down the front of the legs.
At night-time,
when they scour the country in herds, the creatures are
somewhat formidable,
but singly they are no more dangerous than a dog.
Though by no means afraid
of them, Ben Zoof had a particular aversion
to jackals, perhaps because they
had no place among the fauna of his
beloved Montmartre. He accordingly
began to make threatening gestures,
when, to the unmitigated astonishment of
himself and the captain,
the animal darted forward, and in one single bound
gained the summit
of the rock.
"Good Heavens!" cried Ben Zoof, "that leap must have been thirty
feet at
least."
"True enough," replied the captain; "I never saw such a jump."
Meantime the jackal had seated itself upon its haunches,
and was staring
at the two men with an air of impudent defiance.
This was too much for Ben
Zoof's forbearance, and stooping down
he caught up a huge stone, when to his
surprise, he found that it was
no heavier than a piece of petrified
sponge. "Confound the brute!"
he exclaimed, "I might as well throw a
piece of bread at him.
What accounts for its being as light as this?"
Nothing daunted, however, he hurled the stone into the air.
It missed its
aim; but the jackal, deeming it on the whole
prudent to decamp, disappeared
across the trees and hedges
with a series of bounds, which could only be
likened
to those that might be made by an india-rubber kangaroo.
Ben Zoof
was sure that his own powers of propelling must equal
those of a howitzer,
for his stone, after a lengthened flight
through the air, fell to the ground
full five hundred paces
the other side of the rock.
The orderly was now some yards ahead of his master, and had
reached a
ditch full of water, and about ten feet wide.
With the intention of clearing
it, he made a spring,
when a loud cry burst from Servadac. "Ben Zoof,
you idiot!
What are you about? You will break your back!"
And well might he be alarmed, for Ben Zoof had sprung to a height of
forty
feet into the air. Fearful of the consequences that would attend
the
descent of his servant to _terra firma_, Servadac bounded forwards,
to be on
the other side of the ditch in time to break his fall.
But the muscular
effort that he made carried him in his turn
to an altitude of thirty feet; in
his ascent he passed Ben Zoof,
who had already commenced his downward course;
and then, obedient to
the laws of gravitation, he descended with increasing
rapidity,
and alighted upon the earth without experiencing a shock
greater
than if he had merely made a bound of four or five feet high.
Ben Zoof burst into a roar of laughter. "Bravo!" he said,
"we should
make a good pair of clowns."
But the captain was inclined to take a more serious view of the
matter.
For a few seconds he stood lost in thought, then said
solemnly,
"Ben Zoof, I must be dreaming. Pinch me hard; I must be
either
asleep or mad."
"It is very certain that something has happened to us,"
said Ben
Zoof. "I have occasionally dreamed that I was a swallow
flying over the
Montmartre, but I never experienced anything
of this kind before; it must be
peculiar to the coast of Algeria."
Servadac was stupefied; he felt instinctively that he was not
dreaming,
and yet was powerless to solve the mystery. He was not,
however,
the man to puzzle himself for long over any insoluble
problem.
"Come what may," he presently exclaimed, "we will make up our
minds
for the future to be surprised at nothing."
"Right, captain," replied Ben Zoof; "and, first of all,
let us settle our
little score with Count Timascheff."
Beyond the ditch lay a small piece of meadow land, about an acre
in
extent. A soft and delicious herbage carpeted the soil,
whilst trees
formed a charming framework to the whole.
No spot could have been chosen more
suitable for the meeting
between the two adversaries.
Servadac cast a hasty glance round. No one was in sight.
"We are the
first on the field," he said.
"Not so sure of that, sir," said Ben Zoof.
"What do you mean?" asked Servadac, looking at his watch, which he had
set
as nearly as possible by the sun before leaving the gourbi;
"it is not nine
o'clock yet."
"Look up there, sir. I am much mistaken if that is not the sun;"
and
as Ben Zoof spoke, he pointed directly overhead to where a faint
white disc
was dimly visible through the haze of clouds.
"Nonsense!" exclaimed Servadac. "How can the sun be in the
zenith,
in the month of January, in lat. 39 degrees N.?"
"Can't say, sir. I only know the sun is there; and at the rate
he
has been traveling, I would lay my cap to a dish of couscous
that in less
than three hours he will have set."
Hector Servadac, mute and motionless, stood with folded arms.
Presently he
roused himself, and began to look about again.
"What means all this?" he
murmured. "Laws of gravity disturbed!
Points of the compass
reversed! The length of day reduced one half!
Surely this will
indefinitely postpone my meeting with the count.
Something has happened; Ben
Zoof and I cannot both be mad!"
The orderly, meantime, surveyed his master with the greatest
equanimity;
no phenomenon, however extraordinary, would have drawn from
him
a single exclamation of surprise. "Do you see anyone, Ben
Zoof?"
asked the captain, at last.
"No one, sir; the count has evidently been and gone." "But
supposing
that to be the case," persisted the captain, "my seconds
would
have waited, and not seeing me, would have come on towards the
gourbi.
I can only conclude that they have been unable to get here;
and as
for Count Timascheff--"
Without finishing his sentence. Captain Servadac, thinking it
just
probable that the count, as on the previous evening, might come
by water,
walked to the ridge of rock that overhung the shore,
in order to ascertain if
the _Dobryna_ were anywhere in sight.
But the sea was deserted, and for the
first time the captain
noticed that, although the wind was calm, the waters
were unusually
agitated, and seethed and foamed as though they were
boiling.
It was very certain that the yacht would have found a
difficulty
in holding her own in such a swell. Another thing that now
struck
Servadac was the extraordinary contraction of the horizon.
Under
ordinary circumstances, his elevated position would have allowed
him a radius
of vision at least five and twenty miles in length;
but the terrestrial
sphere seemed, in the course of the last few hours,
to have become
considerably reduced in volume, and he could now see
for a distance of only
six miles in every direction.
Meantime, with the agility of a monkey, Ben Zoof had clambered to the
top
of a eucalyptus, and from his lofty perch was surveying the country
to
the south, as well as towards both Tenes and Mostaganem. On
descending,
be informed the captain that the plain was deserted.
"We will make our way to the river, and get over into Mostaganem,"
said
the captain.
The Shelif was not more than a mile and a half from the meadow, but no
time
was to be lost if the two men were to reach the town before
nightfall.
Though still hidden by heavy clouds, the sun was evidently
declining fast;
and what was equally inexplicable, it was not following the
oblique curve
that in these latitudes and at this time of year might be
expected,
but was sinking perpendicularly on to the horizon.
As he went along, Captain Servadac pondered deeply.
Perchance some
unheard-of phenomenon had modified the rotary
motion of the globe; or perhaps
the Algerian coast had been
transported beyond the equator into the southern
hemisphere.
Yet the earth, with the exception of the alteration in its
convexity,
in this part of Africa at least, seemed to have undergone no
change
of any very great importance. As far as the eye could
reach,
the shore was, as it had ever been, a succession of cliffs,
beach,
and arid rocks, tinged with a red ferruginous hue.
To the south--if south, in
this inverted order of things, it might
still be called--the face of the
country also appeared unaltered,
and some leagues away, the peaks of the
Merdeyah mountains
still retained their accustomed outline.
Presently a rift in the clouds gave passage to an oblique ray of
light
that clearly proved that the sun was setting in the east.
"Well, I am curious to know what they think of all this at
Mostaganem,"
said the captain. "I wonder, too, what the Minister of War
will
say when he receives a telegram informing him that his African
colony
has become, not morally, but physically disorganized;
that the cardinal
points are at variance with ordinary rules,
and that the sun in the month of
January is shining down vertically
upon our heads."
Ben Zoof, whose ideas of discipline were extremely rigid, at once
suggested
that the colony should be put under the surveillance of the
police,
that the cardinal points should be placed under restraint, and that
the sun
should be shot for breach of discipline.
Meantime, they were both advancing with the utmost speed.
The
decompression of the atmosphere made the specific gravity of their
bodies
extraordinarily light, and they ran like hares and leaped
like chamois.
Leaving the devious windings of the footpath, they went
as a crow would fly
across the country. Hedges, trees, and streams
were cleared at a bound,
and under these conditions Ben Zoof felt
that he could have overstepped
Montmartre at a single stride.
The earth seemed as elastic as the springboard
of an acrobat;
they scarcely touched it with their feet, and their only fear
was
lest the height to which they were propelled would consume the
time
which they were saving by their short cut across the fields.
It was not long before their wild career brought them to the right bank
of
the Shelif. Here they were compelled to stop, for not only had
the
bridge completely disappeared, but the river itself no longer existed.
Of the
left bank there was not the slightest trace, and the right bank,
which on the
previous evening had bounded the yellow stream, as it murmured
peacefully
along the fertile plain, had now become the shore of a tumultuous
ocean, its
azure waters extending westwards far as the eye could reach,
and annihilating
the tract of country which had hitherto formed the district
of
Mostaganem. The shore coincided exactly with what had been the
right
bank of the Shelif, and in a slightly curved line ran north and
south,
whilst the adjacent groves and meadows all retained their previous
positions.
But the river-bank had become the shore of an unknown sea.
Eager to throw some light upon the mystery, Servadac hurriedly made
his
way through the oleander bushes that overhung the shore, took up
some water
in the hollow of his hand, and carried it to his lips.
"Salt as brine!" he
exclaimed, as soon as he had tasted it.
"The sea has undoubtedly swallowed up
all the western part of Algeria."
"It will not last long, sir," said Ben Zoof. "It is, probably,
only
a severe flood."
The captain shook his head. "Worse than that, I fear, Ben Zoof," he
replied
with emotion. "It is a catastrophe that may have very serious
consequences.
What can have become of all my friends and
fellow-officers?"
Ben Zoof was silent. Rarely had he seen his master so much
agitated;
and though himself inclined to receive these phenomena
with
philosophic indifference, his notions of military duty caused
his
countenance to reflect the captain's expression of amazement.
But there was little time for Servadac to examine the changes which a
few
hours had wrought. The sun had already reached the eastern
horizon,
and just as though it were crossing the ecliptic under the
tropics,
it sank like a cannon ball into the sea. Without any
warning,
day gave place to night, and earth, sea, and sky were
immediately
wrapped in profound obscurity.
CHAPTER VI
THE CAPTAIN MAKES AN EXPLORATION
Hector Servadac was not the man to remain long unnerved by
any
untoward event. It was part of his character to discover the
why
and the wherefore of everything that came under his observation,
and
he would have faced a cannon ball the more unflinchingly
from understanding
the dynamic force by which it was propelled.
Such being his temperament, it
may well be imagined that he was
anxious not to remain long in ignorance of
the cause of the phenomena
which had been so startling in their
consequences.
"We must inquire into this to-morrow," he exclaimed, as darkness
fell
suddenly upon him. Then, after a pause, he added:
"That is to say, if
there is to be a to-morrow; for if I were
to be put to the torture, I could
not tell what has become
of the sun."
"May I ask, sir, what we are to do now?" put in Ben Zoof.
"Stay where we are for the present; and when daylight appears--
if it ever
does appear--we will explore the coast to the west and south,
and return to
the gourbi. If we can find out nothing else,
we must at least discover
where we are."
"Meanwhile, sir, may we go to sleep?"
"Certainly, if you like, and if you can."
Nothing loath to avail himself of his master's permission, Ben
Zoof
crouched down in an angle of the shore, threw his arms over his
eyes,
and very soon slept the sleep of the ignorant, which is often
sounder
than the sleep of the just. Overwhelmed by the questions that
crowded
upon his brain, Captain Servadac could only wander up and down the
shore.
Again and again he asked himself what the catastrophe could
portend.
Had the towns of Algiers, Oran, and Mostaganem escaped the
inundation?
Could he bring himself to believe that all the inhabitants, his
friends,
and comrades had perished; or was it not more probable that the
Mediterranean
had merely invaded the region of the mouth of the Shelif?
But this
supposition did not in the least explain the other physical
disturbances.
Another hypothesis that presented itself to his mind was that
the African
coast might have been suddenly transported to the equatorial
zone.
But although this might get over the difficulty of the altered
altitude
of the sun and the absence of twilight, yet it would neither
account
for the sun setting in the east, nor for the length of the day
being
reduced to six hours.
"We must wait till to-morrow," he repeated; adding, for he had
become
distrustful of the future, "that is to say, if to-morrow ever
comes."
Although not very learned in astronomy, Servadac was acquainted
with the
position of the principal constellations. It was
therefore a
considerable disappointment to him that, in consequence
of the heavy clouds,
not a star was visible in the firmament.
To have ascertained that the
pole-star had become displaced
would have been an undeniable proof that the
earth was revolving
on a new axis; but not a rift appeared in the lowering
clouds,
which seemed to threaten torrents of rain.
It happened that the moon was new on that very day; naturally,
therefore,
it would have set at the same time as the sun. What, then,
was the captain's
bewilderment when, after he had been walking for about an
hour and a half,
he noticed on the western horizon a strong glare that
penetrated even
the masses of the clouds.
"The moon in the west!" he cried aloud; but suddenly bethinking
himself,
he added: "But no, that cannot be the moon; unless she had
shifted very much
nearer the earth, she could never give a light as intense
as this."
As he spoke the screen of vapor was illuminated to such a degree
that the
whole country was as it were bathed in twilight.
"What can this be?"
soliloquized the captain. "It cannot be the sun,
for the sun set in the
east only an hour and a half ago.
Would that those clouds would disclose what
enormous luminary lies
behind them! What a fool I was not to have
learnt more astronomy!
Perhaps, after all, I am racking my brain over
something that is
quite in the ordinary course of nature."
But, reason as he might, the mysteries of the heavens still
remained
impenetrable. For about an hour some luminous body,
its disc evidently
of gigantic dimensions, shed its rays upon
the upper strata of the clouds;
then, marvelous to relate,
instead of obeying the ordinary laws of celestial
mechanism,
and descending upon the opposite horizon, it seemed to
retreat
farther off, grew dimmer, and vanished.
The darkness that returned to the face of the earth was not more
profound
than the gloom which fell upon the captain's soul.
Everything was
incomprehensible. The simplest mechanical rules
seemed falsified; the
planets had defied the laws of gravitation;
the motions of the celestial
spheres were erroneous as those of a
watch with a defective mainspring, and
there was reason to fear
that the sun would never again shed his radiance
upon the earth.
But these last fears were groundless. In three hours' time, without
any
intervening twilight, the morning sun made its appearance in
the west,
and day once more had dawned. On consulting his watch,
Servadac found
that night had lasted precisely six hours.
Ben Zoof, who was unaccustomed to
so brief a period of repose,
was still slumbering soundly.
"Come, wake up!" said Servadac, shaking him by the shoulder;
"it is time
to start."
"Time to start?" exclaimed Ben Zoof, rubbing his eyes.
"I feel as if I had
only just gone to sleep."
"You have slept all night, at any rate," replied the captain;
"it has only
been for six hours, but you must make it enough."
"Enough it shall be, sir," was the submissive rejoinder.
"And now," continued Servadac, "we will take the shortest way back
to the
gourbi, and see what our horses think about it all."
"They will think that they ought to be groomed," said the orderly.
"Very good; you may groom them and saddle them as quickly as you like.
I
want to know what has become of the rest of Algeria:
if we cannot get round
by the south to Mostaganem, we must
go eastwards to Tenes." And
forthwith they started.
Beginning to feel hungry, they had no hesitation in
gathering
figs, dates, and oranges from the plantations that formed
a
continuous rich and luxuriant orchard along their path.
The district was
quite deserted, and they had no reason to fear
any legal penalty.
In an hour and a half they reached the gourbi.
Everything was just as they
had left it, and it was evident
that no one had visited the place during
their absence.
All was desolate as the shore they had quitted.
The preparations for the expedition were brief and simple.
Ben Zoof
saddled the horses and filled his pouch with biscuits
and game; water, he
felt certain, could be obtained in abundance
from the numerous affluents of
the Shelif, which, although they
had now become tributaries of the
Mediterranean, still meandered
through the plain. Captain Servadac
mounted his horse Zephyr,
and Ben Zoof simultaneously got astride his mare
Galette,
named after the mill of Montmartre. They galloped off
in
the direction of the Shelif, and were not long in discovering
that the
diminution in the pressure of the atmosphere had precisely
the same effect
upon their horses as it had had upon themselves.
Their muscular strength
seemed five times as great as hitherto;
their hoofs scarcely touched the
ground, and they seemed
transformed from ordinary quadrupeds into veritable
hippogriffs.
Happily, Servadac and his orderly were fearless riders;
they
made no attempt to curb their steeds, but even urged them
to still greater
exertions. Twenty minutes sufficed to carry them
over the four or five
miles that intervened between the gourbi
and the mouth of the Shelif; then,
slackening their speed,
they proceeded at a more leisurely pace to the
southeast, along what
had once been the right bank of the river, but which,
although it
still retained its former characteristics, was now the
boundary
of a sea, which extending farther than the limits of the
horizon,
must have swallowed up at least a large portion of the
province
of Oran. Captain Servadac knew the country well; he had at
one
time been engaged upon a trigo-nometrical survey of the district,
and
consequently had an accurate knowledge of its topography.
His idea now was to
draw up a report of his investigations:
to whom that report should be
delivered was a problem he had
yet to solve.
During the four hours of daylight that still remained,
the travelers rode
about twenty-one miles from the river mouth.
To their vast surprise, they did
not meet a single human being.
At nightfall they again encamped in a slight
bend of the shore,
at a point which on the previous evening had faced the
mouth
of the Mina, one of the left-hand affluents of the Shelif,
but now
absorbed into the newly revealed ocean. Ben Zoof made
the sleeping
accommodation as comfortable as the circumstances
would allow; the horses
were clogged and turned out to feed
upon the rich pasture that clothed the
shore, and the night
passed without special incident.
At sunrise on the following morning, the 2nd of January, or
what,
according to the ordinary calendar, would have been the night of the
1st,
the captain and his orderly remounted their horses, and during
the
six-hours' day accomplished a distance of forty-two miles.
The right bank of
the river still continued to be the margin
of the land, and only in one spot
had its integrity been impaired.
This was about twelve miles from the Mina,
and on the site of the annex
or suburb of Surkelmittoo. Here a large
portion of the bank had been
swept away, and the hamlet, with its eight
hundred inhabitants,
had no doubt been swallowed up by the encroaching
waters.
It seemed, therefore, more than probable that a similar fate
had
overtaken the larger towns beyond the Shelif.
In the evening the explorers encamped, as previously, in a nook
of the
shore which here abruptly terminated their new domain,
not far from where
they might have expected to find the important
village of Memounturroy; but
of this, too, there was now no trace.
"I had quite reckoned upon a supper and
a bed at Orleansville to-night,"
said Servadac, as, full of despondency, he
surveyed the waste of water.
"Quite impossible," replied Ben Zoof, "except you had gone by a boat.
But
cheer up, sir, cheer up; we will soon devise some means for getting
across to
Mostaganem."
"If, as I hope," rejoined the captain, "we are on a peninsula,
we are more
likely to get to Tenes; there we shall hear the news."
"Far more likely to carry the news ourselves," answered Ben Zoof,
as he
threw himself down for his night's rest.
Six hours later, only waiting for sunrise, Captain Servadac
set himself in
movement again to renew his investigations.
At this spot the shore, that
hitherto had been running
in a southeasterly direction, turned abruptly to
the north,
being no longer formed by the natural bank of the Shelif,
but
consisting of an absolutely new coast-line. No land was in sight.
Nothing
could be seen of Orleansville, which ought to have been
about six miles to
the southwest; and Ben Zoof, who had mounted
the highest point of view
attainable, could distinguish sea,
and nothing but sea, to the farthest
horizon.
Quitting their encampment and riding on, the bewildered explorers
kept
close to the new shore. This, since it had ceased to be formed
by the
original river bank, had considerably altered its aspect.
Frequent landslips
occurred, and in many places deep chasms rifted
the ground; great gaps
furrowed the fields, and trees, half uprooted,
overhung the water, remarkable
by the fantastic distortions of their
gnarled trunks, looking as though they
had been chopped by a hatchet.
The sinuosities of the coast line, alternately gully and headland,
had the
effect of making a devious progress for the travelers,
and at sunset,
although they had accomplished more than twenty miles,
they had only just
arrived at the foot of the Merdeyah Mountains,
which, before the cataclysm,
had formed the extremity of the chain
of the Little Atlas. The ridge,
however, had been violently ruptured,
and now rose perpendicularly from the
water.
On the following morning Servadac and Ben Zoof traversed one of
the
mountain gorges; and next, in order to make a more thorough
acquaintance
with the limits and condition of the section of Algerian
territory
of which they seemed to be left as the sole occupants, they
dismounted,
and proceeded on foot to the summit of one of the highest
peaks.
From this elevation they ascertained that from the base of the
Merdeyah
to the Mediterranean, a distance of about eighteen miles, a new
coast
line had come into existence; no land was visible in any
direction;
no isthmus existed to form a connecting link with the territory of
Tenes,
which had entirely disappeared. The result was that Captain
Servadac
was driven to the irresistible conclusion that the tract of land
which
he had been surveying was not, as he had at first imagined, a
peninsula;
it was actually an island.
Strictly speaking, this island was quadrilateral, but the sides
were so
irregular that it was much more nearly a triangle,
the comparison of the
sides exhibiting these proportions:
The section of the right bank of the
Shelif, seventy-two miles;
the southern boundary from the Shelif to the chain
of the Little Atlas,
twenty-one miles; from the Little Atlas to the
Mediterranean,
eighteen miles; and sixty miles of the shore of the
Mediterranean itself,
making in all an entire circumference of about 171
miles.
"What does it all mean?" exclaimed the captain, every hour growing
more
and more bewildered.
"The will of Providence, and we must submit," replied Ben Zoof,
calm and
undisturbed. With this reflection, the two men
silently descended the
mountain and remounted their horses.
Before evening they had reached the
Mediterranean. On their road
they failed to discern a vestige of the
little town of Montenotte;
like Tenes, of which not so much as a ruined
cottage was visible
on the horizon, it seemed to be annihilated.
On the following day, the 6th of January, the two men made
a forced march
along the coast of the Mediterranean, which they
found less altered than the
captain had at first supposed;
but four villages had entirely disappeared,
and the headlands,
unable to resist the shock of the convulsion, had been
detached
from the mainland.
The circuit of the island had been now completed, and the explorers,
after
a period of sixty hours, found themselves once more beside
the ruins of their
gourbi. Five days, or what, according to the
established order of
things, would have been two days and a half,
had been occupied in tracing the
boundaries of their new domain;
and they had ascertained beyond a doubt that
they were the sole
human inhabitants left upon the island.
"Well, sir, here you are, Governor General of Algeria!" exclaimed Ben
Zoof,
as they reached the gourbi.
"With not a soul to govern," gloomily rejoined the captain.
"How so? Do you not reckon me?"
"Pshaw! Ben Zoof, what are you?"
"What am I? Why, I am the population."
The captain deigned no reply, but, muttering some expressions
of regret
for the fruitless trouble he had taken about his rondo,
betook himself to
rest.
CHAPTER VII
BEN ZOOF WATCHES IN VAIN
In a few minutes the governor general and his population were
asleep.
The gourbi being in ruins, they were obliged to put up with
the
best accommodation they could find in the adjacent erection.
It must be owned
that the captain's slumbers were by no means sound;
he was agitated by the
consciousness that he had hitherto been unable
to account for his strange
experiences by any reasonable theory.
Though far from being advanced in the
knowledge of natural
philosophy, he had been instructed, to a certain degree,
in its
elementary principles; and, by an effort of memory, he managed
to
recall some general laws which he had almost forgotten.
He could understand
that an altered inclination of the earth's axis
with regard to the ecliptic
would introduce a change of position
in the cardinal points, and bring about
a displacement of the sea;
but the hypothesis entirely failed to account,
either for the shortening
of the days, or for the diminution in the pressure
of the atmosphere.
He felt that his judgment was utterly baffled; his only
remaining
hope was that the chain of marvels was not yet complete, and
that
something farther might throw some light upon the mystery.
Ben Zoof's first care on the following morning was to provide
a good
breakfast. To use his own phrase, he was as hungry
as the whole
population of three million Algerians, of whom
he was the representative, and
he must have enough to eat.
The catastrophe which had overwhelmed the country
had left
a dozen eggs uninjured, and upon these, with a good dish of
his
famous couscous, he hoped that he and his master might have
a
sufficiently substantial meal. The stove was ready for use,
the copper
skillet was as bright as hands could make it,
and the beads of condensed
steam upon the surface of a large
stone al-caraza gave evidence that it was
supplied with water.
Ben Zoof at once lighted a fire, singing all the
time,
according to his wont, a snatch of an old military refrain.
Ever on the lookout for fresh phenomena, Captain Servadac
watched the
preparations with a curious eye. It struck him
that perhaps the air, in
its strangely modified condition,
would fail to supply sufficient oxygen, and
that.
the stove, in consequence, might not fulfill its function.
But no;
the fire was lighted just as usual, and fanned into
vigor by Ben Zoof
applying his mouth in lieu of bellows,
and a bright flame started up from the
midst of the twigs and coal.
The skillet was duly set upon the stove, and Ben
Zoof
was prepared to wait awhile for the water to boil.
Taking up the
eggs, he was surprised to notice that they hardly
weighed more than they
would if they had been mere shells;
but he was still more surprised when he
saw that before the water
had been two minutes over the fire it was at full
boil.
"By jingo!" he exclaimed, "a precious hot fire!"
Servadac reflected. "It cannot be that the fire is hotter,"
he said,
"the peculiarity must be in the water." And taking
down a centigrade
thermometer, which hung upon the wall,
he plunged it into the skillet.
Instead of 100 degrees,
the instrument registered only 66 degrees.
"Take my advice, Ben Zoof," he said; "leave your eggs in the saucepan
a
good quarter of an hour."
"Boil them hard! That will never do," objected the orderly.
"You will not find them hard, my good fellow. Trust me, we shall
be
able to dip our sippets into the yolks easily enough."
The captain was quite right in his conjecture, that this new
phenomenon
was caused by a diminution in the pressure of the
atmosphere.
Water boiling at a temperature of 66 degrees was itself an
evidence
that the column of air above the earth's surface had
become
reduced by one-third of its altitude. The identical
phenomenon
would have occurred at the summit of a mountain 35,000 feet
high;
and had Servadac been in possession of a barometer, he would
have
immediately discovered the fact that only now for the first time,
as
the result of experiment, revealed itself to him--a fact,
moreover, which
accounted for the compression of the blood-vessels
which both he and Ben Zoof
had experienced, as well as for
the attenuation of their voices and their
accelerated breathing.
"And yet," he argued with himself, "if our encampment
has been
projected to so great an elevation, how is it that the sea
remains
at its proper level?"
Once again Hector Servadac, though capable of tracing consequences,
felt
himself totally at a loss to comprehend their cause;
hence his agitation and
bewilderment!
After their prolonged immersion in the boiling water,
the eggs were found
to be only just sufficiently cooked;
the couscous was very much in the same
condition;
and Ben Zoof came to the conclusion that in future he must
be
careful to commence his culinary operations an hour earlier.
He was
rejoiced at last to help his master, who, in spite
of his perplexed
preoccupation, seemed to have a very fair
appetite for breakfast.
"Well, captain?" said Ben Zoof presently, such being his ordinary
way of
opening conversation.
"Well, Ben Zoof?" was the captain's invariable response
to his servant's
formula.
"What are we to do now, sir?"
"We can only for the present wait patiently where we are.
We are encamped
upon an island, and therefore we can only be
rescued by sea."
"But do you suppose that any of our friends are still alive?"
asked Ben
Zoof.
"Oh, I think we must indulge the hope that this catastrophe has
not
extended far. We must trust that it has limited its mischief to
some small
portion of the Algerian coast, and that our friends are all alive
and well.
No doubt the governor general will be anxious to investigate the
full
extent of the damage, and will send a vessel from Algiers to
explore.
It is not likely that we shall be forgotten. What, then, you
have to do,
Ben Zoof, is to keep a sharp lookout, and to be ready, in case a
vessel
should appear, to make signals at once."
"But if no vessel should appear!" sighed the orderly.
"Then we must build a boat, and go in search of those who do not come
in
search of us."
"Very good. But what sort of a sailor are you?"
"Everyone can be a sailor when he must," said Servadac calmly.
Ben Zoof said no more. For several succeeding days he scanned the
horizon
unintermittently with his telescope. His watching was in
vain.
No ship appeared upon the desert sea. "By the name of a
Kabyle!"
he broke out impatiently, "his Excellency is grossly negligent!"
Although the days and nights had become reduced from twenty-four hours
to
twelve, Captain Servadac would not accept the new condition of things,
but
resolved to adhere to the computations of the old calendar.
Notwithstanding,
therefore, that the sun had risen and set twelve
times since the commencement
of the new year, he persisted in calling
the following day the 6th of
January. His watch enabled him to keep
an accurate account of the
passing hours.
In the course of his life, Ben Zoof had read a few books.
After pondering
one day, he said: "It seems to me, captain,
that you have turned into
Robinson Crusoe, and that I am your
man Friday. I hope I have not
become a negro."
"No," replied the captain. "Your complexion isn't the fairest in the
world,
but you are not black yet."
"Well, I had much sooner be a white Friday than a black one,"
rejoined Ben
Zoof.
Still no ship appeared; and Captain Servadac, after the example
of all
previous Crusoes, began to consider it advisable
to investigate the resources
of his domain. The new territory
of which he had become the monarch he
named Gourbi Island. It had
a superficial area of about nine hundred
square miles.
Bullocks, cows, goats, and sheep existed in considerable
numbers;
and as there seemed already to be an abundance of game,
it was
hardly likely that a future supply would fail them.
The condition of the
cereals was such as to promise a fine
ingathering of wheat, maize, and rice;
so that for the governor
and his population, with their two horses, not only
was there
ample provision, but even if other human inhabitants
besides
themselves should yet be discovered, there was not the
remotest
prospect of any of them perishing by starvation.
From the 6th to the 13th of January the rain came down
in torrents; and,
what was quite an unusual occurrence at this
season of the year, several
heavy storms broke over the island.
In spite, however, of the continual
downfall, the heavens still
remained veiled in cloud. Servadac,
moreover, did not fail to observe
that for the season the temperature was
unusually high; and, as a matter
still more surprising, that it kept steadily
increasing, as though
the earth were gradually and continuously approximating
to the sun.
In proportion to the rise of temperature, the light also
assumed
greater intensity; and if it had not been for the screen of
vapor
interposed between the sky and the island, the irradiation
which
would have illumined all terrestrial objects would have been
vivid
beyond all precedent.
But neither sun, moon, nor star ever appeared; and Servadac's
irritation
and annoyance at being unable to identify any one point
of the firmament may
be more readily imagined than described.
On one occasion Ben Zoof endeavored
to mitigate his master's
impatience by exhorting him to assume the
resignation, even if
he did not feel the indifference, which he himself
experienced;
but his advice was received with so angry a rebuff that
he
retired in all haste, abashed, to résumé his watchman's duty,
which he
performed with exemplary perseverance.
Day and night, with the shortest
possible intervals of rest,
despite wind, rain, and storm, he mounted guard
upon the cliff--
but all in vain. Not a speck appeared upon the
desolate horizon.
To say the truth, no vessel could have stood against the
weather.
The hurricane raged with tremendous fury, and the waves rose to
a
height that seemed to defy calculation. Never, even in the
second
era of creation, when, under the influence of internal heat,
the
waters rose in vapor to descend in deluge back upon
the world, could
meteorological phenomena have been developed
with more impressive
intensity.
But by the night of the 13th the tempest appeared to have spent its
fury;
the wind dropped; the rain ceased as if by a spell; and
Servadac,
who for the last six days had confined himself to the shelter
of
his roof, hastened to join Ben Zoof at his post upon the cliff.
Now, he
thought, there might be a chance of solving his perplexity;
perhaps now the
huge disc, of which he had had an imperfect glimpse
on the night of the 31st
of December, might again reveal itself;
at any rate, he hoped for an
opportunity of observing the constellations
in a clear firmament above.
The night was magnificent. Not a cloud dimmed the luster of the
stars,
which spangled the heavens in surpassing brilliancy, and several
nebulae
which hitherto no astronomer had been able to discern without the
aid
of a telescope were clearly visible to the naked eye.
By a natural impulse, Servadac's first thought was to observe
the position
of the pole-star. It was in sight, but so near
to the horizon as to suggest
the utter impossibility of its
being any longer the central pivot of the
sidereal system;
it occupied a position through which it was out of the
question
that the axis of the earth indefinitely prolonged could ever
pass.
In his impression he was more thoroughly confirmed when, an hour
later,
he noticed that the star had approached still nearer the
horizon,
as though it had belonged to one of the zodiacal constellations.
The pole-star being manifestly thus displaced, it remained
to be
discovered whether any other of the celestial bodies
had become a fixed
center around which the constellations made
their apparent daily
revolutions. To the solution of this problem
Servadac applied himself
with the most thoughtful diligence.
After patient observation, he satisfied
himself that the required
conditions were answered by a certain star that was
stationary not
far from the horizon. This was Vega, in the
constellation Lyra,
a star which, according to the precession of the
equinoxes,
will take the place of our pole-star 12,000 years hence.
The
most daring imagination could not suppose that a period
of 12,000 years had
been crowded into the space of a fortnight;
and therefore the captain came,
as to an easier conclusion,
to the opinion that the earth's axis had been
suddenly and
immensely shifted; and from the fact that the axis, if
produced,
would pass through a point so little removed above the
horizon,
he deduced the inference that the Mediterranean must have
been
transported to the equator.
Lost in bewildering maze of thought, he gazed long and intently upon
the
heavens. His eyes wandered from where the tail of the Great Bear,
now a
zodiacal constellation, was scarcely visible above the waters,
to where the
stars of the southern hemisphere were just breaking on his view.
A cry from
Ben Zoof recalled him to himself.
"The moon!" shouted the orderly, as though overjoyed at once
again
beholding what the poet has called:
"The kind companion of terrestrial night;"
and he pointed to a disc that was rising at a spot precisely
opposite the
place where they would have expected to see the sun.
"The moon!" again he
cried.
But Captain Servadac could not altogether enter into his
servant's
enthusiasm. If this were actually the moon, her distance
from the earth
must have been increased by some millions of miles.
He was rather disposed to
suspect that it was not the earth's
satellite at all, but some planet with
its apparent magnitude
greatly enlarged by its approximation to the
earth. Taking up
the powerful field-glass which he was accustomed to
use in his
surveying operations, he proceeded to investigate more
carefully
the luminous orb. But he failed to trace any of the
lineaments,
supposed to resemble a human face, that mark the lunar
surface;
he failed to decipher any indications of hill and plain;
nor
could he make out the aureole of light which emanates from
what astronomers
have designated Mount Tycho. "It is not the moon,"
he said slowly.
"Not the moon?" cried Ben Zoof. "Why not?"
"It is not the moon," again affirmed the captain.
"Why not?" repeated Ben Zoof, unwilling to renounce his first impression.
"Because there is a small satellite in attendance."
And the captain drew
his servant's attention to a bright speck,
apparently about the size of one
of Jupiter's satellites seen
through a moderate telescope, that was clearly
visible just
within the focus of his glass.
Here, then, was a fresh mystery. The orbit of this planet
was
assuredly interior to the orbit of the earth, because it
accompanied
the sun in its apparent motion; yet it was neither Mercury nor
Venus,
because neither one nor the other of these has any satellite at
all.
The captain stamped and stamped again with mingled vexation,
agitation,
and bewilderment. "Confound it!" he cried,
"if this is neither Venus
nor Mercury, it must be the moon;
but if it is the moon, whence, in the name
of all the gods,
has she picked up another moon for herself?"
The captain was in dire perplexity.
CHAPTER VIII
VENUS IN PERILOUS PROXIMITY
The light of the returning sun soon extinguished the glory of the
stars,
and rendered it necessary for the captain to postpone his
observations.
He had sought in vain for further trace of the huge disc that
had
so excited his wonder on the 1st, and it seemed most probable that,
in
its irregular orbit, it had been carried beyond the range of vision.
The weather was still superb. The wind, after veering to the
west,
had sunk to a perfect calm. Pursuing its inverted course, the
sun
rose and set with undeviating regularity; and the days and nights
were
still divided into periods of precisely six hours each--
a sure proof that
the sun remained close to the new equator
which manifestly passed through
Gourbi Island.
Meanwhile the temperature was steadily increasing. The captain
kept
his thermometer close at hand where he could repeatedly consult
it,
and on the 15th he found that it registered 50 degrees centigrade
in
the shade.
No attempt had been made to rebuild the gourbi, but the captain
and Ben
Zoof managed to make up quarters sufficiently comfortable
in the principal
apartment of the adjoining structure,
where the stone walls, that at first
afforded a refuge from
the torrents of rain, now formed an equally acceptable
shelter
from the burning sun. The heat was becoming
insufferable,
surpassing the heat of Senegal and other equatorial
regions;
not a cloud ever tempered the intensity of the solar rays;
and
unless some modification ensued, it seemed inevitable
that all vegetation
should become scorched and burnt off from
the face of the island.
In spite, however, of the profuse perspirations from which he
suffered,
Ben Zoof, constant to his principles, expressed no surprise at
the
unwonted heat. No remonstrances from his master could induce him to
abandon
his watch from the cliff. To withstand the vertical beams of
that noontide
sun would seem to require a skin of brass and a brain of
adamant; but yet,
hour after hour, he would remain conscientiously scanning
the surface of
the Mediterranean, which, calm and deserted, lay outstretched
before him.
On one occasion, Servadac, in reference to his orderly's
indomitable
perseverance, happened to remark that he thought he must have
been born
in the heart of equatorial Africa; to which Ben Zoof replied, with
the
utmost dignity, that he was born at Montmartre, which was all the
same.
The worthy fellow was unwilling to own that, even in the matter of
heat,
the tropics could in any way surpass his own much-loved home.
This unprecedented temperature very soon began to take effect upon
the
products of the soil. The sap rose rapidly in the trees,
so that in the
course of a few days buds, leaves, flowers, and fruit
had come to full
maturity. It was the same with the cereals;
wheat and maize sprouted
and ripened as if by magic,
and for a while a rank and luxuriant pasturage
clothed
the meadows. Summer and autumn seemed blended into one.
If
Captain Servadac had been more deeply versed in astronomy,
he would perhaps
have been able to bring to bear his knowledge
that if the axis of the earth,
as everything seemed to indicate,
now formed a right angle with the plane of
the ecliptic,
her various seasons, like those of the planet Jupiter, would
become
limited to certain zones, in which they would remain
invariable.
But even if he had understood the _rationale_ of the
change,
the convulsion that had brought it about would have been as much
a
mystery as ever.
The precocity of vegetation caused some embarrassment.
The time for the
corn and fruit harvest had fallen simultaneously
with that of the haymaking;
and as the extreme heat precluded
any prolonged exertions, it was evident
"the population"
of the island would find it difficult to provide the
necessary
amount of labor. Not that the prospect gave them much
concern:
the provisions of the gourbi were still far from exhausted,
and
now that the roughness of the weather had so happily subsided,
they had every
encouragement to hope that a ship of some sort
would soon appear. Not
only was that part of the Mediterranean
systematically frequented by the
government steamers that watched
the coast, but vessels of all nations were
constantly cruising
off the shore.
In spite, however, of all their sanguine speculations, no ship
appeared.
Ben Zoof admitted the necessity of extemporizing a kind of
parasol
for himself, otherwise he must literally have been roasted to
death
upon the exposed summit of the cliff.
Meanwhile, Servadac was doing his utmost--it must be acknowledged,
with
indifferent success--to recall the lessons of his school-days. He
would
plunge into the wildest speculations in his endeavors to unravel
the
difficulties of the new situation, and struggled into a kind of
conviction
that if there had been a change of manner in the earth's rotation
on her axis,
there would be a corresponding change in her revolution round
the sun,
which would involve the consequence of the length of the year being
either
diminished or increased.
Independently of the increased and increasing heat, there was another
very
conclusive demonstration that the earth had thus suddenly
approximated
towards the sun. The diameter of the solar disc
was now exactly twice
what it ordinarily looks to the naked eye;
in fact, it was precisely such as
it would appear to an observer
on the surface of the planet Venus. The
most obvious inference
would therefore be that the earth's distance from the
sun
had been diminished from 91,000,000 to 66,000,000 miles.
If the just
equilibrium of the earth had thus been destroyed,
and should this diminution
of distance still continue,
would there not be reason to fear that the
terrestrial world
would be carried onwards to actual contact with the
sun,
which must result in its total annihilation?
The continuance of the splendid weather afforded Servadac
every facility
for observing the heavens. Night after night,
constellations in their
beauty lay stretched before his eyes--
an alphabet which, to his
mortification, not to say his rage,
he was unable to decipher. In the
apparent dimensions of
the fixed stars, in their distance, in their relative
position
with regard to each other, he could observe no change.
Although
it is established that our sun is approaching the
constellation of Hercules
at the rate of more than 126,000,000
miles a year, and although Arcturus is
traveling through space
at the rate of fifty-four miles a second--three times
faster
than the earth goes round the sun,--yet such is the remoteness
of
those stars that no appreciable change is evident to the senses.
The fixed
stars taught him nothing.
Far otherwise was it with the planets. The orbits of Venus and
Mercury
are within the orbit of the earth, Venus rotating at an average
distance
of 66,130,000 miles from the sun, and Mercury at that of
35,393,000.
After pondering long, and as profoundly as he could, upon these
figures,
Captain Servadac came to the conclusion that, as the earth was now
receiving
about double the amount of light and heat that it had been
receiving
before the catastrophe, it was receiving about the same as the
planet Venus;
he was driven, therefore, to the estimate of the measure in
which the earth
must have approximated to the sun, a deduction in which he
was confirmed
when the opportunity came for him to observe Venus herself in
the splendid
proportions that she now assumed.
That magnificent planet which--as Phosphorus or Lucifer, Hesperus or
Vesper,
the evening star, the morning star, or the shepherd's star--has never
failed
to attract the rapturous admiration of the most indifferent
observers,
here revealed herself with unprecedented glory, exhibiting all the
phases
of a lustrous moon in miniature. Various indentations in the
outline
of its crescent showed that the solar beams were refracted into
regions
of its surface where the sun had already set, and proved, beyond a
doubt,
that the planet had an atmosphere of her own; and certain luminous
points
projecting from the crescent as plainly marked the existence of
mountains.
As the result of Servadac's computations, he formed the opinion
that Venus
could hardly be at a greater distance than 6,000,000 miles from
the earth.
"And a very safe distance, too," said Ben Zoof, when his master
told him
the conclusion at which he had arrived.
"All very well for two armies, but for a couple of planets
not quite so
safe, perhaps, as you may imagine. It is my
impression that it is more
than likely we may run foul of Venus,"
said the captain.
"Plenty of air and water there, sir?" inquired the orderly.
"Yes; as far as I can tell, plenty," replied Servadac.
"Then why shouldn't we go and visit Venus?"
Servadac did his best to explain that as the two planets were
of about
equal volume, and were traveling with great velocity
in opposite directions,
any collision between them must be attended
with the most disastrous
consequences to one or both of them.
But Ben Zoof failed to see that, even at
the worst, the catastrophe
could be much more serious than the collision of
two railway trains.
The captain became exasperated. "You idiot!" he angrily
exclaimed;
"cannot you understand that the planets are traveling a
thousand
times faster than the fastest express, and that if they
meet,
either one or the other must be destroyed? What would
become
of your darling Montmartre then?"
The captain had touched a tender chord. For a moment Ben Zoof stood
with
clenched teeth and contracted muscles; then, in a voice of real
concern,
he inquired whether anything could be done to avert the
calamity.
"Nothing whatever; so you may go about your own business,"
was the
captain's brusque rejoinder.
All discomfited and bewildered, Ben Zoof retired without a word.
During the ensuing days the distance between the two planets continued
to
decrease, and it became more and more obvious that the earth,
on her new
orbit, was about to cross the orbit of Venus. Throughout this
time the
earth had been making a perceptible approach towards Mercury,
and that
planet--which is rarely visible to the naked eye,
and then only at what are
termed the periods of its greatest
eastern and western elongations--now
appeared in all its splendor.
It amply justified the epithet of "sparkling"
which the ancients
were accustomed to confer upon it, and could scarcely
fail
to awaken a new interest. The periodic recurrence of its
phases;
its reflection of the sun's rays, shedding upon it a light
and a
heat seven times greater than that received by the earth;
its glacial and its
torrid zones, which, on account of the great
inclination of the axis, are
scarcely separable; its equatorial bands;
its mountains eleven miles
high;--were all subjects of observation
worthy of the most studious
regard.
But no danger was to be apprehended from Mercury; with Venus
only did
collision appear imminent. By the l8th of January
the distance between
that planet and the earth had become reduced
to between two and three
millions of miles, and the intensity
of its light cast heavy shadows from all
terrestrial objects.
It might be observed to turn upon its own axis in
twenty-three
hours twenty-one minutes--an evidence, from the unaltered
duration
of its days, that the planet had not shared in the
disturbance.
On its disc the clouds formed from its atmospheric vapor were
plainly
perceptible, as also were the seven spots, which, according to
Bianchini,
are a chain of seas. It was now visible in broad
daylight.
Buonaparte, when under the Directory, once had his
attention
called to Venus at noon, and immediately hailed it
joyfully,
recognizing it as his own peculiar star in the
ascendant.
Captain Servadac, it may well be imagined, did not
experience
the same gratifying emotion.
On the 20th, the distance between the two bodies had again
sensibly
diminished. The captain had ceased to be surprised
that no vessel had
been sent to rescue himself and his
companion from their strange
imprisonment; the governor
general and the minister of war were doubtless far
differently
occupied, and their interests far otherwise engrossed.
What
sensational articles, he thought, must now be teeming to
the
newspapers! What crowds must be flocking to the churches!
The end of
the world approaching! the great climax close at hand!
Two days more, and the
earth, shivered into a myriad atoms,
would be lost in boundless space!
These dire forebodings, however, were not destined to be
realized.
Gradually the distance between the two planets began to
increase;
the planes of their orbits did not coincide, and accordingly
the
dreaded catastrophe did not ensue. By the 25th, Venus was
sufficiently
remote to preclude any further fear of collision.
Ben Zoof gave a sigh of
relief when the captain communicated
the glad intelligence.
Their proximity to Venus had been close enough to demonstrate
that beyond
a doubt that planet has no moon or satellite such
as Cassini, Short,
Montaigne of Limoges, Montbarron, and some
other astronomers have imagined to
exist. "Had there been such
a satellite," said Servadac, "we might have
captured it in passing.
But what can be the meaning," he added seriously, "of
all this
displacement of the heavenly bodies?"
"What is that great building at Paris, captain, with a top like a
cap?"
asked Ben Zoof.
"Do you mean the Observatory?"
"Yes, the Observatory. Are there not people living in the
Observatory
who could explain all this?"
"Very likely; but what of that?"
"Let us be philosophers, and wait patiently until we can
hear their
explanation."
Servadac smiled. "Do you know what it is to be a philosopher,
Ben
Zoof?" he asked.
"I am a soldier, sir," was the servant's prompt rejoinder, "and I
have
learnt to know that 'what can't be cured must be endured.'"
The captain made no reply, but for a time, at least, he desisted from
puzzling
himself over matters which he felt he was utterly incompetent to
explain.
But an event soon afterwards occurred which awakened his keenest
interest.
About nine o'clock on the morning of the 27th, Ben Zoof walked
deliberately
into his master's apartment, and, in reply to a question as to
what he wanted,
announced with the utmost composure that a ship was in
sight.
"A ship!" exclaimed Servadac, starting to his feet. "A ship!
Ben
Zoof, you donkey! you speak as unconcernedly as though you
were telling me
that my dinner was ready."
"Are we not philosophers, captain?" said the orderly.
But the captain was out of hearing.
CHAPTER IX
INQUIRIES UNSATISFIED
Fast as his legs could carry him, Servadac had made his way to
the top
of the cliff. It was quite true that a vessel was in sight,
hardly more
than six miles from the shore; but owing to the increase
in the earth's
convexity, and the consequent limitation of the range
of vision, the rigging
of the topmasts alone was visible above the water.
This was enough, however,
to indicate that the ship was a schooner--
an impression that was confirmed
when, two hours later, she came
entirely in sight.
"The _Dobryna_!" exclaimed Servadac, keeping his eye unmoved
at his
telescope.
"Impossible, sir!" rejoined Ben Zoof; "there are no signs of smoke."
"The _Dobryna_!" repeated the captain, positively. "She is under
sail;
but she is Count Timascheff's yacht."
He was right. If the count were on board, a strange fatality
was
bringing him to the presence of his rival. But no longer
now could
Servadac regard him in the light of an adversary;
circumstances had changed,
and all animosity was absorbed in
the eagerness with which he hailed the
prospect of obtaining some
information about the recent startling and
inexplicable events.
During the twenty-seven days that she had been absent,
the _Dobryna_,
he conjectured, would have explored the
Mediterranean,
would very probably have visited Spain, France, or
Italy,
and accordingly would convey to Gourbi Island some
intelligence
from one or other of those countries. He reckoned,
therefore,
not only upon ascertaining the extent of the late
catastrophe,
but upon learning its cause. Count Timascheff was, no
doubt,
magnanimously coming to the rescue of himself and his orderly.
The wind being adverse, the _Dobryna_ did not make very rapid
progress;
but as the weather, in spite of a few clouds, remained calm,
and
the sea was quite smooth, she was enabled to hold a steady course.
It seemed
unaccountable that she should not use her engine,
as whoever was on board,
would be naturally impatient to reconnoiter
the new island, which must just
have come within their view.
The probability that suggested itself was that
the schooner's
fuel was exhausted.
Servadac took it for granted that the _Dobryna_ was endeavoring to
put
in. It occurred to him, however, that the count, on discovering
an
island where he had expected to find the mainland of Africa,
would not
unlikely be at a loss for a place of anchorage.
The yacht was evidently
making her way in the direction
of the former mouth of the Shelif, and the
captain was struck
with the idea that he would do well to investigate whether
there
was any suitable mooring towards which he might signal her.
Zephyr
and Galette were soon saddled, and in twenty minutes
had carried their riders
to the western extremity of the island,
where they both dismounted and began
to explore the coast.
They were not long in ascertaining that on the farther side
of the point
there was a small well-sheltered creek of sufficient
depth to accommodate a
vessel of moderate tonnage. A narrow
channel formed a passage through
the ridge of rocks that protected
it from the open sea, and which, even in
the roughest weather,
would ensure the calmness of its waters.
Whilst examining the rocky shore, the captain observed,
to his great
surprise, long and well-defined rows of seaweed,
which undoubtedly betokened
that there had been a very considerable
ebb and flow of the waters--a thing
unknown in the Mediterranean,
where there is scarcely any perceptible
tide. What, however,
seemed most remarkable, was the manifest evidence
that ever
since the highest flood (which was caused, in all
probability,
by the proximity of the body of which the huge disc had
been
so conspicuous on the night of the 31st of December)
the phenomenon had been
gradually lessening, and in fact was
now reduced to the normal limits which
had characterized it
before the convulsion.
Without doing more than note the circumstance, Servadac turned his
entire
attention to the _Dobryna_, which, now little more than a mile
from shore,
could not fail to see and understand his signals.
Slightly changing her
course, she first struck her mainsail,
and, in order to facilitate the
movements of her helmsman,
soon carried nothing but her two topsails,
brigantine and jib.
After rounding the peak, she steered direct for the
channel
to which Servadac by his gestures was pointing her, and was
not
long in entering the creek. As soon as the anchor, imbedded
in
the sandy bottom, had made good its hold, a boat was lowered.
In a few
minutes more Count Timascheff had landed on the island.
Captain Servadac
hastened towards him.
"First of all, count," he exclaimed impetuously, "before we speak
one
other word, tell me what has happened."
The count, whose imperturbable composure presented a singular
contrast to
the French officer's enthusiastic vivacity,
made a stiff bow, and in his
Russian accent replied:
"First of all, permit me to express my surprise at
seeing you here.
I left you on a continent, and here I have the honor of
finding
you on an island."
"I assure you, count, I have never left the place."
"I am quite aware of it. Captain Servadac, and I now beg to offer
you
my sincere apologies for failing to keep my appointment with you."
"Never mind, now," interposed the captain; "we will talk
of that
by-and-by. First, tell me what has happened."
"The very question I was about to put to you, Captain Servadac."
"Do you mean to say you know nothing of the cause, and can tell me
nothing
of the extent, of the catastrophe which has transformed this part of
Africa
into an island?"
"Nothing more than you know yourself."
"But surely, Count Timascheff, you can inform me whether upon
the northern
shore of the Mediterranean--"
"Are you certain that this is the Mediterranean?"
asked the count
significantly, and added, "I have discovered
no sign of land."
The captain stared in silent bewilderment. For some moments
he
seemed perfectly stupefied; then, recovering himself, he began
to overwhelm
the count with a torrent of questions. Had he noticed,
ever since the
1st of January, that the sun had risen in the west?
Had he noticed that the
days had been only six hours long,
and that the weight of the atmosphere was
so much diminished?
Had he observed that the moon had quite disappeared, and
that
the earth had been in imminent hazard of running foul of the
planet
Venus? Was he aware, in short, that the entire motions
of the
terrestrial sphere had undergone a complete modification?
To all these
inquiries, the count responded in the affirmative.
He was acquainted with
everything that had transpired; but, to Servadac's
increasing astonishment,
he could throw no light upon the cause
of any of the phenomena.
"On the night of the 31st of December," he said, "I was proceeding
by sea
to our appointed place of meeting, when my yacht was suddenly
caught on the
crest of an enormous wave, and carried to a height
which it is beyond my
power to estimate. Some mysterious force
seemed to have brought about a
convulsion of the elements.
Our engine was damaged, nay disabled, and we
drifted entirely at the mercy
of the terrible hurricane that raged during the
succeeding days.
That the _Dobryna_ escaped at all is little less than a
miracle,
and I can only attribute her safety to the fact that she
occupied
the center of the vast cyclone, and consequently did not
experience
much change of position."
He paused, and added: "Your island is the first land we have seen."
"Then let us put out to sea at once and ascertain the extent of the
disaster,"
cried the captain, eagerly. "You will take me on board,
count, will you not?"
"My yacht is at your service, sir, even should you require to make a
tour
round the world."
"A tour round the Mediterranean will suffice for the present, I
think,"
said the captain, smiling.
The count shook his head.
"I am not sure," said he, "but what the tour of the Mediterranean
will
prove to be the tour of the world."
Servadac made no reply, but for a time remained silent and
absorbed in
thought.
After the silence was broken, they consulted as to what course was
best to
pursue; and the plan they proposed was, in the first place,
to discover how
much of the African coast still remained, and to carry
on the tidings of
their own experiences to Algiers; or, in the event
of the southern shore
having actually disappeared, they would make their
way northwards and put
themselves in communication with the population
on the river banks of
Europe.
Before starting, it was indispensable that the engine of the
_Dobryna_
should be repaired: to sail under canvas only would
in contrary winds
and rough seas be both tedious and difficult.
The stock of coal on board was
adequate for two months' consumption;
but as it would at the expiration of
that time be exhausted,
it was obviously the part of prudence to employ it in
reaching
a port where fuel could be replenished.
The damage sustained by the engine proved to be not very serious;
and in
three days after her arrival the _Dobryna_ was again ready
to put to sea.
Servadac employed the interval in making the count acquainted
with all he
knew about his small domain. They made an entire
circuit of the island,
and both agreed that it must be beyond
the limits of that circumscribed
territory that they must seek
an explanation of what had so strangely.
transpired.
It was on the last day of January that the repairs of the schooner
were
completed. A slight diminution in the excessively high
temperature
which had prevailed for the last few weeks, was the only
apparent change in
the general order of things; but whether this
was to be attributed to any
alteration in the earth's orbit was
a question which would still require
several days to decide.
The weather remained fine, and although a few clouds
had accumulated,
and might have caused a trifling fall of the barometer, they
were not
sufficiently threatening to delay the departure of the
_Dobryna_.
Doubts now arose, and some discussion followed, whether or
not it was
desirable for Ben Zoof to accompany his master.
There were various reasons
why he should be left behind, not the least
important being that the schooner
had no accommodation for horses,
and the orderly would have found it hard to
part with Zephyr,
and much more with his own favorite Galette; besides, it
was advisable
that there should be some one left to receive any strangers
that
might possibly arrive, as well as to keep an eye upon the herds
of
cattle which, in the dubious prospect before them, might prove
to be the sole
resource of the survivors of the catastrophe.
Altogether, taking into
consideration that the brave fellow would
incur no personal risk by remaining
upon the island, the captain was
induced with much reluctance to forego the
attendance of his servant,
hoping very shortly to return and to restore him
to his country,
when he had ascertained the reason of the mysteries in
which
they were enveloped.
On the 31st, then, Ben Zoof was "invested with governor's powers,"
and
took an affecting leave of his master, begging him, if chance
should carry
him near Montmartre, to ascertain whether the beloved
"mountain" had been
left unmoved.
Farewells over, the _Dobryna_ was carefully steered through the creek,
and
was soon upon the open sea.
CHAPTER X
A SEARCH FOR ALGERIA
The _Dobryna_, a strong craft of 200 tons burden, had been built
in
the famous shipbuilding yards in the Isle of Wight. Her sea
going
qualities were excellent, and would have amply sufficed for
a
circumnavigation of the globe. Count Timascheff was himself no
sailor,
but had the greatest confidence in leaving the command of his
yacht
in the hands of Lieutenant Procope, a man of about thirty years of
age,
and an excellent seaman. Born on the count's estates, the
son
of a serf who had been emancipated long before the famous edict
of the
Emperor Alexander, Procope was sincerely attached, by a tie
of gratitude as
well as of duty and affection, to his patron's service.
After an
apprenticeship on a merchant ship he had entered
the imperial navy, and had
already reached the rank of lieutenant
when the count appointed him to the
charge of his own private yacht,
in which he was accustomed to spend by far
the greater part of his time,
throughout the winter generally cruising in the
Mediterranean,
whilst in the summer he visited more northern waters.
The ship could not have been in better hands. The lieutenant
was
well informed in many matters outside the pale of his profession,
and
his attainments were alike creditable to himself
and to the liberal friend
who had given him his education.
He had an excellent crew, consisting of
Tiglew the engineer,
four sailors named Niegoch, Tolstoy, Etkef, and
Panofka,
and Mochel the cook. These men, without exception, were all
sons
of the count's tenants, and so tenaciously, even out at sea,
did they
cling to their old traditions, that it mattered little
to them what physical
disorganization ensued, so long as they
felt they were sharing the
experiences of their lord and master.
The late astounding events, however,
had rendered Procope
manifestly uneasy, and not the less so from his
consciousness
that the count secretly partook of his own anxiety.
Steam up and canvas spread, the schooner started eastwards.
With a
favorable wind she would certainly have made eleven knots
an hour had not the
high waves somewhat impeded her progress.
Although only a moderate breeze was
blowing, the sea was rough,
a circumstance to be accounted for only by the
diminution
in the force of the earth's attraction rendering the
liquid
particles so buoyant, that by the mere effect of oscillation
they
were carried to a height that was quite unprecedented.
M. Arago has fixed
twenty-five or twenty-six feet as the maximum
elevation ever attained by the
highest waves, and his astonishment would
have been very great to see them
rising fifty or even sixty feet.
Nor did these waves in the usual way
partially unfurl themselves
and rebound against the sides of the vessel; they
might rather
be described as long undulations carrying the schooner
(its
weight diminished from the same cause as that of the water)
alternately to
such heights and depths, that if Captain Servadac
had been subject to
seasickness he must have found himself in
sorry plight. As the
pitching, however, was the result of a long
uniform swell, the yacht did not
labor much harder than she would
against the ordinary short strong waves of
the Mediterranean;
the main inconvenience that was experienced was the
diminution
in her proper rate of speed.
For a few miles she followed the line hitherto presumably occupied
by the
coast of Algeria; but no land appeared to the south.
The changed positions of
the planets rendered them of no avail
for purposes of nautical observation,
nor could Lieutenant Procope
calculate his latitude and longitude by the
altitude of the sun,
as his reckonings would be useless when applied to
charts that had
been constructed for the old order of things; but
nevertheless,
by means of the log, which gave him the rate of
progress,
and by the compass which indicated the direction in which
they
were sailing, he was able to form an estimate of his position
that
was sufficiently free from error for his immediate need.
Happily the recent phenomena had no effect upon the compass;
the magnetic
needle, which in these regions had pointed about 22 degrees
from the north
pole, had never deviated in the least--a proof that,
although east and west
had apparently changed places, north and south
continued to retain their
normal position as cardinal points.
The log and the compass, therefore, were
able to be called upon
to do the work of the sextant, which had become
utterly useless.
On the first morning of the cruise Lieutenant Procope, who,
like most
Russians, spoke French fluently, was explaining
these peculiarities to
Captain Servadac; the count was present,
and the conversation perpetually
recurred, as naturally it would,
to the phenomena which remained so
inexplicable to them all.
"It is very evident," said the lieutenant, "that ever since
the 1st of
January the earth has been moving in a new orbit,
and from some unknown cause
has drawn nearer to the sun."
"No doubt about that," said Servadac; "and I suppose that,
having crossed
the orbit of Venus, we have a good chance
of running into the orbit of
Mercury."
"And finish up by a collision with the sun!" added the count.
"There is no fear of that, sir. The earth has undoubtedly
entered
upon a new orbit, but she is not incurring any probable risk of
being
precipitated onto the sun."
"Can you satisfy us of that?" asked the count.
"I can, sir. I can give you a proof which I think you will
own is
conclusive. If, as you suppose, the earth is being
drawn on so as to be
precipitated against the sun, the great
center of attraction of our system,
it could only be because
the centrifugal and centripetal forces that cause
the planets
to rotate in their several orbits had been entirely
suspended:
in that case, indeed, the earth would rush onwards towards the
sun,
and in sixty-four days and a half the catastrophe you dread
would
inevitably happen."
"And what demonstration do you offer," asked Servadac eagerly,
"that it
will not happen?"
"Simply this, captain: that since the earth entered her new orbit
half
the sixty-four days has already elapsed, and yet it is only just
recently
that she has crossed the orbit of Venus, hardly one-third of the
distance
to be traversed to reach the sun."
The lieutenant paused to allow time for reflection, and added:
"Moreover,
I have every reason to believe that we are not so near the sun
as we have
been. The temperature has been gradually diminishing;
the heat upon
Gourbi Island is not greater now than we might ordinarily
expect to find in
Algeria. At the same time, we have the problem
still unsolved that the
Mediterranean has evidently been transported
to the equatorial zone."
Both the count and the captain expressed themselves reassured by
his
representations, and observed that they must now do all in their
power to
discover what had become of the vast continent of Africa,
of which, they were
hitherto failing so completely to find a vestige.
Twenty-four hours after leaving the island, the _Dobryna_ had passed
over
the sites where Tenes, Cherchil, Koleah, and Sidi-Feruch once had
been,
but of these towns not one appeared within range of the
telescope.
Ocean reigned supreme. Lieutenant Procope was absolutely
certain that
he had not mistaken his direction; the compass showed that the
wind had
never shifted from the west, and this, with the rate of speed as
estimated
by the log, combined to assure him that at this date, the 2d of
February,
the schooner was in lat. 36 degrees 49 min N. and long. 3
degrees 25 min E.,
the very spot which ought to have been occupied by the
Algerian capital.
But Algiers, like all the other coast-towns, had apparently
been absorbed
into the bowels of the earth.
Captain Servadac, with clenched teeth and knitted brow, stood
sternly,
almost fiercely, regarding the boundless waste of water.
His
pulse beat fast as he recalled the friends and comrades
with whom he had
spent the last few years in that vanished city.
All the images of his past
life floated upon his memory;
his thoughts sped away to his native France,
only to return again
to wonder whether the depths of ocean would reveal any
traces
of the Algerian metropolis.
"Is it not impossible," he murmured aloud, "that any city
should disappear
so completely? Would not the loftiest
eminences of the city at least be
visible? Surely some
portion of the Casbah must still rise above the
waves?
The imperial fort, too, was built upon an elevation of 750 feet;
it
is incredible that it should be so totally submerged.
Unless some vestiges of
these are found, I shall begin to suspect
that the whole of Africa has been
swallowed in some vast abyss."
Another circumstance was most remarkable. Not a material object
of
any kind was to be noticed floating on the surface of the water;
not one
branch of a tree had been seen drifting by, nor one spar
belonging to one of
the numerous vessels that a month previously had
been moored in the
magnificent bay which stretched twelve miles across
from Cape Matafuz to
Point Pexade. Perhaps the depths might disclose
what the surface failed
to reveal, and Count Timascheff, anxious that
Servadac should have every
facility afforded him for solving his doubts,
called for the sounding-line.
Forthwith, the lead was greased and lowered.
To the surprise of all, and
especially of Lieutenant Procope, the line
indicated a bottom at a nearly
uniform depth of from four to five fathoms;
and although the sounding was
persevered with continuously for more than two
hours over a considerable
area, the differences of level were insignificant,
not corresponding in any
degree to what would be expected over the site
of a city that had been
terraced like the seats of an amphitheater.
Astounding as it seemed, what
alternative was left but to suppose
that the Algerian capital had been
completely leveled by the flood?
The sea-bottom was composed of neither rock, mud, sand, nor shells;
the
sounding-lead brought up nothing but a kind of metallic dust,
which glittered
with a strange iridescence, and the nature of which it
was impossible to
determine, as it was totally unlike what had ever
been known to be raised
from the bed of the Mediterranean.
"You must see, lieutenant, I should think, that we are not so near
the
coast of Algeria as you imagined."
The lieutenant shook his head. After pondering awhile, he said:
"If
we were farther away I should expect to find a depth of two
or three hundred
fathoms instead of five fathoms. Five fathoms!
I confess I am
puzzled."
For the next thirty-six hours, until the 4th of February, the sea
was
examined and explored with the most unflagging perseverance.
Its depth
remained invariable, still four, or at most five, fathoms;
and although its
bottom was assiduously dredged, it was only to prove
it barren of marine
production of any type.
The yacht made its way to lat. 36 degrees, and by reference to the
charts
it was tolerably certain that she was cruising over the site of the
Sahel,
the ridge that had separated the rich plain of the Mitidja from the
sea,
and of which the highest peak, Mount Boujereah, had reached an
altitude
of 1,200 feet; but even this peak, which might have been expected to
emerge
like an islet above the surface of the sea, was nowhere to be
traced.
Nothing was to be done but to put about, and return in
disappointment
towards the north.
Thus the _Dobryna_ regained the waters of the Mediterranean
without
discovering a trace of the missing province of Algeria.
CHAPTER XI
AN ISLAND TOMB
No longer, then, could there be any doubt as to the annihilation of
a
considerable portion of the colony. Not merely had there been a
submersion
of the land, but the impression was more and more confirmed that
the very
bowels of the earth must have yawned and closed again upon a large
territory.
Of the rocky substratum of the province it became more evident
than ever
that not a trace remained, and a new soil of unknown formation had
certainly
taken the place of the old sandy sea-bottom. As it altogether
transcended
the powers of those on board to elucidate the origin of this
catastrophe,
it was felt to be incumbent on them at least to ascertain its
extent.
After a long and somewhat wavering discussion, it was at length
decided
that the schooner should take advantage of the favorable wind
and weather,
and proceed at first towards the east, thus following
the outline of what had
formerly represented the coast of Africa,
until that coast had been lost in
boundless sea.
Not a vestige of it all remained; from Cape Matafuz to Tunis it had
all
gone, as though it had never been. The maritime town of Dellis,
built
like Algiers, amphitheater-wise, had totally disappeared;
the highest points
were quite invisible; not a trace on the horizon
was left of the Jurjura
chain, the topmost point of which was known
to have an altitude of more than
7,000 feet.
Unsparing of her fuel, the _Dobryna_ made her way at full steam
towards
Cape Blanc. Neither Cape Negro nor Cape Serrat was to be
seen.
The town of Bizerta, once charming in its oriental beauty,
had
vanished utterly; its marabouts, or temple-tombs, shaded
by magnificent palms
that fringed the gulf, which by reason of its
narrow mouth had the semblance
of a lake, all had disappeared,
giving place to a vast waste of sea, the
transparent waves of which,
as still demonstrated by the sounding-line, had
ever the same uniform
and arid bottom.
In the course of the day the schooner rounded the point where,
five weeks
previously, Cape Blanc had been so conspicuous an object,
and she was now
stemming the waters of what once had been
the Bay of Tunis. But bay
there was none, and the town from
which it had derived its name, with the
Arsenal, the Goletta,
and the two peaks of Bou-Kournein, had all vanished
from the view.
Cape Bon, too, the most northern promontory of Africa
and
the point of the continent nearest to the island of Sicily,
had been
included in the general devastation.
Before the occurrence of the recent prodigy, the bottom of
the
Mediterranean just at this point had formed a sudden ridge
across the Straits
of Libya. The sides of the ridge had shelved
to so great an extent
that, while the depth of water on the summit
had been little more than eleven
fathoms, that on either hand
of the elevation was little short of a hundred
fathoms.
A formation such as this plainly indicated that at some
remote
epoch Cape Bon had been connected with Cape Furina, the
extremity
of Sicily, in the same manner as Ceuta has doubtless
been
connected with Gibraltar.
Lieutenant Procope was too well acquainted with the Mediterranean
to be
unaware of this peculiarity, and would not lose the opportunity
of
ascertaining whether the submarine ridge still existed, or whether
the
sea-bottom between Sicily and Africa had undergone any modification.
Both Timascheff and Servadac were much interested in watching the
operations.
At a sign from the lieutenant, a sailor who was stationed at the
foot
of the fore-shrouds dropped the sounding-lead into the water, and in
reply
to Procope's inquiries, reported--"Five fathoms and a flat bottom."
The next aim was to determine the amount of depression on either
side of
the ridge, and for this purpose the _Dobryna_ was shifted
for a distance of
half a mile both to the right and left,
and the soundings taken at each
station. "Five fathoms and a
flat bottom," was the unvaried
announcement after each operation.
Not only, therefore, was it evident that
the submerged chain
between Cape Bon and Cape Furina no longer existed, but
it was
equally clear that the convulsion had caused a general leveling
of
the sea-bottom, and that the soil, degenerated, as it has been
said,
into a metallic dust of unrecognized composition, bore no trace
of
the sponges, sea-anemones, star-fish, sea-nettles, hydrophytes,
and shells
with which the submarine rocks of the Mediterranean
had hitherto been
prodigally clothed.
The _Dobryna_ now put about and resumed her explorations in a
southerly
direction. It remained, however, as remarkable as ever
how completely
throughout the voyage the sea continued to be deserted;
all expectations of
hailing a vessel bearing news from Europe were
entirely falsified, so that
more and more each member of the crew began
to be conscious of his isolation,
and to believe that the schooner,
like a second Noah's ark, carried the sole
survivors of a calamity
that had overwhelmed the earth.
On the 9th of February the _Dobryna_ passed over the site of the city of
Dido,
the ancient Byrsa--a Carthage, however, which was now more
completely
destroyed than ever Punic Carthage had been destroyed by Scipio
Afri-canus
or Roman Carthage by Hassan the Saracen.
In the evening, as the sun was sinking below the eastern horizon,
Captain
Servadac was lounging moodily against the taffrail.
From the heaven above,
where stars kept peeping fitfully from behind
the moving clouds, his eye
wandered mechanically to the waters below,
where the long waves were rising
and falling with the evening breeze.
All at once, his attention was arrested by a luminous speck straight
ahead
on the southern horizon. At first, imagining that he was the
victim
of some spectral illusion, he observed it with silent
attention;
but when, after some minutes, he became convinced that what he
saw
was actually a distant light, he appealed to one of the sailors,
by
whom his impression was fully corroborated. The intelligence
was
immediately imparted to Count Timascheff and the lieutenant.
"Is it land, do you suppose?" inquired Servadac, eagerly.
"I should be more inclined to think it is a light on board some
ship,"
replied the count.
"Whatever it is, in another hour we shall know all about it," said Servadac.
"No, captain," interposed Lieutenant Procope; "we shall know
nothing until
to-morrow."
"What! not bear down upon it at once?" asked the count in surprise.
"No, sir; I should much rather lay to and wait till daylight.
If we are
really near land, I should be afraid to approach it
in the dark."
The count expressed his approval of the lieutenant's caution,
and
thereupon all sail was shortened so as to keep the _Dobryna_
from making any
considerable progress all through the hours of night.
Few as those hours
were, they seemed to those on board as if their
end would never come.
Fearful lest the faint glimmer should at
any moment cease to be visible,
Hector Servadac did not quit
his post upon the deck; but the light continued
unchanged.
It shone with about the same degree of luster as a star of
the
second magnitude, and from the fact of its remaining
stationary,
Procope became more and more convinced that it was on land and
did
not belong to a passing vessel.
At sunrise every telescope was pointed with keenest interest
towards the
center of attraction. The light, of course, had ceased
to be visible,
but in the direction where it had been seen,
and at a distance of about ten
miles, there was the distinct
outline of a solitary island of very small
extent; rather, as the
count observed, it had the appearance of being the
projecting summit
of a mountain all but submerged. Whatever it was, it
was agreed
that its true character must be ascertained, not only to
gratify
their own curiosity, but for the benefit of all future
navigators.
The schooner accordingly was steered directly towards it,
and
in less than an hour had cast anchor within a few cables'
lengths of the
shore.
The little island proved to be nothing more than an arid
rock rising
abruptly about forty feet above the water.
It had no outlying reefs, a
circumstance that seemed to suggest
the probability that in the recent
convulsion it had sunk gradually,
until it had reached its present position
of equilibrium.
Without removing his eye from his telescope, Servadac exclaimed:
"There is
a habitation on the place; I can see an erection of some
kind quite
distinctly. Who can tell whether we shall not come across
a human
being?"
Lieutenant Procope looked doubtful. The island had all the
appearance
of being deserted, nor did a cannon-shot fired from the schooner
have
the effect of bringing any resident to the shore. Nevertheless, it
was
undeniable that there was a stone building situated on the top of the
rock,
and that this building had much the character of an Arabian mosque.
The boat was lowered and manned by the four sailors;
Servadac, Timascheff
and Procope were quickly rowed ashore,
and lost no time in commencing their
ascent of the steep acclivity.
Upon reaching the summit, they found their
progress arrested
by a kind of wall, or rampart of singular
construction,
its materials consisting mainly of vases, fragments of
columns,
carved bas-reliefs, statues, and portions of broken stelae, all
piled
promiscuously together without any pretense to artistic
arrangement.
They made their way into the enclosure, and finding an open
door,
they passed through and soon came to a second door,
also open, which
admitted them to the interior of the mosque,
consisting of a single chamber,
the walls of which were ornamented
in the Arabian style by sculptures of
indifferent execution.
In the center was a tomb of the very simplest kind,
and above
the tomb was suspended a large silver lamp with a
capacious
reservoir of oil, in which floated a long lighted wick,
the
flame of which was evidently the light that had attracted
Servadac's
attention on the previous night.
"Must there not have been a custodian of the shrine?" they mutually
asked;
but if such there had ever been, he must, they concluded, either have
fled
or have perished on that eventful night. Not a soul was there in
charge,
and the sole living occupants were a flock of wild cormorants
which,
startled at the entrance of the intruders, rose on wing, and took a
rapid
flight towards the south.
An old French prayer-book was lying on the corner of the tomb;
the volume
was open, and the page exposed to view was that
which contained the office
for the celebration of the 25th
of August. A sudden revelation dashed
across Servadac's mind.
The solemn isolation of the island tomb, the open
breviary,
the ritual of the ancient anniversary, all combined to
apprise
him of the sanctity of the spot upon which he stood.
"The tomb of St. Louis!" he exclaimed, and his companions
involuntarily
followed his example, and made a reverential
obeisance to the venerated
monument.
It was, in truth, the very spot on which tradition asserts that
the
canonized monarch came to die, a spot to which for six centuries
and more his
countrymen had paid the homage of a pious regard.
The lamp that had been
kindled at the memorial shrine of a saint
was now in all probability the only
beacon that threw a light
across the waters of the Mediterranean, and even
this ere long
must itself expire.
There was nothing more to explore. The three together quitted the
mosque,
and descended the rock to the shore, whence their boat
re-conveyed
them to the schooner, which was soon again on her southward
voyage;
and it was not long before the tomb of St. Louis, the only spot that
had
survived the mysterious shock, was lost to view.
CHAPTER XII
AT THE MERCY OF THE WINDS
As the affrighted cormorants had winged their flight towards the
south,
there sprang up a sanguine hope on board the schooner that land might
be
discovered in that direction. Thither, accordingly, it was
determined
to proceed, and in a few hours after quitting the island of the
tomb,
the _Dobryna_ was traversing the shallow waters that now covered
the
peninsula of Dakhul, which had separated the Bay of Tunis from
the Gulf of
Hammamet. For two days she continued an undeviating course,
and after a
futile search for the coast of Tunis, reached the latitude
of 34 degrees.
Here, on the 11th of February, there suddenly arose the cry of "Land!"
and
in the extreme horizon, right ahead, where land had never been before,
it was
true enough that a shore was distinctly to be seen.
What could it be?
It could not be the coast of Tripoli; for not only
would that low-lying shore
be quite invisible at such a distance,
but it was certain, moreover, that it
lay two degrees at least still
further south. It was soon observed that
this newly discovered land
was of very irregular elevation, that it extended
due east and west
across the horizon, thus dividing the gulf into two
separate sections
and completely concealing the island of Jerba, which must
lie behind.
Its position was duly traced on the _Dobryna_'s chart.
"How strange," exclaimed Hector Servadac, "that after sailing all
this
time over sea where we expected to find land, we have at last come
upon
land where we thought to find sea!"
"Strange, indeed," replied Lieutenant Procope; "and what appears
to me
almost as remarkable is that we have never once caught sight
either of one of
the Maltese tartans or one of the Levantine xebecs
that traffic so regularly
on the Mediterranean."
"Eastwards or westwards," asked the count--"which shall be our course?
All
farther progress to the south is checked."
"Westwards, by all means," replied Servadac quickly.
"I am longing to know
whether anything of Algeria is left
beyond the Shelif; besides, as we pass
Gourbi Island we might
take Ben Zoof on board, and then make away for
Gibraltar,
where we should be sure to learn something, at least,
of
European news."
With his usual air of stately courtesy, Count Timascheff
begged the
captain to consider the yacht at his own disposal,
and desired him to give
the lieutenant instructions accordingly.
Lieutenant Procope, however, hesitated, and after revolving
matters for a
few moments in his mind, pointed out that as
the wind was blowing directly
from the west, and seemed likely
to increase, if they went to the west in the
teeth of the weather,
the schooner would be reduced to the use of her engine
only,
and would have much difficulty in making any headway;
on the other
hand, by taking an eastward course, not only would
they have the advantage of
the wind, but, under steam and canvas,
might hope in a few days to be off the
coast of Egypt, and from
Alexandria or some other port they would have the
same opportunity
of getting tidings from Europe as they would at
Gibraltar.
Intensely anxious as he was to revisit the province of Oran, and
eager,
too, to satisfy himself of the welfare of his faithful Ben Zoof,
Servadac
could not but own the reasonableness of the lieutenant's
objections,
and yielded to the proposal that the eastward course should be
adopted.
The wind gave signs only too threatening of the breeze rising to a
gale;
but, fortunately, the waves did not culminate in breakers, but
rather
in a long swell which ran in the same direction as the vessel.
During the last fortnight the high temperature had been
gradually
diminishing, until it now reached an average of 20 degrees
Cent.
(or 68 degrees Fahr.), and sometimes descended as low as 15
degrees.
That this diminution was to be attributed to the change in
the
earth's orbit was a question that admitted of little doubt.
After approaching
so near to the sun as to cross the orbit of Venus,
the earth must now have
receded so far from the sun that its normal
distance of ninety-one millions
of miles was greatly increased,
and the probability was great that it was
approximating to the orbit of Mars,
that planet which in its physical
constitution most nearly resembles
our own. Nor was this supposition
suggested merely by the lowering
of the temperature; it was strongly
corroborated by the reduction
of the apparent diameter of the sun's disc to
the precise dimensions
which it would assume to an observer actually
stationed on the surface
of Mars. The necessary inference that seemed
to follow from these
phenomena was that the earth had been projected into a
new orbit,
which had the form of a very elongated ellipse.
Very slight, however, in comparison was the regard which these
astronomical
wonders attracted on board the _Dobryna_. All interest
there was too much
absorbed in terrestrial matters, and in ascertaining what
changes had taken
place in the configuration of the earth itself, to permit
much attention
to be paid to its erratic movements through space.
The schooner kept bravely on her way, but well out to sea,
at a distance
of two miles from land. There was good need
of this precaution, for so
precipitous was the shore that a
vessel driven upon it must inevitably have
gone to pieces;
it did not offer a single harbor of refuge, but, smooth
and
perpendicular as the walls of a fortress, it rose to a height
of two
hundred, and occasionally of three hundred feet.
The waves dashed violently
against its base. Upon the general
substratum rested a massive
conglomerate, the crystallizations
of which rose like a forest of gigantic
pyramids and obelisks.
But what struck the explorers more than anything was the appearance
of
singular newness that pervaded the whole of the region.
It all seemed so
recent in its formation that the atmosphere had had no
opportunity of
producing its wonted effect in softening the hardness
of its lines, in
rounding the sharpness of its angles, or in modifying
the color of its
surface; its outline was clearly marked against the sky,
and its substance,
smooth and polished as though fresh from a founder's mold,
glittered with the
metallic brilliancy that is characteristic of pyrites.
It seemed impossible
to come to any other conclusion but that the land
before them, continent or
island, had been upheaved by subterranean
forces above the surface of the
sea, and that it was mainly composed
of the same metallic element as had
characterized the dust so frequently
uplifted from the bottom.
The extreme nakedness of the entire tract was likewise very
extraordinary.
Elsewhere, in various quarters of the globe, there may be
sterile rocks,
but there are none so adamant as to be altogether unfurrowed
by the filaments
engendered in the moist residuum of the condensed vapor;
elsewhere there may
be barren steeps, but none so rigid as not to afford some
hold to vegetation,
however low and elementary may be its type; but here all
was bare, and blank,
and desolate--not a symptom of vitality was visible.
Such being the condition of the adjacent land, it could hardly be
a matter
of surprise that all the sea-birds, the albatross, the gull,
the sea-mew,
sought continual refuge on the schooner; day and night
they perched
fearlessly upon the yards, the report of a gun failing
to dislodge them, and
when food of any sort was thrown upon the deck,
they would dart down and
fight with eager voracity for the prize.
Their extreme avidity was recognized
as a proof that any land where they
could obtain a sustenance must be far
remote.
Onwards thus for several days the _Dobryna_ followed the contour of
the
inhospitable coast, of which the features would occasionally
change,
sometimes for two or three miles assuming the form of a simple
arris,
sharply defined as though cut by a chisel, when suddenly the
prismatic
lamellae soaring in rugged confusion would again recur; but all
along
there was the same absence of beach or tract of sand to mark its
base,
neither were there any of those shoals of rock that are ordinarily
found
in shallow water. At rare intervals there were some narrow
fissures, but not
a creek available for a ship to enter to replenish its
supply of water;
and the wide roadsteads were unprotected and exposed to
well-nigh every
point of the compass.
But after sailing two hundred and forty miles, the progress of the
_Dobryna_
was suddenly arrested. Lieutenant Procope, who had sedulously
inserted
the outline of the newly revealed shore upon the maps, announced
that it
had ceased to run east and west, and had taken a turn due
north,
thus forming a barrier to their continuing their previous
direction.
It was, of course, impossible to conjecture how far this barrier
extended;
it coincided pretty nearly with the fourteenth meridian of east
longitude;
and if it reached, as probably it did, beyond Sicily to Italy, it
was certain
that the vast basin of the Mediterranean, which had washed the
shores
alike of Europe, Asia, and Africa, must have been reduced to about
half
its original area.
It was resolved to proceed upon the same plan as heretofore, following
the
boundary of the land at a safe distance. Accordingly, the head
of the
_Dobryna_ was pointed north, making straight, as it was presumed,
for the
south of Europe. A hundred miles, or somewhat over,
in that direction,
and it was to be anticipated she would come in sight
of Malta, if only that
ancient island, the heritage in succession
of Phoenicians, Carthaginians,
Sicilians, Romans, Vandals, Greeks, Arabians,
and the knights of Rhodes,
should still be undestroyed.
But Malta, too, was gone; and when, upon the 14th, the sounding-line
was
dropped upon its site, it was only with the same result
so oftentimes
obtained before.
"The devastation is not limited to Africa," observed the count.
"Assuredly not," assented the lieutenant; adding, "and I confess I
am
almost in despair whether we shall ever ascertain its limits.
To what quarter
of Europe, if Europe still exists, do you propose
that I should now direct
your course?"
"To Sicily, Italy, France!" ejaculated Servadac, eagerly,--"anywhere where
we
can learn the truth of what has befallen us."
"How if we are the sole survivors?" said the count, gravely.
Hector Servadac was silent; his own secret presentiment so
thoroughly
coincided with the doubts expressed by the count,
that he refrained from
saying another word.
The coast, without deviation, still tended towards the north.
No
alternative, therefore, remained than to take a westerly course
and to
attempt to reach the northern shores of the Mediterranean. On the
l6th
the _Dobryna_ essayed to start upon her altered way, but it
seemed as if the
elements had conspired to obstruct her progress.
A furious tempest arose; the
wind beat dead in the direction
of the coast, and the danger incurred by a
vessel of a tonnage
so light was necessarily very great.
Lieutenant Procope was extremely uneasy. He took in all sail,
struck
his topmasts, and resolved to rely entirely on his engine.
But the peril
seemed only to increase. Enormous waves caught
the schooner and carried
her up to their crests, whence again
she was plunged deep into the abysses
that they left.
The screw failed to keep its hold upon the water, but
continually
revolved with useless speed in the vacant air; and
thus,
although the steam was forced on to the extremest limit
consistent
with safety, the vessel held her way with the utmost
difficulty,
and recoiled before the hurricane.
Still, not a single resort for refuge did the inaccessible
shore
present. Again and again the lieutenant asked himself
what would become
of him and his comrades, even if they should
survive the peril of shipwreck,
and gain a footing upon the cliff.
What resources could they expect to find
upon that scene of desolation?
What hope could they entertain that any
portion of the old continent
still existed beyond that dreary barrier?
It was a trying time, but throughout it all the crew behaved
with the
greatest courage and composure; confident in the skill
of their commander,
and in the stability of their ship, they performed
their duties with
steadiness and unquestioning obedience.
But neither skill, nor courage, nor obedience could avail;
all was in
vain. Despite the strain put upon her engine,
the schooner, bare of
canvas (for not even the smallest stay-sail
could have withstood the violence
of the storm), was drifting with
terrific speed towards the menacing
precipices, which were only a.
few short miles to leeward. Fully alive
to the hopelessness
of their situation, the crew were all on deck.
"All over with us, sir!" said Procope to the count.
"I have done
everything that man could do; but our case
is desperate. Nothing short
of a miracle can save us now.
Within an hour we must go to pieces upon yonder
rocks."
"Let us, then, commend ourselves to the providence of Him
to Whom nothing
is impossible," replied the count, in a calm,
clear voice that could be
distinctly heard by all; and as he spoke,
he reverently uncovered, an example
in which he was followed
by all the rest.
The destruction of the vessel seeming thus inevitable,
Lieutenant Procope
took the best measures he could to insure
a few days' supply of food for any
who might escape ashore.
He ordered several cases of provisions and kegs of
water to be
brought on deck, and saw that they were securely lashed to
some
empty barrels, to make them float after the ship had gone down.
Less and less grew the distance from the shore, but no creek,
no inlet,
could be discerned in the towering wall of cliff,
which seemed about to
topple over and involve them in annihilation.
Except a change of wind or, as
Procope observed, a supernatural
rifting of the rock, nothing could bring
deliverance now.
But the wind did not veer, and in a few minutes more the
schooner
was hardly three cables' distance from the fatal land.
All were
aware that their last moment had arrived.
Servadac and the count grasped each
other's hands for a long farewell;
and, tossed by the tremendous waves, the
schooner was on the very point
of being hurled upon the cliff, when a ringing
shout was heard.
"Quick, boys, quick! Hoist the jib, and right the
tiller!"
Sudden and startling as the unexpected orders were, they were executed
as
if by magic.
The lieutenant, who had shouted from the bow, rushed astern and took the
helm,
and before anyone had time to speculate upon the object of his
maneuvers,
he shouted again, "Look out! sharp! watch the sheets!"
An involuntary cry broke forth from all on board.
But it was no cry of
terror. Right ahead was a narrow
opening in the solid rock; it was
hardly forty feet wide.
Whether it was a passage or no, it mattered
little;
it was at least a refuge; and, driven by wind and wave,
the
_Dobryna_, under the dexterous guidance of the lieutenant,
dashed in between
its perpendicular walls.
Had she not immured herself in a perpetual prison?
CHAPTER XIII
A ROYAL SALUTE
"Then I take your bishop, major," said Colonel Murphy, as he made
a
move that he had taken since the previous evening to consider.
"I was afraid you would," replied Major Oliphant, looking intently
at the
chess-board.
Such was the way in which a long silence was broken on the morning
of the
17th of February by the old calendar.
Another day elapsed before another move was made. It was a protracted
game;
it had, in fact, already lasted some months--the players being so
deliberate,
and so fearful of taking a step without the most mature
consideration,
that even now they were only making the twentieth move.
Both of them, moreover, were rigid disciples of the renowned Philidor,
who
pronounces that to play the pawns well is "the soul of chess";
and,
accordingly, not one pawn had been sacrificed without
a most vigorous
defense.
The men who were thus beguiling their leisure were two
officers in the
British army--Colonel Heneage Finch Murphy
and Major Sir John Temple
Oliphant. Remarkably similar in
personal appearance, they were hardly
less so in personal character.
Both of them were about forty years of age;
both of them were tall
and fair, with bushy whiskers and mustaches; both of
them were
phlegmatic in temperament, and both much addicted to the
wearing
of their uniforms. They were proud of their nationality, and
exhibited
a manifest dislike, verging upon contempt, of everything
foreign.
Probably they would have felt no surprise if they had been
told
that Anglo-Saxons were fashioned out of some specific clay,
the
properties of which surpassed the investigation of chemical analysis.
Without
any intentional disparagement they might, in a certain way,
be compared to
two scarecrows which, though perfectly harmless
in themselves, inspire some
measure of respect, and are excellently
adapted to protect the territory
intrusted to their guardianship.
English-like, the two officers had made themselves thoroughly at home
in
the station abroad in which it had been their lot to be quartered.
The
faculty of colonization seems to be indigenous to the native character;
once
let an Englishman plant his national standard on the surface of the moon,
and
it would not be long before a colony was established round it.
The officers had a servant, named Kirke, and a company of ten
soldiers of
the line. This party of thirteen men were apparently
the sole survivors
of an overwhelming catastrophe, which on the 1st
of January had transformed
an enormous rock, garrisoned with well-nigh
two thousand troops, into an
insignificant island far out to sea.
But although the transformation had been
so marvelous, it cannot
be said that either Colonel Murphy or Major Oliphant
had made much
demonstration of astonishment.
"This is all very peculiar, Sir John," observed the colonel.
"Yes, colonel; very peculiar," replied the major.
"England will be sure to send for us," said one officer.
"No doubt she will," answered the other.
Accordingly, they came to the mutual resolution that they would
"stick to
their post."
To say the truth, it would have been a difficult matter for
the gallant
officers to do otherwise; they had but one small boat;
therefore, it was well
that they made a virtue of necessity,
and resigned themselves to patient
expectation of the British
ship which, in due time, would bring relief.
They had no fear of starvation. Their island was mined with
subterranean
stores, more than ample for thirteen men--nay, for thirteen
Englishmen--
for the next five years at least. Preserved meat, ale,
brandy--all were
in abundance; consequently, as the men expressed it, they
were in this
respect "all right."
Of course, the physical changes that had taken place had attracted the
notice
both of officers and men. But the reversed position of east and
west,
the diminution of the force of gravity, the altered rotation of the
earth,
and her projection upon a new orbit, were all things that gave them
little
concern and no uneasiness; and when the colonel and the major had
replaced
the pieces on the board which had been disturbed by the
convulsion,
any surprise they might have felt at the chess-men losing some
portion
of their weight was quite forgotten in the satisfaction of seeing
them
retain their equilibrium.
One phenomenon, however, did not fail to make its due impression upon
the
men; this was the diminution in the length of day and night.
Three days after
the catastrophe, Corporal Pim, on behalf of himself
and his comrades,
solicited a formal interview with the officers.
The request having been
granted, Pim, with the nine soldiers,
all punctiliously wearing the
regimental tunic of scarlet and trousers
of invisible green, presented
themselves at the door of the colonel's room,
where he and his
brother-officer were continuing their game.
Raising his hand respectfully to
his cap, which he wore poised jauntily
over his right ear, and scarcely held
on by the strap below his under lip,
the corporal waited permission to
speak.
After a lingering survey of the chess-board, the colonel slowly
lifted his
eyes, and said with official dignity, "Well, men,
what is it?"
"First of all, sir," replied the corporal, "we want to speak to you
about
our pay, and then we wish to have a word with the major
about our
rations."
"Say on, then," said Colonel Murphy. "What is it about your pay?"
"Just this, sir; as the days are only half as long as they were,
we should
like to know whether our pay is to be diminished in proportion."
The colonel was taken somewhat aback, and did not reply
immediately,
though by some significant nods towards the major,
he
indicated that he thought the question very reasonable.
After a few moments'
reflection, he replied, "It must, I think,
be allowed that your pay was
calculated from sunrise to sunrise;
there was no specification of what the
interval should be.
Your pay will continue as before. England can
afford it."
A buzz of approval burst involuntarily from all the men, but
military
discipline and the respect due to their officers kept them in
check
from any boisterous demonstration of their satisfaction.
"And now, corporal, what is your business with me?" asked Major Oliphant.
"We want to know whether, as the days are only six hours long,
we are to
have but two meals instead of four?"
The officers looked at each other, and by their glances agreed
that the
corporal was a man of sound common sense.
"Eccentricities of nature," said the major, "cannot interfere
with
military regulations. It is true that there will be but an
interval
of an hour and a half between them, but the rule stands
good--
four meals a day. England is too rich to grudge her soldiers
any
of her soldiers' due. Yes; four meals a day."
"Hurrah!" shouted the soldiers, unable this time to keep their
delight
within the bounds of military decorum; and, turning to the
right-about,
they marched away, leaving the officers to renew the
all-absorbing game.
However confident everyone upon the island might profess
to be that succor
would be sent them from their native land--
for Britain never abandons any of
her sons--it could not be disguised
that that succor was somewhat tardy in
making its appearance.
Many and various were the conjectures to account for
the delay.
Perhaps England was engrossed with domestic matters,
or perhaps
she was absorbed in diplomatic difficulties;
or perchance, more likely than
all, Northern Europe had received
no tidings of the convulsion that had
shattered the south.
The whole party throve remarkably well upon the liberal
provisions
of the commissariat department, and if the officers failed
to
show the same tendency to _embonpoint_ which was fast becoming
characteristic
of the men, it was only because they deemed it due
to their rank to curtail
any indulgences which might compromise
the fit of their uniform.
On the whole, time passed indifferently well. An Englishman rarely
suffers
from _ennui_, and then only in his own country, when required to
conform
to what he calls "the humbug of society"; and the two officers, with
their
similar tastes, ideas, and dispositions, got on together
admirably.
It is not to be questioned that they were deeply affected by a
sense
of regret for their lost comrades, and astounded beyond measure at
finding
themselves the sole survivors of a garrison of 1,895 men, but with
true
British pluck and self-control, they had done nothing more than draw
up
a report that 1,882 names were missing from the muster-roll.
The island itself, the sole surviving fragment of an enormous pile
of rock
that had reared itself some 1,600 feet above the sea,
was not, strictly
speaking, the only land that was visible;
for about twelve miles to the south
there was another island,
apparently the very counterpart of what was now
occupied
by the Englishmen. It was only natural that this
should
awaken some interest even in the most imperturbable minds,
and
there was no doubt that the two officers, during one of
the rare intervals
when they were not absorbed in their game,
had decided that it would be
desirable at least to ascertain
whether the island was deserted, or whether
it might not be
occupied by some others, like themselves, survivors
from
the general catastrophe. Certain it is that one morning,
when
the weather was bright and calm, they had embarked alone
in the little boat,
and been absent for seven or eight hours.
Not even to Corporal Pim did they
communicate the object of
their excursion, nor say one syllable as to its
result, and it
could only be inferred from their manner that they were
quite
satisfied with what they had seen; and very shortly afterwards
Major
Oliphant was observed to draw up a lengthy document,
which was no sooner
finished than it was formally signed and
sealed with the seal of the 33rd
Regiment. It was
directed:
_To the
First Lord of the
Admiralty,
London,_
and kept in readiness for transmission by the first ship that
should
hail in sight. But time elapsed, and here was the l8th of
February
without an opportunity having been afforded for any
communication
with the British Government.
At breakfast that morning, the colonel observed to the major
that he was
under the most decided impression that the l8th
of February was a royal
anniversary; and he went on to say that,
although he had received no definite
instructions on the subject,
he did not think that the peculiar circumstances
under which they
found themselves should prevent them from giving the day
its
due military honors.
The major quite concurred; and it was mutually agreed that the
occasion
must be honored by a bumper of port, and by a royal
salute.
Corporal Pim must be sent for. The corporal soon made his
appearance,
smacking his lips, having, by a ready intuition, found a
pretext
for a double morning ration of spirits.
"The l8th of February, you know, Pim," said the colonel;
"we must have a
salute of twenty-one guns."
"Very good," replied Pim, a man of few words.
"And take care that your fellows don't get their arms and legs blown
off,"
added the officer.
"Very good, sir," said the corporal; and he made his salute and withdrew.
Of all the bombs, howitzers, and various species of artillery with
which
the fortress had been crowded, one solitary piece remained.
This was a
cumbrous muzzle-loader of 9-inch caliber, and, in default
of the smaller
ordnance generally employed for the purpose,
had to be brought into
requisition for the royal salute.
A sufficient number of charges having been provided, the corporal brought
his
men to the reduct, whence the gun's mouth projected over a sloping
embrasure.
The two officers, in cocked hats and full staff uniform, attended
to take
charge of the proceedings. The gun was maneuvered in strict
accordance
with the rules of "The Artilleryman's Manual," and the firing
commenced.
Not unmindful of the warning he had received, the corporal was most
careful
between each discharge to see that every vestige of fire was
extinguished,
so as to prevent an untimely explosion while the men were
reloading;
and accidents, such as so frequently mar public
rejoicings,
were all happily avoided.
Much to the chagrin of both Colonel Murphy and Major Oliphant,
the effect
of the salute fell altogether short of their anticipations.
The weight of the
atmosphere was so reduced that there was
comparatively little resistance to
the explosive force of the gases,
liberated at the cannon's mouth, and there
was consequently none
of the reverberation, like rolling thunder, that
ordinarily follows
the discharge of heavy artillery.
Twenty times had the gun been fired, and it was on the point of being
loaded
for the last time, when the colonel laid his hand upon the arm of the
man
who had the ramrod. "Stop!" he said; "we will have a ball this
time.
Let us put the range of the piece to the test."
"A good idea!" replied the major. "Corporal, you hear the orders."
In quick time an artillery-wagon was on the spot, and the men
lifted out a
full-sized shot, weighing 200 lbs., which,
under ordinary circumstances, the
cannon would carry about four miles.
It was proposed, by means of telescopes,
to note the place
where the ball first touched the water, and thus to
obtain
an approximation sufficiently accurate as to the true range.
Having been duly charged with powder and ball, the gun was raised to an
angle
of something under 45 degrees, so as to allow proper development to the
curve
that the projectile would make, and, at a signal from the major, the
light
was applied to the priming.
"Heavens!" "By all that's good!" exclaimed both officers
in one
breath, as, standing open-mouthed, they hardly knew
whether they were to
believe the evidence of their own senses.
"Is it possible?"
The diminution of the force of attraction at the earth's surface
was so
considerable that the ball had sped beyond the horizon.
"Incredible!" ejaculated the colonel.
"Incredible!" echoed the major.
"Six miles at least!" observed the one.
"Ay, more than that!" replied the other.
Awhile, they gazed at the sea and at each other in mute amazement. But
in
the midst of their perplexity, what sound was that which startled
them?
Was it mere fancy? Was it the reverberation of the cannon still
booming
in their ears? Or was it not truly the report of another and a
distant
gun in answer to their own? Attentively and eagerly they
listened.
Twice, thrice did the sound repeat itself. It was quite
distinct.
There could be no mistake.
"I told you so," cried the colonel, triumphantly. "I knew our
country
would not forsake us; it is an English ship, no doubt."
In half an hour two masts were visible above the horizon. "See!
Was I
not right? Our country was sure to send to our relief.
Here is
the ship."
"Yes," replied the major; "she responded to our gun."
"It is to be hoped," muttered the corporal, "that our ball has done
her no
damage."
Before long the hull was full in sight. A long trail of smoke
betokened
her to be a steamer; and very soon, by the aid of the glass, it
could
be ascertained that she was a schooner-yacht, and making
straight
for the island. A flag at her mast-head fluttered in the
breeze,
and towards this the two officers, with the keenest
attention,
respectively adjusted their focus.
Simultaneously the two telescopes were lowered. The colonel
and the
major stared at each other in blank astonishment.
"Russian!" they gasped.
And true it was that the flag that floated at the head of yonder mast
was
the blue cross of Russia.
CHAPTER XIV
SENSITIVE NATIONALITY
When the schooner had approached the island, the Englishmen were able to
make
out the name "_Dobryna_" painted on the aft-board. A sinuous
irregularity
of the coast had formed a kind of cove, which, though hardly
spacious enough
for a few fishing-smacks, would afford the yacht a temporary
anchorage,
so long as the wind did not blow violently from either west or
south.
Into this cove the _Dobryna_ was duly signaled, and as soon as
she
was safely moored, she lowered her four-oar, and Count Timascheff
and
Captain Servadac made their way at once to land.
Colonel Heneage Finch Murphy and Major Sir John Temple Oliphant
stood,
grave and prim, formally awaiting the arrival of their
visitors.
Captain Servadac, with the uncontrolled vivacity natural to a
Frenchman,
was the first to speak.
"A joyful sight, gentlemen!" he exclaimed. "It will give us
unbounded
pleasure to shake hands again with some of our fellow-creatures.
You,
no doubt, have escaped the same disaster as ourselves."
But the English officers, neither by word nor gesture, made the
slightest
acknowledgment of this familiar greeting.
"What news can you give us of France, England, or Russia?" continued
Servadac,
perfectly unconscious of the stolid rigidity with which his
advances
were received. "We are anxious to hear anything you can tell
us.
Have you had communications with Europe? Have you--"
"To whom have we the honor of speaking?" at last interposed
Colonel
Murphy, in the coldest and most measured tone,
and drawing himself up to his
full height.
"Ah! how stupid! I forgot," said Servadac, with the slightest
possible
shrug of the shoulders; "we have not been introduced."
Then, with a wave of his hand towards his companion, who meanwhile
had
exhibited a reserve hardly less than that of the British officers, he
said:
"Allow me to introduce you to Count Wassili Timascheff."
" Major Sir John Temple Oliphant," replied the colonel.
The Russian and the Englishman mutually exchanged the stiffest of bows.
"I have the pleasure of introducing Captain Servadac,"
said the count in
his turn.
"And this is Colonel Heneage Finch Murphy," was the major's grave rejoinder.
More bows were interchanged and the ceremony brought to its due
conclusion.
It need hardly be said that the conversation had been carried on
in French,
a language which is generally known both by Russians and
Englishmen--
a circumstance that is probably in some measure to be accounted
for by
the refusal of Frenchmen to learn either Russian or English.
The formal preliminaries of etiquette being thus complete,
there was no
longer any obstacle to a freer intercourse.
The colonel, signing to his
guests to follow, led the way
to the apartment occupied jointly by himself
and the major,
which, although only a kind of casemate hollowed in the
rock,
nevertheless wore a general air of comfort. Major
Oliphant
accompanied them, and all four having taken their seats,
the
conversation was commenced.
Irritated and disgusted at all the cold formalities,
Hector Servadac
resolved to leave all the talking to the count;
and he, quite aware that the
Englishmen would adhere to the fiction
that they could be supposed to know
nothing that had transpired
previous to the introduction felt himself obliged
to recapitulate
matters from the very beginning.
"You must be aware, gentlemen," began the count, "that a most
singular
catastrophe occurred on the 1st of January last.
Its cause, its limits we
have utterly failed to discover,
but from the appearance of the island on
which we find you here,
you have evidently experienced its devastating
consequences."
The Englishmen, in silence, bowed assent.
"Captain Servadac, who accompanies me," continued the count,
"has been
most severely tried by the disaster. Engaged as he was
in an important
mission as a staff-officer in Algeria--"
"A French colony, I believe," interposed Major Oliphant, half shutting
his
eyes with an expression of supreme indifference.
Servadac was on the point of making some cutting retort,
but Count
Timascheff, without allowing the interruption to be noticed,
calmly continued
his narrative:
"It was near the mouth of the Shelif that a portion of Africa, on
that
eventful night, was transformed into an island which alone
survived;
the rest of the vast continent disappeared as completely as if
it
had never been."
The announcement seemed by no means startling to the phlegmatic colonel.
"Indeed!" was all he said.
"And where were you?" asked Major Oliphant.
"I was out at sea, cruising in my yacht; hard by; and I look upon
it as a
miracle, and nothing less, that I and my crew escaped
with our lives."
"I congratulate you on your luck," replied the major.
The count resumed: "It was about a month after the great
disruption
that I was sailing--my engine having sustained some damage in the
shock--
along the Algerian coast, and had the pleasure of meeting with
my
previous acquaintance, Captain Servadac, who was resident upon the
island
with his orderly, Ben Zoof."
"Ben who?" inquired the major.
"Zoof! Ben Zoof!" ejaculated Servadac, who could scarcely shout
loud
enough to relieve his pent-up feelings.
Ignoring this ebullition of the captain's spleen, the count went on to
say:
"Captain Servadac was naturally most anxious to get what news he
could.
Accordingly, he left his servant on the island in charge of his
horses,
and came on board the _Dobryna_ with me. We were quite at a
loss to know
where we should steer, but decided to direct our course to what
previously
had been the east, in order that we might, if possible, discover
the colony
of Algeria; but of Algeria not a trace remained."
The colonel curled his lip, insinuating only too plainly that to him
it
was by no means surprising that a French colony should be wanting
in the
element of stability. Servadac observed the supercilious look,
and half
rose to his feet, but, smothering his resentment, took his seat
again without
speaking.
"The devastation, gentlemen," said the count, who persistently refused
to
recognize the Frenchman's irritation, "everywhere was terrible
and
complete. Not only was Algeria lost, but there was no trace of
Tunis,
except one solitary rock, which was crowned by an ancient tomb of
one
of the kings of France--"
"Louis the Ninth, I presume," observed the colonel.
"Saint Louis," blurted out Servadac, savagely.
Colonel Murphy slightly smiled.
Proof against all interruption, Count Timascheff, as if he had not heard
it,
went on without pausing. He related how the schooner had pushed her
way
onwards to the south, and had reached the Gulf of Cabes; and how she
had
ascertained for certain that the Sahara Sea had no longer an
existence.
The smile of disdain again crossed the colonel's face;
he could not
conceal his opinion that such a destiny for the work
of a Frenchman could be
no matter of surprise.
"Our next discovery," continued the count, "was that a new coast
had been
upheaved right along in front of the coast of Tripoli,
the geological
formation of which was altogether strange, and which
extended to the north as
far as the proper place of Malta."
"And Malta," cried Servadac, unable to control himself any
longer;
"Malta--town, forts, soldiers, governor, and all--has
vanished
just like Algeria."
For a moment a cloud rested upon the colonel's brow, only to give
place to
an expression of decided incredulity.
"The statement seems highly incredible," he said.
"Incredible?" repeated Servadac. "Why is it that you doubt my word?"
The captain's rising wrath did not prevent the colonel from replying
coolly,
"Because Malta belongs to England."
"I can't help that," answered Servadac, sharply; "it has gone
just as
utterly as if it had belonged to China."
Colonel Murphy turned deliberately away from Servadac,
and appealed to the
count: "Do you not think you may have made
some error, count, in
reckoning the bearings of your yacht?"
"No, colonel, I am quite certain of my reckonings; and not only can
I
testify that Malta has disappeared, but I can affirm that a large
section of
the Mediterranean has been closed in by a new continent.
After the most
anxious investigation, we could discover only one narrow
opening in all the
coast, and it is by following that little channel
that we have made our way
hither. England, I fear, has suffered grievously
by the late
catastrophe. Not only has Malta been entirely lost,
but of the Ionian
Islands that were under England's protection,
there seems to be but little
left."
"Ay, you may depend upon it," said Servadac, breaking in upon
the
conversation petulantly, "your grand resident lord high
commissioner has not
much to congratulate himself about in
the condition of Corfu."
The Englishmen were mystified.
"Corfu, did you say?" asked Major Oliphant.
"Yes, Corfu; I said Corfu," replied Servadac, with a sort
of malicious
triumph.
The officers were speechless with astonishment.
The silence of bewilderment was broken at length by Count
Timascheff
making inquiry whether nothing had been heard from
England,
either by telegraph or by any passing ship.
"No," said the colonel; "not a ship has passed; and the cable is broken."
"But do not the Italian telegraphs assist you?" continued the count.
"Italian! I do not comprehend you. You must mean the Spanish, surely."
"How?" demanded Timascheff.
"Confound it!" cried the impatient Servadac. "What matters
whether
it be Spanish or Italian? Tell us, have you had no
communication
at all from Europe?--no news of any sort from London?"
"Hitherto, none whatever," replied the colonel; adding with a
stately
emphasis, "but we shall be sure to have tidings from
England before
long."
"Whether England is still in existence or not, I suppose,"
said Servadac,
in a tone of irony.
The Englishmen started simultaneously to their feet.
"England in existence?" the colonel cried. "England! Ten
times
more probable that France--"
"France!" shouted Servadac in a passion. "France is not an island
that
can be submerged; France is an integral portion of a solid
continent.
France, at least, is safe."
A scene appeared inevitable, and Count Timascheff's efforts to
conciliate
the excited parties were of small avail.
"You are at home here," said Servadac, with as much calmness
as he could
command; "it will be advisable, I think,
for this discussion to be carried on
in the open air."
And hurriedly he left the room. Followed immediately
by the others,
he led the way to a level piece of ground, which he
considered
he might fairly claim as neutral territory.
"Now, gentlemen," he began haughtily, "permit me to represent that,
in
spite of any loss France may have sustained in the fate
of Algeria, France is
ready to answer any provocation that affects
her honor. Here I am the
representative of my country, and here,
on neutral ground--"
"Neutral ground?" objected Colonel Murphy; "I beg your pardon.
This,
Captain Servadac, is English territory. Do you not see
the English
flag?" and, as he spoke, he pointed with national pride
to the British
standard floating over the top of the island.
"Pshaw!" cried Servadac, with a contemptuous sneer; "that flag,
you know,
has been hoisted but a few short weeks."
"That flag has floated where it is for ages," asserted the colonel.
"An imposture!" shouted Servadac, as he stamped with rage.
Recovering his composure in a degree, he continued:
"Can you suppose that
I am not aware that this island on which we
find you is what remains of the
Ionian representative republic,
over which you English exercise the right of
protection,
but have no claim of government?"
The colonel and the major looked at each other in amazement.
Although Count Timascheff secretly sympathized with Servadac,
he had
carefully refrained from taking part in the dispute;
but he was on the point
of interfering, when the colonel,
in a greatly subdued tone, begged to be
allowed to speak.
"I begin to apprehend," he said, "that you must be la-boring under
some
strange mistake. There is no room for questioning that the
territory
here is England's--England's by right of conquest; ceded to
England
by the Treaty of Utrecht. Three times, indeed--in 1727, 1779,
and 1792--
France and Spain have disputed our title, but always to no
purpose.
You are, I assure you, at the present moment, as much on English
soil
as if you were in London, in the middle of Trafalgar Square."
It was now the turn of the captain and the count to look surprised.
"Are
we not, then, in Corfu?" they asked.
"You are at Gibraltar," replied the colonel.
Gibraltar! The word fell like a thunderclap upon their
ears.
Gibraltar! the western extremity of the Mediterranean! Why, had
they
not been sailing persistently to the east? Could they be
wrong
in imagining that they had reached the Ionian Islands? What
new
mystery was this?
Count Timascheff was about to proceed with a more rigorous
investigation,
when the attention of all was arrested by a loud
outcry.
Turning round, they saw that the crew of the _Dobryna_ was in
hot
dispute with the English soldiers. A general altercation
had arisen
from a disagreement between the sailor Panofka
and Corporal Pim. It had
transpired that the cannon-ball fired
in experiment from the island had not
only damaged one of the spars
of the schooner, but had broken Panofka's pipe,
and, moreover, had just
grazed his nose, which, for a Russian's, was
unusually long.
The discussion over this mishap led to mutual
recriminations,
till the sailors had almost come to blows with the
garrison.
Servadac was just in the mood to take Panofka's part, which drew
from
Major Oliphant the remark that England could not be held
responsible for any
accidental injury done by her cannon,
and if the Russian's long nose came in
the way of the ball,
the Russian must submit to the mischance.
This was too much for Count Timascheff, and having poured
out a torrent of
angry invective against the English officers,
he ordered his crew to embark
immediately.
"We shall meet again," said Servadac, as they pushed off from shore.
"Whenever you please," was the cool reply.
The geographical mystery haunted the minds of both the count
and the
captain, and they felt they could never rest till they
had ascertained what
had become of their respective countries.
They were glad to be on board
again, that they might résumé
their voyage of investigation, and in two hours
were out of sight
of the sole remaining fragment of Gibraltar.
CHAPTER XV
AN ENIGMA FROM THE SEA
Lieutenant Procope had been left on board in charge of the
_Dobryna_,
and on resuming the voyage it was a task of some difficulty
to
make him understand the fact that had just come to light.
Some hours were
spent in discussion and in attempting to penetrate
the mysteries of the
situation.
There were certain things of which they were perfectly certain.
They could
be under no misapprehension as to the distance they
had positively sailed
from Gourbi Island towards the east
before their further progress was
arrested by the unknown shore;
as nearly as possible that was fifteen
degrees; the length
of the narrow strait by which they had made their way
across
that land to regain the open sea was about three miles and a
half;
thence onward to the island, which they had been assured,
on
evidence that they could not disbelieve, to be upon
the site of Gibraltar,
was four degrees; while from Gibraltar
to Gourbi Island was seven degrees or
but little more.
What was it altogether? Was it not less than thirty
degrees?
In that latitude, the degree of longitude represents eight
and
forty miles. What, then, did it all amount to?
Indubitably, to less
than 1,400 miles. So brief a voyage would bring
the _Dobryna_ once
again to her starting-point, or, in other words,
would enable her to complete
the circumnavigation of the globe.
How changed the condition of things!
Previously, to sail from
Malta to Gibraltar by an eastward course would have
involved
the passage of the Suez Canal, the Red Sea, the Indian Ocean,
the
Pacific, the Atlantic; but what had happened now?
Why, Gibraltar had been
reached as if it had been just at Corfu,
and some three hundred and thirty
degrees of the earth's circuit
had vanished utterly.
After allowing for a certain margin of miscalculation, the main
fact
remained undeniable; and the necessary inference that Lieutenant
Procope
drew from the round of the earth being completed in 1 ,400
miles,
was that the earth's diameter had been reduced by about
fifteen
sixteenths of its length.
"If that be so," observed the count, "it accounts for some
of the strange
phenomena we witness. If our world has become
so insignificant a
spheroid, not only has its gravity diminished,
but its rotary speed has been
accelerated; and this affords an
adequate explanation of our days and nights
being thus curtailed.
But how about the new orbit in which we are
moving?"
He paused and pondered, and then looked at Procope as though
awaiting from
him some further elucidation of the difficulty.
The lieutenant
hesitated. When, in a few moments, he began
to speak, Servadac smiled
intelligently, anticipating the answer
he was about to hear.
"My conjecture is," said Procope, "that a fragment of considerable
magnitude
has been detached from the earth; that it has carried with it an
envelope
of the earth's atmosphere, and that it is now traveling through the
solar
system in an orbit that does not correspond at all with the proper
orbit
of the earth."
The hypothesis was plausible; but what a multitude of
bewildering
speculations it entailed! If, in truth, a certain mass had
been broken
off from the terrestrial sphere, whither would it wend its
way?
What would be the measure of the eccentricity of its path?
What would
be its period round the sun? Might it not, like a comet,
be carried
away into the vast infinity of space? or, on the other hand,
might it not be
attracted to the great central source of light and heat,
and be absorbed in
it? Did its orbit correspond with the orbit
of the ecliptic? and was
there no chance of its ever uniting again
with the globe, from which it had
been torn off by so sudden and
violent a disruption?
A thoughtful silence fell upon them all, which Servadac was the first
to
break. "Lieutenant," he said, "your explanation is ingenious,
and
accounts for many appearances; but it seems to me that in one
point it
fails."
"How so?" replied Procope. "To my mind the theory meets all objections."
"I think not," Servadac answered. "In one point, at least,
it
appears to me to break down completely."
"What is that?" asked the lieutenant.
"Stop a moment," said the captain. "Let us see that we
understand
each other right. Unless I mistake you, your hypothesis is
that a
fragment of the earth, comprising the Mediterranean and its
shores
from Gibraltar to Malta, has been developed into a new
asteroid,
which is started on an independent orbit in the solar
regions.
Is not that your meaning?"
"Precisely so," the lieutenant acquiesced.
"Well, then," continued Servadac, "it seems to me to be at
fault in this
respect: it fails, and fails completely,
to account for the geological
character of the land that we
have found now encompassing this sea.
Why, if the new land is
a fragment of the old--why does it not retain its old
formation?
What has become of the granite and the calcareous deposits?
How
is it that these should all be changed into a mineral
concrete with which we
have no acquaintance?"
No doubt, it was a serious objection; for, however likely it might
be that
a mass of the earth on being detached would be eccentric
in its movements,
there was no probable reason to be alleged why
the material of its substance
should undergo so complete a change.
There was nothing to account for the
fertile shores, rich in vegetation,
being transformed into rocks arid and
barren beyond precedent.
The lieutenant felt the difficulty, and owned himself unprepared to give
at
once an adequate solution; nevertheless, he declined to renounce his
theory.
He asserted that the arguments in favor of it carried conviction to
his mind,
and that he entertained no doubt but that, in the course of
time,
all apparently antagonistic circumstances would be explained so as to
become
consistent with the view he took. He was careful, however, to
make it
understood that with respect to the original cause of the
disruption
he had no theory to offer; and although he knew what
expansion
might be the result of subterranean forces, he did not venture to
say
that he considered it sufficient to produce so tremendous an
effect.
The origin of the catastrophe was a problem still to be solved.
"Ah! well," said Servadac, "I don't know that it matters much
where our
new little planet comes from, or what it is made of,
if only it carries
France along with it."
"And Russia," added the count.
"And Russia, of course," said Servadac, with a polite bow.
There was, however, not much room for this sanguine expectation,
for if a
new asteroid had thus been brought into existence,
it must be a sphere of
extremely limited dimensions, and there could
be little chance that it
embraced more than the merest fraction
of either France or Russia. As
to England, the total cessation
of all telegraphic communication between her
shores and Gibraltar
was a virtual proof that England was beyond its
compass.
And what was the true measurement of the new little world?
At Gourbi
Island the days and nights were of equal length,
and this seemed to indicate
that it was situated on the equator;
hence the distance by which the two
poles stood apart would
be half what had been reckoned would be the distance
completed
by the _Dobryna_ in her circuit. That distance had been
already
estimated to be something under 1,400 miles, so that the Arctic
Pole
of their recently fashioned world must be about 350 miles to the
north,
and the Antarctic about 350 miles to the south of the
island.
Compare these calculations with the map, and it is at
once
apparent that the northernmost limit barely touched the coast
of
Provence, while the southernmost reached to about lat.
20 degrees N., and
fell in the heart of the desert.
The practical test of these conclusions
would be made by
future investigation, but meanwhile the fact appeared very
much
to strengthen the presumption that, if Lieutenant Procope
had not
arrived at the whole truth, he had made a considerable
advance towards
it.
The weather, ever since the storm that had driven the _Dobryna_
into the
creek, had been magnificent. The wind continued favorable,
and now
under both steam and canvas, she made a rapid progress towards
the north, a
direction in which she was free to go in consequence
of the total
disappearance of the Spanish coast, from Gibraltar right
away to
Alicante. Malaga, Almeria, Cape Gata, Car-thagena. Cape Palos--
all
were gone. The sea was rolling over the southern extent of the
peninsula,
so that the yacht advanced to the latitude of Seville before it
sighted
any land at all, and then, not shores such as the shores of
Andalusia,
but a bluff and precipitous cliff, in its geological features
resembling
exactly the stern and barren rock that she had coasted beyond the
site
of Malta. Here the sea made a decided indentation on the
coast;
it ran up in an acute-angled triangle till its apex coincided
with
the very spot upon which Madrid had stood. But as hitherto the
sea
had encroached upon the land, the land in its turn now encroached
upon
the sea; for a frowning headland stood out far into the basin
of the
Mediterranean, and formed a promontory stretching out beyond
the proper
places of the Balearic Isles. Curiosity was all alive.
There was the
intensest interest awakened to determine whether no
vestige could be traced
of Majorca, Minorca, or any of the group,
and it was during a deviation from
the direct course for the purpose
of a more thorough scrutiny, that one of
the sailors raised a thrill
of general excitement by shouting, "A bottle in
the sea!"
Here, then, at length was a communication from the outer world.
Surely now
they would find a document which would throw
some light upon all the
mysteries that had happened?
Had not the day now dawned that should set their
speculations
all at rest?
It was the morning of the 21st of February. The count,
the captain,
the lieutenant, everybody hurried to the forecastle;
the schooner was
dexterously put about, and all was eager
impatience until the supposed bottle
was hauled on deck.
It was not, however, a bottle; it proved to be a round
leather
telescope-case, about a foot long, and the first thing
to do
before investigating its contents was to make a careful
examination of its
exterior. The lid was fastened on by wax,
and so securely that it would
take a long immersion before any
water could penetrate; there was no maker's
name to be deciphered;
but impressed very plainly with a seal on the wax were
the two
initials "P. R."
When the scrutiny of the outside was finished, the wax was removed
and the
cover opened, and the lieutenant drew out a slip of ruled paper,
evidently
torn from a common note-book. The paper had an inscription
written in four
lines, which were remarkable for the profusion of notes
of admiration and
interrogation with which they were interspersed:
"Gallia???
_Ab sole_, au 15 fev. 59,000,000 1. !
Chemin parcouru de
janv. a fev. 82,000,000 1. !!
_Va bene! All right!!_ Parfait!!!"
There was a general sigh of disappointment. They turned
the
paper over and over, and handed it from one to another.
"What does it all
mean?" exclaimed the count.
"Something mysterious here!" said Servadac. "But yet,"
he continued,
after a pause, "one thing is tolerably certain:
on the 15th, six days ago,
someone was alive to write it."
"Yes; I presume there is no reason to doubt the accuracy of the
date,"
assented the count.
To this strange conglomeration of French, English, Italian, and
Latin,
there was no signature attached; nor was there anything to give a
clue
as to the locality in which it had been committed to the waves.
A
telescope-case would probably be the property of some one on board
a ship;
and the figures obviously referred to the astronomical wonders
that had been
experienced.
To these general observations Captain Servadac objected that
he thought it
unlikely that any one on board a ship would use
a telescope-case for this
purpose, but would be sure to use
a bottle as being more secure; and,
accordingly, he should rather
be inclined to believe that the message had
been set afloat
by some _savant_ left alone, perchance, upon some isolated
coast.
"But, however interesting it might be," observed the count,
"to know the
author of the lines, to us it is of far greater
moment to ascertain their
meaning."
And taking up the paper again, he said, "Perhaps we might analyze it
word
by word, and from its detached parts gather some clue to its sense
as a
whole."
"What can be the meaning of all that cluster of interrogations
after
Gallia?" asked Servadac.
Lieutenant Procope, who had hitherto not spoken, now broke his silence
by
saying, "I beg, gentlemen, to submit my opinion that this document
goes very
far to confirm my hypothesis that a fragment of the earth
has been
precipitated into space."
Captain Servadac hesitated, and then replied, "Even if it does,
I do not
see how it accounts in the least for the geological
character of the new
asteroid."
"But will you allow me for one minute to take my supposition
for granted?"
said Procope. "If a new little planet has been formed,
as I imagine, by
disintegration from the old, I should conjecture
that Gallia is the name
assigned to it by the writer of this paper.
The very notes of interrogation
are significant that he was in doubt
what he should write."
"You would presume that he was a Frenchman?" asked the count.
"I should think so," replied the lieutenant.
"Not much doubt about that," said Servadac; "it is all in French,
except a
few scattered words of English, Latin, and Italian,
inserted to attract
attention. He could not tell into whose
hands the message would fall
first."
"Well, then," said Count Timascheff, "we seem to have found a name
for the
new world we occupy."
"But what I was going especially to observe," continued the
lieutenant,
"is that the distance, 59,000,000 leagues, represents
precisely
the distance we ourselves were from the sun on the 15th.
It was
on that day we crossed the orbit of Mars."
"Yes, true," assented the others.
"And the next line," said the lieutenant, after reading it
aloud,
"apparently registers the distance traversed by Gallia, the new little
planet,
in her own orbit. Her speed, of course, we know by Kepler's
laws,
would vary according to her distance from the sun, and if she
were--
as I conjecture from the temperature at that date--on the 15th of
January
at her perihelion, she would be traveling twice as fast as the
earth,
which moves at the rate of between 50,000 and 60,000 miles an
hour."
"You think, then," said Servadac, with a smile, "you have determined
the
perihelion of our orbit; but how about the aphelion?
Can you form a judgment
as to what distance we are likely
to be carried?"
"You are asking too much," remonstrated the count.
"I confess," said the lieutenant, "that just at present I
am not able to
clear away the uncertainty of the future;
but I feel confident that by
careful observation at various
points we shall arrive at conclusions which
not only will
determine our path, but perhaps may clear up the mystery
about
our geological structure."
"Allow me to ask," said Count Timascheff, "whether such a new asteroid
would
not be subject to ordinary mechanical laws, and whether, once
started,
it would not have an orbit that must be immutable?"
"Decidedly it would, so long as it was undisturbed by the attraction
of
some considerable body; but we must recollect that, compared to
the great
planets, Gallia must be almost infinitesimally small,
and so might be
attracted by a force that is irresistible."
"Altogether, then," said Servadac, "we seem to have settled it to
our
entire satisfaction that we must be the population of a young
little
world called Gallia. Perhaps some day we may have the honor of
being
registered among the minor planets."
"No chance of that," quickly rejoined Lieutenant Procope. "Those
minor
planets all are known to rotate in a narrow zone between the
orbits
of Mars and Jupiter; in their perihelia they cannot approximate the
sun
as we have done; we shall not be classed with them."
"Our lack of instruments," said the count, "is much to be deplored;
it
baffles our investigations in every way."
"Ah, never mind! Keep up your courage, count!" said Servadac, cheerily.
And Lieutenant Procope renewed his assurances that he entertained
good
hopes that every perplexity would soon be solved.
"I suppose," remarked the count, " that we cannot attribute much
importance
to the last line: _'Va bene! All right!!_
Parfait!!!'"
The captain answered, "At least, it shows that whoever wrote it
had no
murmuring or complaint to make, but was quite content
with the new order of
things."
CHAPTER XVI
THE RESIDUUM OF A CONTINENT
Almost unconsciously, the voyagers in the _Dobryna_ fell into the
habit
of using Gallia as the name of the new world in which they became aware
they
must be making an extraordinary excursion through the realms of
space.
Nothing, however, was allowed to divert them from their ostensible
object
of making a survey of the coast of the Mediterranean, and accordingly
they
persevered in following that singular boundary which had revealed
itself
to their extreme astonishment.
Having rounded the great promontory that had barred her farther
progress
to the north, the schooner skirted its upper edge.
A few more leagues and
they ought to be abreast of the shores
of France. Yes, of France.
But who shall describe the feelings of Hector Servadac when,
instead of
the charming outline of his native land,
he beheld nothing but a solid
boundary of savage rock?
Who shall paint the look of consternation with which
he gazed upon
the stony rampart--rising perpendicularly for a thousand
feet--
that had replaced the shores of the smiling south?
Who shall reveal
the burning anxiety with which he throbbed
to see beyond that cruel wall?
But there seemed no hope. Onwards and onwards the yacht made
her
way, and still no sign of France. It might have been supposed
that
Servadac's previous experiences would have prepared him
for the discovery
that the catastrophe which had overwhelmed
other sites had brought
destruction to his own country as well.
But he had failed to realize how it
might extend to France;
and when now he was obliged with his own eyes to
witness
the waves of ocean rolling over what once had been the
lovely
shores of Provence, he was well-nigh frantic with desperation.
"Am I to believe that Gourbi Island, that little shred of
Algeria,
constitutes all that is left of our glorious France? No,
no;
it cannot be. Not yet have we reached the pole of our new
world.
There is--there must be--something more behind that frowning
rock.
Oh, that for a moment we could scale its towering height and look
beyond!
By Heaven, I adjure you, let us disembark, and mount the summit and
explore!
France lies beyond."
Disembarkation, however, was an utter impossibility. There was
no
semblance of a creek in which the _Dobryna_ could find an
anchorage.
There was no outlying ridge on which a footing could be
gained.
The precipice was perpendicular as a wall, its topmost height
crowned
with the same conglomerate of crystallized lamellae that had all
along
been so pronounced a feature.
With her steam at high pressure, the yacht made rapid progress towards
the
east. The weather remained perfectly fine, the temperature
became
gradually cooler, so that there was little prospect of vapors
accumulating in
the atmosphere; and nothing more than a few cirri,
almost transparent, veiled
here and there the clear azure of the sky.
Throughout the day the pale rays
of the sun, apparently lessened
in its magnitude, cast only faint and
somewhat uncertain shadows;
but at night the stars shone with surpassing
brilliancy. Of the planets,
some, it was observed, seemed to be fading
away in remote distance.
This was the case with Mars, Venus, and that unknown
orb which was moving
in the orbit of the minor planets; but Jupiter, on the
other hand,
had assumed splendid proportions; Saturn was superb in its
luster,
and Uranus, which hitherto had been imperceptible without a
telescope
was pointed out by Lieutenant Procope, plainly visible to the naked
eye.
The inference was irresistible that Gallia was receding from the
sun,
and traveling far away across the planetary regions.
On the 24th of February, after following the sinuous course of what
before
the date of the convulsion had been the coast line of the department
of Var,
and after a fruitless search for Hyeres, the peninsula of St.
Tropez,
the Lerius Islands, and the gulfs of Cannes and Jouar, the _Dobryna_
arrived
upon the site of the Cape of Antibes.
Here, quite unexpectedly, the explorers made the discovery that the
massive
wall of cliff had been rent from the top to the bottom by a narrow
rift,
like the dry bed of a mountain torrent, and at the base of the
opening,
level with the sea, was a little strand upon which there was just
space
enough for their boat to be hauled up.
"Joy! joy!" shouted Servadac, half beside himself with ecstasy;
"we can
land at last!"
Count Timascheff and the lieutenant were scarcely less impatient than
the
captain, and little needed his urgent and repeated solicitations:
"Come
on! Quick! Come on! no time to lose!"
It was half-past seven in the morning, when they set their foot upon
this
untried land. The bit of strand was only a few square yards
in area,
quite a narrow strip. Upon it might have been recognized
some fragments
of that agglutination of yellow limestone which is
characteristic of the
coast of Provence. But the whole party was far
too eager to wait and
examine these remnants of the ancient shore;
they hurried on to scale the
heights.
The narrow ravine was not only perfectly dry, but manifestly had never
been
the bed of any mountain torrent. The rocks that rested at the
bottom--
just as those which formed its sides--were of the same lamellous
formation
as the entire coast, and had not hitherto been subject to the
disaggregation
which the lapse of time never fails to work. A skilled
geologist would
probably have been able to assign them their proper
scientific classification,
but neither Servadac, Timascheff, nor the
lieutenant could pretend to any
acquaintance with their specific
character.
Although, however, the bottom of the chasm had never as yet been the
channel
of a stream, indications were not wanting that at some future time it
would
be the natural outlet of accumulated waters; for already, in many
places,
thin layers of snow were glittering upon the surface of the fractured
rocks,
and the higher the elevation that was gained, the more these layers
were found
to increase in area and in depth.
"Here is a trace of fresh water, the first that Gallia has
exhibited,"
said the count to his companions, as they toiled up the
precipitous path.
"And probably," replied the lieutenant, "as we ascend we shall find
not
only snow but ice. We must suppose this Gallia of ours to be a
sphere,
and if it is so, we must now be very close to her Arctic
regions;
it is true that her axis is not so much inclined as to prolong
day
and night as at the poles of the earth, but the rays of the sun
must
reach us here only very obliquely, and the cold, in all
likelihood,
will be intense."
"So cold, do you think," asked Servadac, "that animal life must be extinct?"
"I do not say that, captain," answered the lieutenant;
"for, however far
our little world may be removed from the sun,
I do not see why its
temperature should fall below what prevails in
those outlying regions beyond
our system where sky and air are not."
"And what temperature may that be?"
inquired the captain
with a shudder.
"Fourier estimates that even in those vast unfathomable tracts,
the
temperature never descends lower than 60 degrees," said Procope.
"Sixty! Sixty degrees below zero!" cried the count.
"Why, there's
not a Russian could endure it!"
"I beg your pardon, count. It is placed on record that the English
_have_
survived it, or something quite approximate, upon their Arctic
expeditions.
When Captain Parry was on Melville Island, he knew the
thermometer to fall
to 56 degrees," said Procope.
As the explorers advanced, they seemed glad to pause from time to
time,
that they might recover their breath; for the air, becoming more
and
more rarefied, made respiration somewhat difficult and the ascent
fatiguing.
Before they had reached an altitude of 600 feet they noticed a
sensible
diminution of the temperature; but neither cold nor fatigue deterred
them,
and they were resolved to persevere. Fortunately, the deep striae
or furrows
in the surface of the rocks that made the bottom of the ravine in
some degree
facilitated their progress, but it was not until they had been
toiling up
for two hours more that they succeeded in reaching the summit of
the cliff.
Eagerly and anxiously did they look around. To the south there
was
nothing but the sea they had traversed; to the north,
nothing but one drear,
inhospitable stretch.
Servadac could not suppress a cry of dismay. Where was his
beloved
France? Had he gained this arduous height only to behold
the rocks
carpeted with ice and snow, and reaching interminably
to the far-off
horizon? His heart sank within him.
The whole region appeared to consist of nothing but the same
strange,
uniform mineral conglomerate, crystallized into regular hexagonal
prisms.
But whatever was its geological character, it was only too
evident
that it had entirely replaced the former soil, so that not
a
vestige of the old continent of Europe could be discerned.
The lovely scenery
of Provence, with the grace of its rich and
undulating landscape; its gardens
of citrons and oranges rising
tier upon tier from the deep red soil--all, all
had vanished.
Of the vegetable kingdom, there was not a single
representative;
the most meager of Arctic plants, the most insignificant of
lichens,
could obtain no hold upon that stony waste. Nor did the animal
world
assert the feeblest sway. The mineral kingdom reigned
supreme.
Captain Servadac's deep dejection was in strange contrast to his
general
hilarity. Silent and tearful, he stood upon an ice-bound
rock,
straining his eyes across the boundless vista of the mysterious
territory.
"It cannot be!" he exclaimed. "We must somehow have mistaken
our bearings.
True, we have encountered this barrier; but France is there
beyond!
Yes, France is _there!_ Come, count, come! By all that's
pitiful,
I entreat you, come and explore the farthest verge of the ice-bound
track!"
He pushed onwards along the rugged surface of the rock,
but had not
proceeded far before he came to a sudden pause.
His foot had come in contact
with something hard beneath the snow,
and, stooping down, he picked up a
little block of stony substance,
which the first glance revealed to be of a
geological
character altogether alien to the universal rocks around.
It
proved to be a fragment of dis-colored marble, on which several
letters were
inscribed, of which the only part at all decipherable
was the syllable
"Vil."
"Vil--Villa!" he cried out, in his excitement dropping the marble,
which
was broken into atoms by the fall.
What else could this fragment be but the sole surviving remnant
of some
sumptuous mansion that once had stood on this unrivaled site?
Was it not the
residue of some edifice that had crowned the luxuriant
headland of Antibes,
overlooking Nice, and commanding the gorgeous panorama
that embraced the
Maritime Alps and reached beyond Monaco and Mentone
to the Italian height of
Bordighera? And did it not give in its sad
and too convincing testimony
that Antibes itself had been involved
in the great destruction?
Servadac gazed upon the shattered marble,
pensive and disheartened.
Count Timascheff laid his hand kindly on the captain's shoulder, and
said,
"My friend, do you not remember the motto of the old Hope family?"
He shook his head mournfully.
"_Orbe fracto, spes illoesa_," continued the count--"Though the world
be
shattered, hope is unimpaired."
Servadac smiled faintly, and replied that he felt rather compelled
to take
up the despairing cry of Dante, "All hope abandon,
ye who enter here."
"Nay, not so," answered the count; "for the present at least,
let our
maxim be _Nil desperandum!_"
CHAPTER XVII
A SECOND ENIGMA
Upon re-embarking, the bewildered explorers began to discuss the
question
whether it would not now be desirable to make their way back to
Gourbi Island,
which was apparently the only spot in their new world from
which they could
hope to derive their future sustenance. Captain
Servadac tried to console
himself with the reflection that Gourbi Island was,
after all, a fragment
of a French colony, and as such almost like a bit of
his dear France;
and the plan of returning thither was on the point of being
adopted,
when Lieutenant Procope remarked that they ought to remember that
they
had not hitherto made an entire circuit of the new shores of the sea
on
which they were sailing.
"We have," he said, "neither investigated the northern shore from the
site
of Cape Antibes to the strait that brought us to Gibraltar, nor have
we
followed the southern shore that stretches from the strait to the
Gulf
of Cabes. It is the old coast, and not the new, that we have been
tracing;
as yet, we cannot say positively that there is no outlet to the
south;
as yet, we cannot assert that no oasis of the African desert has
escaped
the catastrophe. Perhaps, even here in the north, we may find
that
Italy and Sicily and the larger islands of the Mediterranean may
still
maintain their existence."
"I entirely concur with you," said Count Timascheff.
"I quite think we
ought to make our survey of the confines
of this new basin as complete as
possible before we withdraw."
Servadac, although he acknowledged the justness of these
observations,
could not help pleading that the explorations might be deferred
until
after a visit had been paid to Gourbi Island.
"Depend upon it, captain, you are mistaken," replied the lieutenant;"
the
right thing to do is to use the _Dobryna_ while she is available."
"Available! What do you mean?" asked the count, somewhat taken by surprise.
"I mean," said Procope, "that the farther this Gallia of ours
recedes from
the sun, the lower the temperature will fall.
It is likely enough, I think,
that before long the sea
will be frozen over, and navigation will be
impossible.
Already you have learned something of the difficulties
of
traversing a field of ice, and I am sure, therefore, you will
acquiesce
in my wish to continue our explorations while the water
is still open."
"No doubt you are right, lieutenant," said the count.
"We will continue
our search while we can for some remaining
fragment of Europe. Who
shall tell whether we may not meet
with some more survivors from the
catastrophe, to whom it
might be in our power to afford assistance, before we
go into
our winter quarters?"
Generous and altogether unselfish as this sentiment really was,
it was
obviously to the general interest that they should
become acquainted, and if
possible establish friendly relations,
with any human inhabitant who might be
sharing their own strange
destiny in being rolled away upon a new planet into
the infinitude
of space. All difference of race, all distinction of
nationality,
must be merged into the one thought that, few as they
were,
they were the sole surviving representatives of a world which
it
seemed exceedingly improbable that they would ever see again;
and
common sense dictated that they were bound to direct all
their energies to
insure that their asteroid should at least
have a united and sympathizing
population.
It was on the 25th of February that the yacht left the little
creek in
which she had taken refuge, and setting off at full
steam eastwards, she
continued her way along the northern shore.
A brisk breeze tended to increase
the keenness of the temperature,
the thermometer being, on an average, about
two degrees below zero.
Salt water freezes only at a lower temperature than
fresh;
the course of the _Dobryna_ was therefore unimpeded by ice,
but it
could not be concealed that there was the greatest necessity
to maintain the
utmost possible speed.
The nights continued lovely; the chilled condition of the
atmosphere
prevented the formation of clouds; the constellations
gleamed
forth with unsullied luster; and, much as Lieutenant Procope,
from
nautical considerations, might regret the absence of the moon,
he could not
do otherwise than own that the magnificent nights
of Gallia were such as must
awaken the enthusiasm of an astronomer.
And, as if to compensate for the loss
of the moonlight,
the heavens were illuminated by a superb shower of falling
stars,
far exceeding, both in number and in brilliancy, the
phenomena
which are commonly distinguished as the August and November
meteors;
in fact, Gallia was passing through that meteoric ring which is
known
to lie exterior to the earth's orbit, but almost concentric with
it.
The rocky coast, its metallic surface reflecting the glow of
the
dazzling luminaries, appeared literally stippled with light,
whilst the sea,
as though spattered with burning hailstones,
shone with a phosphorescence
that was perfectly splendid.
So great, however, was the speed at which Gallia
was receding
from the sun, that this meteoric storm lasted scarcely more
than
four and twenty hours.
Next day the direct progress of the _Dobryna_ was arrested by a
long
projection of land, which obliged her to turn southwards,
until she reached
what formerly would have been the southern
extremity of Corsica. Of
this, however, there was now no trace;
the Strait of Boni-facio had been
replaced by a vast expanse of water,
which had at first all the appearance of
being utterly desert;
but on the following morning the explorers unexpectedly
sighted
a little island, which, unless it should prove, as was only too
likely,
to be of recent origin they concluded, from its situation,
must be
a portion of the northernmost territory of Sardinia.
The _Dobryna_ approached the land as nearly as was prudent,
the boat was
lowered, and in a few minutes the count and Servadac
had landed upon the
islet, which was a mere plot of meadow land,
not much more than two acres in
extent, dotted here and there with a few
myrtle-bushes and lentisks,
interspersed with some ancient olives.
Having ascertained, as they imagined,
that the spot was devoid of
living creature, they were on the point of
returning to their boat,
when their attention was arrested by a faint
bleating, and immediately
afterwards a solitary she-goat came bounding
towards the shore.
The creature had dark, almost black hair, and small curved
horns,
and was a specimen of that domestic breed which, with
considerable
justice, has gained for itself the title of "the poor man's
cow."
So far from being alarmed at the presence of strangers, the goat
ran
nimbly towards them, and then, by its movements and plaintive
cries,
seemed to be enticing them to follow it.
"Come," said Servadac; "let us see where it will lead us;
it is more than
probable it is not alone."
The count agreed; and the animal, as if comprehending what was
said,
trotted on gently for about a hundred paces, and stopped in front of
a
kind of cave or burrow that was half concealed by a grove of
lentisks.
Here a little girl, seven or eight years of age, with rich
brown
hair and lustrous dark eyes, beautiful as one of Murillo's
angels,
was peeping shyly through the branches. Apparently discovering
nothing
in the aspect of the strangers to excite her apprehensions, the
child
suddenly gained confidence, darted forwards with outstretched
hands,
and in a voice, soft and melodious as the language which she
spoke,
said in Italian:
"I like you; you will not hurt me, will you?"
"Hurt you, my child?" answered Servadac. "No, indeed;
we will be
your friends; we will take care of you."
And after a few moments' scrutiny of the pretty maiden, he added:
"Tell us your name, little one."
"Nina!" was the child's reply.
"Well, then, Nina, can you tell us where we are?"
"At Madalena, I think," said the little girl; "at least, I know I
was
there when that dreadful shock came and altered everything."
The count knew that Madalena was close to Caprera, to the north
of
Sardinia, which had entirely disappeared in the disaster.
By dint of a series
of questions, he gained from the child
a very intelligent account of her
experiences. She told him
that she had no parents, and had been
employed in taking
care of a flock of goats belonging to one of the
landowners,
when one day, all of a sudden, everything around her,
except
this little piece of land, had been swallowed up,
and that she and Marzy, her
pet goat, had been left quite alone.
She went on to say that at first she had
been very frightened;
but when she found that the earth did not shake any
more,
she had thanked the great God, and had soon made herself very
happy
living with Marzy. She had enough food, she said, and had
been
waiting for a boat to fetch her, and now a boat had come and she
was
quite ready to go away; only they must let her goat go with her:
they would
both like so much to get back to the old farm.
"Here, at least, is one nice little inhabitant of Gallia,"
said Captain
Servadac, as he caressed the child and conducted
her to the boat.
Half an hour later, both Nina and Marzy were safely quartered
on board the
yacht. It is needless to say that they received
the heartiest of
welcomes. The Russian sailors, ever superstitious,
seemed almost to
regard the coming of the child as the appearance
of an angel; and, incredible
as it may seem, more than one of them
wondered whether she had wings, and
amongst themselves they commonly
referred to her as "the little Madonna."
Soon out of sight of Madalena, the _Dobryna_ for some hours
held a
southeasterly course along the shore, which here was
fifty leagues in advance
of the former coast-line of Italy,
demonstrating that a new continent must
have been formed,
substituted as it were for the old peninsula, of which
not
a vestige could be identified. At a latitude corresponding
with
the latitude of Rome, the sea took the form of a deep gulf,
extending back
far beyond the site of the Eternal City;
the coast making a wide sweep round
to the former position
of Calabria, and jutting far beyond the outline of
"the boot,"
which Italy resembles. But the beacon of Messina was not
to
be discerned; no trace, indeed, survived of any portion of Sicily;
the
very peak of Etna, 11,000 feet as it had reared itself
above the level of the
sea, had vanished utterly.
Another sixty leagues to the south, and the _Dobryna_ sighted
the entrance
of the strait which had afforded her so providential
a refuge from the
tempest, and had conducted her to the fragmentary relic
of Gibraltar.
Hence to the Gulf of Cabes had been already explored,
and as it was
universally allowed that it was unnecessary to
renew the search in that
direction, the lieutenant started off
in a transverse course, towards a point
hitherto uninvestigated.
That point was reached on the 3rd of March, and
thence the coast
was continuously followed, as it led through what had been
Tunis,
across the province of Constantine, away to the oasis of
Ziban;
where, taking a sharp turn, it first reached a latitude of 32
degrees,
and then returned again, thus forming a sort of irregular
gulf,
enclosed by the same unvarying border of mineral concrete.
This
colossal boundary then stretched away for nearly 150 leagues
over the Sahara
desert, and, extending to the south of Gourbi Island,
occupied what, if
Morocco had still existed, would have been
its natural frontier.
Adapting her course to these deviations of the coastline, the
_Dobryna_
was steering northwards, and had barely reached the limit of the
bay,
when the attention of all on board was arrested by the phenomenon
of
a volcano, at least 3,000 feet high, its crater crowned with smoke,
which
occasionally was streaked by tongues of flame.
"A burning mountain!" they exclaimed.
"Gallia, then, has some internal heat," said Servadac.
"And why not, captain?" rejoined the lieutenant. "If our
asteroid
has carried with it a portion of the old earth's atmosphere,
why
should it not likewise retain something of its central fire?"
"Ah, well!" said the captain, shrugging his shoulders, "I dare say
there
is caloric enough in our little world to supply the wants
of its
population."
Count Timascheff interrupted the silence that followed this
conversation
by saying, "And now, gentlemen, as our course has brought us on
our way once
more towards Gibraltar, what do you say to our renewing our
acquaintance
with the Englishmen? They will be interested in the result
of our voyage."
"For my part," said Servadac, "I have no desire that way.
They know where
to find Gourbi Island; they can betake themselves
thither just when they
please. They have plenty of provisions.
If the water freezes, 120
leagues is no very great distance.
The reception they gave us was not so
cordial that we need put
ourselves out of the way to repeat our visit."
"What you say is too true," replied the count. "I hope we shall
show
them better manners when they condescend to visit us."
"Ay," said Servadac, "we must remember that we are all one people now;
no
longer Russian, French, or English. Nationality is extinct."
"I am sadly afraid, however," continued the count, "that an
Englishman
will be an Englishman ever."
"Yes," said the captain, "that is always their failing."
And thus all further thought of making their way again to the
little
garrison of Gibraltar was abandoned.
But even if their spirit of courtesy had disposed them to renew
their
acquaintance with the British officers, there were two
circumstances
that just then would have rendered such a proposal very
unadvisable.
In the first place, Lieutenant Procope was convinced that it
could not be
much longer now before the sea would be entirely frozen; and,
besides this,
the consumption of their coal, through the speed they had
maintained,
had been so great that there was only too much reason to fear
that fuel
would fail them. Anyhow, the strictest economy was necessary,
and it
was accordingly resolved that the voyage should not be much
prolonged.
Beyond the volcanic peak, moreover, the waters seemed to
expand
into a boundless ocean, and it might be a thing full of risk
to be
frozen up while the yacht was so inadequately provisioned.
Taking all these
things into account, it was agreed that further
investigations should be
deferred to a more favorable season, and that,
without delay, the _Dobryna_
should return to Gourbi Island.
This decision was especially welcome to Hector Servadac, who,
throughout
the whole of the last five weeks, had been agitated
by much anxious thought
on account of the faithful servant
he had left behind.
The transit from the volcano to the island was not long,
and was marked by
only one noticeable incident.
This was the finding of a second mysterious
document,
in character precisely similar to what they had found
before.
The writer of it was evidently engaged upon a
calculation,
probably continued from day to day, as to the motions of
the
planet Gallia upon its orbit, and committing the results
of his reckonings to
the waves as the channel of communication.
Instead of being enclosed in a telescope-case, it was this
time secured in
a preserved-meat tin, hermetically sealed,
and stamped with the same initials
on the wax that fastened it.
The greatest care was used in opening it, and it
was found
to contain the following message:
"Gallia
Ab sole, au 1 mars, dist. 78,000,000 1.!
Chemin parcouru de
fev. a mars: 59,000,000 1.!
_Va bene! All right! Nil desperandum!_
Enchante!"
"Another enigma!" exclaimed Servadac; "and still no intelligible
signature,
and no address. No clearing up of the mystery!"
"I have no doubt, in my own mind," said the count, "that it
is one of a
series. It seems to me probable that they are being
sent broadcast upon
the sea."
"I wonder where the hare-brained _savant_ that writes them can
be living?"
observed Servadac.
"Very likely he may have met with the fate of AEsop's abstracted
astronomer,
who found himself at the bottom of a well."
"Ay; but where _is_ that well?" demanded the captain.
This was a question which the count was incapable of settling;
and they
could only speculate afresh as to whether the author of the
riddles was
dwelling upon some solitary island, or, like themselves,
was navigating the
waters of the new Mediterranean. But they could
detect nothing to guide
them to a definite decision.
After thoughtfully regarding the document for some time.
Lieutenant
Procope proceeded to observe that he believed the paper
might be considered
as genuine, and accordingly, taking its
statements as reliable, he deduced
two important conclusions:
first, that whereas, in the month of January, the
distance
traveled by the planet (hypothet-ically called Gallia)
had been
recorded as 82,000,000 leagues, the distance traveled
in February was only
59,- 000,000 leagues--a difference of
23,000,000 leagues in one month;
secondly, that the distance
of the planet from the sun, which on the 15th of
February had been
59,000,000 leagues, was on the 1st of March 78,000,000
leagues--
an increase of 19,000,000 leagues in a fortnight.
Thus, in
proportion as Gallia receded from the sun, so did
the rate of speed diminish
by which she traveled along her orbit;
facts to be observed in perfect
conformity with the known laws
of celestial mechanism.
"And your inference?" asked the count.
"My inference," replied the lieutenant, "is a confirmation of my
surmise
that we are following an orbit decidedly elliptical, although we have
not yet
the material to determine its eccentricity."
"As the writer adheres to the appellation of Gallia, do you not
think,"
asked the count, "that we might call these new waters the Gallian
Sea?"
"There can be no reason to the contrary, count," replied the
lieutenant;
"and as such I will insert it upon my new chart."
"Our friend," said Servadac, "seems to be more and more gratified
with the
condition of things; not only has he adopted our motto,
'_Nil desperandum!_'
but see how enthusiastically he has wound up
with his '_Enchante!_'"
The conversation dropped.
A few hours later the man on watch announced that Gourbi Island
was in
sight.
CHAPTER XVIII
AN UNEXPECTED POPULATION
The _Dobryna_ was now back again at the island. Her cruise had
lasted
from the 31st of January to the 5th of March, a period of thirty-five
days
(for it was leap year), corresponding to seventy days as
accomplished
by the new little world.
Many a time during his absence Hector Servadac had wondered how
his
present vicissitudes would end, and he had felt some misgivings
as to
whether he should ever again set foot upon the island, and see
his faithful
orderly, so that it was not without emotion that he had
approached the coast
of the sole remaining fragment of Algerian soil.
But his apprehensions were
groundless; Gourbi Island was just as he had
left it, with nothing unusual in
its aspect, except that a very peculiar cloud
was hovering over it, at an
altitude of little more than a hundred feet.
As the yacht approached the
shore, this cloud appeared to rise
and fall as if acted upon by some
invisible agency, and the captain,
after watching it carefully, perceived
that it was not an accumulation
of vapors at all, but a dense mass of birds
packed as closely together
as a swarm of herrings, and uttering deafening and
discordant cries,
amidst which from time to time the noise of the report of a
gun could
be plainly distinguished.
The _Dobryna_ signalized her arrival by firing her cannon, and
dropped
anchor in the little port of the Shelif. Almost within a
minute
Ben Zoof was seen running, gun in hand, towards the shore; he
cleared
the last ridge of rocks at a single bound, and then suddenly
halted.
For a few seconds he stood motionless, his eyes fixed, as if
obeying
the instructions of a drill sergeant, on a point some
fifteen
yards distant, his whole attitude indicating submission and
respect;
but the sight of the captain, who was landing, was too much
for
his equanimity, and darting forward, he seized his master's
hand and covered
it with kisses. Instead, however, of uttering
any expressions of
welcome or rejoicing at the captain's return,
Ben Zoof broke out into the
most vehement ejaculations.
"Thieves, captain! beastly thieves! Bedouins! pirates! devils!"
"Why, Ben Zoof, what's the matter?" said Servadac soothingly.
"They are thieves! downright, desperate thieves! those infernal
birds!
That's what's the matter. It is a good thing you have
come.
Here have I for a whole month been spending my powder and shot
upon
them, and the more I kill them, the worse they get; and yet,
if I were to
leave them alone, we should not have a grain of corn
upon the island."
It was soon evident that the orderly had only too much cause for
alarm.
The crops had ripened rapidly during the excessive heat of
January,
when the orbit of Gallia was being traversed at its
perihelion,
and were now exposed to the depredations of many thousands of
birds;
and although a goodly number of stacks attested the industry of
Ben
Zoof during the time of the _Dobryna_'s voyage, it was only too
apparent that
the portion of the harvest that remained ungathered
was liable to the most
imminent risk of being utterly devoured.
It was, perhaps, only natural that
this clustered mass of birds,
as representing the whole of the feathered
tribe upon the surface
of Gallia, should resort to Gourbi Island, of which
the meadows
seemed to be the only spot from which they could get
sustenance
at all; but as this sustenance would be obtained at the
expense,
and probably to the serious detriment, of the human
population,
it was absolutely necessary that every possible resistance
should
be made to the devastation that was threatened.
Once satisfied that Servadac and his friends would cooperate with him
in
the raid upon "the thieves," Ben Zoof became calm and content,
and began to
make various inquiries. "And what has become,"
he said, "of all our old
comrades in Africa?"
"As far as I can tell you," answered the captain, "they are all
in Africa
still; only Africa isn't by any means where we expected
to find it."
"And France? Montmartre?" continued Ben Zoof eagerly.
Here was the
cry of the poor fellow's heart.
As briefly as he could, Servadac endeavored to explain
the true condition
of things; he tried to communicate the fact
that Paris, France, Europe, nay,
the whole world was more
than eighty millions of leagues away from Gourbi
Island;
as gently and cautiously as he could he expressed his fear
that
they might never see Europe, France, Paris, Montmartre again.
"No, no, sir!" protested Ben Zoof emphatically; "that is all nonsense.
It
is altogether out of the question to suppose that we are not to
see
Montmartre again." And the orderly shook his head resolutely,
with the
air of a man determined, in spite of argument, to adhere
to his own
opinion.
"Very good, my brave fellow," replied Servadac, "hope on,
hope while you
may. The message has come to us over the sea,
'Never despair'; but one
thing, nevertheless, is certain;
we must forthwith commence arrangements for
making this island
our permanent home."
Captain Servadac now led the way to the gourbi, which, by his
servant's
exertions, had been entirely rebuilt; and here he did
the honors of his
modest establishment to his two guests, the count
and the lieutenant, and
gave a welcome, too, to little Nina,
who had accompanied them on shore, and
between whom and Ben Zoof
the most friendly relations had already been
established.
The adjacent building continued in good preservation, and Captain
Servadac's
satisfaction was very great in finding the two horses, Zephyr and
Galette,
comfortably housed there and in good condition.
After the enjoyment of some refreshment, the party proceeded to a
general
consultation as to what steps must be taken for their future
welfare.
The most pressing matter that came before them was the
consideration
of the means to be adopted to enable the inhabitants of
Gallia
to survive the terrible cold, which, in their ignorance of
the true
eccentricity of their orbit, might, for aught they knew,
last for an almost
indefinite period. Fuel was far from abundant;
of coal there was none;
trees and shrubs were few in number, and to cut
them down in prospect of the
cold seemed a very questionable policy;
but there was no doubt some expedient
must be devised to prevent disaster,
and that without delay.
The victualing of the little colony offered no immediate difficulty.
Water
was abundant, and the cisterns could hardly fail to be replenished
by the
numerous streams that meandered along the plains; moreover,
the Gallian Sea
would ere long be frozen over, and the melted ice
(water in its congealed
state being divested of every particle of salt)
would afford a supply of
drink that could not be exhausted.
The crops that were now ready for the
harvest, and the flocks
and herds scattered over the island, would form an
ample reserve.
There was little doubt that throughout the winter the
soil
would remain unproductive, and no fresh fodder for domestic
animals
could then be obtained; it would therefore be necessary,
if the exact
duration of Gallia's year should ever be calculated,
to proportion the number
of animals to be reserved to the real
length of the winter.
The next thing requisite was to arrive at a true estimate of the number
of
the population. Without including the thirteen Englishmen at
Gibraltar,
about whom he was not particularly disposed to give himself
much
concern at present, Servadac put down the names of the eight
Russians,
the two Frenchman, and the little Italian girl, eleven in
all,
as the entire list of the inhabitants of Gourbi Island.
"Oh, pardon me," interposed Ben Zoof, "you are mistaking
the state of the
case altogether. You will be surprised to
learn that the total of
people on the island is double that.
It is twenty-two."
"Twenty-two!" exclaimed the captain; "twenty-two people on this
island?
What do you mean?"
"The opportunity has not occurred," answered Ben Zoof, "for me
to tell you
before, but I have had company."
"Explain yourself, Ben Zoof," said Servadac. "What company have you had?"
"You could not suppose," replied the orderly, "that my own unassisted
hands
could have accomplished all that harvest work that you see has been
done."
"I confess," said Lieutenant Procope, "we do not seem to have noticed that."
"Well, then," said Ben Zoof, "if you will be good enough to come
with me
for about a mile, I shall be able to show you my companions.
But we must take
our guns,"
"Why take our guns?" asked Servadac. "I hope we are not going to fight."
"No, not with men," said Ben Zoof; "but it does not answer to throw
a
chance away for giving battle to those thieves of birds."
Leaving little Nina and her goat in the gourbi, Servadac, Count
Timascheff,
and the lieutenant, greatly mystified, took up their guns and
followed
the orderly. All along their way they made unsparing slaughter
of the birds
that hovered over and around them. Nearly every species of
the feathered
tribe seemed to have its representative in that living
cloud.
There were wild ducks in thousands; snipe, larks, rooks, and
swallows;
a countless variety of sea-birds--widgeons, gulls, and
seamews;
beside a quantity of game--quails, partridges, and woodcocks.
The
sportsmen did their best; every shot told; and the depredators fell
by dozens
on either hand.
Instead of following the northern shore of the island,
Ben Zoof cut
obliquely across the plain. Making their progress
with the unwonted
rapidity which was attributable to their
specific lightness, Servadac and his
companions soon found
themselves near a grove of sycamores and eucalyptus
massed
in picturesque confusion at the base of a little hill.
Here they
halted.
"Ah! the vagabonds! the rascals! the thieves!" suddenly exclaimed Ben
Zoof,
stamping his foot with rage.
"How now? Are your friends the birds at their pranks again?"
asked
the captain.
"No, I don't mean the birds: I mean those lazy beggars
that are
shirking their work. Look here; look there!"
And as Ben Zoof spoke, he
pointed to some scythes, and sickles,
and other implements of husbandry that
had been left upon the ground.
"What is it you mean?" asked Servadac, getting somewhat impatient.
"Hush, hush! listen!" was all Ben Zoof's reply; and he raised
his finger
as if in warning.
Listening attentively, Servadac and his associates could
distinctly
recognize a human voice, accompanied by the notes of a
guitar
and by the measured click of castanets.
"Spaniards!" said Servadac.
"No mistake about that, sir," replied Ben Zoof; "a Spaniard would
rattle
his castanets at the cannon's mouth."
"But what is the meaning of it all?" asked the captain,
more puzzled than
before.
"Hark!" said Ben Zoof; "it is the old man's turn."
And then a voice, at once gruff and harsh, was heard vociferating,
"My
money! my money! when will you pay me my money?
Pay me what you owe me, you
miserable majos."
Meanwhile the song
continued:
_"Tu sandunga y
cigarro,
Y una cana de
Jerez,
Mi jamelgo y un
trabuco,
Que mas gloria puede haver?"_
Servadac's knowledge of Gascon enabled him partially to comprehend
the
rollicking tenor of the Spanish patriotic air, but his attention
was again
arrested by the voice of the old man growling savagely,
"Pay me you shall;
yes, by the God of Abraham, you shall pay me."
"A Jew!" exclaimed Servadac.
"Ay, sir, a German Jew," said Ben Zoof.
The party was on the point of entering the thicket, when a
singular
spectacle made them pause. A group of Spaniards had just
begun
dancing their national fandango, and the extraordinary
lightness
which had become the physical property of every object in
the
new planet made the dancers bound to a height of thirty feet
or more into the
air, considerably above the tops of the trees.
What followed was irresistibly
comic. Four sturdy majos had
dragged along with them an old man
incapable of resistance,
and compelled him, _nolens volens_, to join in the
dance;
and as they all kept appearing and disappearing above the bank
of
foliage, their grotesque attitudes, combined with the pitiable
countenance of
their helpless victim, could not do otherwise
than recall most forcibly the
story of Sancho Panza tossed
in a blanket by the merry drapers of
Segovia.
Servadac, the count, Procope, and Ben Zoof now proceeded to make their
way
through the thicket until they came to a little glade, where two
men were
stretched idly on the grass, one of them playing the guitar,
and the other a
pair of castanets; both were exploding with laughter, as they
urged the
performers to greater and yet greater exertions in the dance.
At the sight of
strangers they paused in their music, and simultaneously
the dancers, with
their victim, alighted gently on the sward.
Breathless and half exhausted as was the Jew, he rushed
with an effort
towards Servadac, and exclaimed in French,
marked by a strong Teutonic
accent, "Oh, my lord governor,
help me, help! These rascals defraud me
of my rights;
they rob me; but, in the name of the God of Israel, I ask
you
to see justice done!"
The captain glanced inquiringly towards Ben Zoof, and the orderly,
by a
significant nod, made his master understand that he was
to play the part that
was implied by the title. He took the cue,
and promptly ordered the Jew
to hold his tongue at once.
The man bowed his head in servile submission, and
folded his hands
upon his breast.
Servadac surveyed him leisurely. He was a man of about fifty, but
from
his appearance might well have been taken for at least ten years
older.
Small and skinny, with eyes bright and cunning, a hooked nose,
a
short yellow beard, unkempt hair, huge feet, and long bony hands,
he
presented all the typical characteristics of the German Jew,
the heartless,
wily usurer, the hardened miser and skinflint.
As iron is attracted by the
magnet, so was this Shylock attracted
by the sight of gold, nor would he have
hesitated to draw the life-blood
of his creditors, if by such means he could
secure his claims.
His name was Isaac Hakkabut, and he was a native of Cologne. Nearly the
whole
of his time, however, he informed Captain Servadac, had been spent
upon
the sea, his real business being that of a merchant trading at all the
ports
of the Mediterranean. A tartan, a small vessel of two hundred
tons burden,
conveyed his entire stock of merchandise, and, to say the
truth,
was a sort of floating emporium, conveying nearly every possible
article
of commerce, from a lucifer match to the radiant fabrics of
Frank-fort
and Epinal. Without wife or children, and having no settled
home,
Isaac Hakkabut lived almost entirely on board the _Hansa_, as he
had
named his tartan; and engaging a mate, with a crew of three men,
as
being adequate to work so light a craft, he cruised along the coasts
of
Algeria, Tunis, Egypt, Turkey, and Greece, visiting, moreover, most of
the
harbors of the Levant. Careful to be always well supplied with the
products
in most general demand--coffee, sugar, rice, tobacco, cotton
stuffs,
and gunpowder--and being at all times ready to barter, and prepared
to deal
in sec-ondhand wares, he had contrived to amass considerable
wealth.
On the eventful night of the 1st of January the _Hansa_ had been at
Ceuta,
the point on the coast of Morocco exactly opposite Gibraltar.
The mate
and three sailors had all gone on shore, and, in common with many of
their
fellow-creatures, had entirely disappeared; but the most projecting
rock
of Ceuta had been undisturbed by the general catastrophe, and half a
score
of Spaniards, who had happened to be upon it, had escaped with their
lives.
They were all Andalusian majos, agricultural laborers, and
naturally
as careless and apathetic as men of their class usually are, but
they
could not help being very considerably embarrassed when they
discovered
that they were left in solitude upon a detached and isolated
rock.
They took what mutual counsel they could, but became only more
and
more perplexed. One of them was named Negrete, and he, as having
traveled
somewhat more than the rest, was tacitly recognized as a sort of
leader;
but although he was by far the most enlightened of them all, he was
quite
incapable of forming the least conception of the nature of what had
occurred.
The one thing upon which they could not fail to be conscious was
that they
had no prospect of obtaining provisions, and consequently their
first
business was to devise a scheme for getting away from their present
abode.
The _Hansa_ was lying off shore. The Spaniards would not have
had
the slightest hesitation in summarily taking possession of her, but
their
utter ignorance of seamanship made them reluctantly come to the
conclusion
that the more prudent policy was to make terms with the owner.
And now came a singular part of the story. Negrete and
his
companions had meanwhile received a visit from two English
officers
from Gibraltar. What passed between them the Jew did not
know;
he only knew that, immediately after the conclusion of the
interview,
Negrete came to him and ordered him to set sail at once
for the
nearest point of Morocco. The Jew, afraid to disobey,
but with his eye
ever upon the main chance, stipulated that at
the end of their voyage the
Spaniards should pay for their passage--
terms to which, as they would to any
other, they did not demur,
knowing that they had not the slightest intention
of giving him
a single real.
The _Hansa_ had weighed anchor on the 3rd of February. The wind
blew
from the west, and consequently the working of the tartan was easy
enough.
The unpracticed sailors had only to hoist their sails and, though
they
were quite unconscious of the fact, the breeze carried them to the only
spot
upon the little world they occupied which could afford them a
refuge.
Thus it fell out that one morning Ben Zoof, from his lookout on Gourbi
Island,
saw a ship, not the _Dobryna_, appear upon the horizon, and make
quietly
down towards what had formerly been the right bank of the Shelif.
Such was Ben Zoof's version of what had occurred, as he had gathered
it
from the new-comers. He wound up his recital by remarking
that the cargo of
the _Hansa_ would be of immense service to them;
he expected, indeed, that
Isaac Hakkabut would be difficult to manage,
but considered there could be no
harm in appropriating the goods
for the common welfare, since there could be
no opportunity now
for selling them.
Ben Zoof added, "And as to the difficulties between the Jew
and his
passengers, I told him that the governor general
was absent on a tour of
inspection, and that he would see
everything equitably settled."
Smiling at his orderly's tactics, Servadac turned to Hakkabut,
and told
him that he would take care that his claims should
be duly investigated and
all proper demands should be paid.
The man appeared satisfied, and, for the
time at least,
desisted from his complaints and importunities.
When the Jew had retired, Count Timascheff asked, "But how in the
world
can you ever make those fellows pay anything?"
"They have lots of money," said Ben Zoof.
"Not likely," replied the count; "when did you ever know Spaniards
like
them to have lots of money?"
"But I have seen it myself," said Ben Zoof; "and it is English money."
"English money!" echoed Servadac; and his mind again
reverted to the
excursion made by the colonel and the major
from Gibraltar, about which they
had been so reticent.
"We must inquire more about this," he said.
Then, addressing Count Timascheff, he added, "Altogether, I
think the
countries of Europe are fairly represented by the
population of Gallia."
"True, captain," answered the count; "we have only a fragment
of a world,
but it contains natives of France, Russia, Italy, Spain,
and England.
Even Germany may be said to have a representative
in the person of this
miserable Jew."
"And even in him," said Servadac, "perhaps we shall not find so
indifferent
a representative as we at present imagine."
CHAPTER XIX
GALLIA'S GOVERNOR GENERAL
The Spaniards who had arrived on board the _Hansa_ consisted of
nine
men and a lad of twelve years of age, named Pablo. They all
received
Captain Servadac, whom Ben Zoof introduced as the governor
general,
with due respect, and returned quickly to their separate
tasks.
The captain and his friends, followed at some distance by the eager
Jew,
soon left the glade and directed their steps towards the coast
where
the _Hansa_ was moored.
As they went they discussed their situation. As far as they
had
ascertained, except Gourbi Island, the sole surviving
fragments of the Old
World were four small islands:
the bit of Gibraltar occupied by the
Englishmen; Ceuta, which had
just been left by the Spaniards; Madalena, where
they had
picked up the little Italian girl; and the site of the tomb
of
Saint Louis on the coast of Tunis. Around these there was
stretched out
the full extent of the Gallian Sea, which apparently
comprised about one-half
of the Mediterranean, the whole being
encompassed by a barrier like a
framework of precipitous cliffs,
of an origin and a substance alike
unknown.
Of all these spots only two were known to be inhabited: Gibraltar,
where the
thirteen Englishmen were amply provisioned for some years to
come,
and their own Gourbi Island. Here there was a population of
twenty-two,
who would all have to subsist upon the natural products of the
soil.
It was indeed not to be forgotten that, perchance, upon some
remote
and undiscovered isle there might be the solitary writer of the
mysterious
papers which they had found, and if so, that would raise the
census
of their new asteroid to an aggregate of thirty-six.
Even upon the supposition that at some future date the whole
population
should be compelled to unite and find a residence
upon Gourbi Island, there
did not appear any reason
to question but that eight hundred acres of rich
soil,
under good management, would yield them all an ample sustenance.
The
only critical matter was how long the cold season would last;
every hope
depended upon the land again becoming productive;
at present, it seemed
impossible to determine, even if Gallia's
orbit were really elliptic, when
she would reach her aphelion,
and it was consequently necessary that the
Gallians for
the time being should reckon on nothing beyond their
actual
and present resources.
These resources were, first, the provisions of the _Dobryna_,
consisting
of preserved meat, sugar, wine, brandy, and other
stores sufficient for about
two months; secondly, the valuable
cargo of the _Hansa_, which, sooner or
later, the owner,
whether he would or not, must be compelled to
surrender
for the common benefit; and lastly, the produce of the
island,
animal and vegetable, which with proper economy might be made
to
last for a considerable period.
In the course of the conversation, Count Timascheff took
an opportunity of
saying that, as Captain Servadac had already
been presented to the Spaniards
as governor of the island,
he thought it advisable that he should really
assume that position.
"Every body of men," he observed, "must have a head, and you,
as a
Frenchman, should, I think, take the command of this
fragment of a French
colony. My men, I can answer for it,
are quite prepared to recognize
you as their superior officer."
"Most unhesitatingly," replied Servadac, "I accept the post with
all its
responsibilities. We understand each other so well that I
feel sure we
shall try and work together for the common good;
and even if it be our fate
never again to behold our fellow creatures,
I have no misgivings but that we
shall be able to cope with whatever
difficulties may be before us."
As he spoke, he held out his hand. The count took it, at the
same
time making a slight bow. It was the first time since their
meeting
that the two men had shaken hands; on the other hand, not a
single
word about their former rivalry had ever escaped their
lips;
perhaps that was all forgotten now.
The silence of a few moments was broken by Servadac saying, "Do you
not
think we ought to explain our situation to the Spaniards?"
"No, no, your Excellency," burst in Ben Zoof, emphatically; "the
fellows
are chicken-hearted enough already; only tell them what has
happened,
and in sheer despondency they will not do another stroke of
work."
"Besides," said Lieutenant Procope, who took very much the same view
as
the orderly, "they are so miserably ignorant they would be sure
to
misunderstand you."
"Understand or misunderstand," replied Servadac, "I do not think
it
matters. They would not care. They are all fatalists.
Only give
them a guitar and their castanets, and they will soon
forget all care and
anxiety. For my own part, I must adhere
to my belief that it will be
advisable to tell them everything.
Have you any opinion to offer, count?"
"My own opinion, captain, coincides entirely with yours.
I have followed the plan of explaining all I could to my men on board
the
_Dobryna_, and no inconvenience has arisen."
"Well, then, so let it be," said the captain; adding, "It is
not likely
that these Spaniards are so ignorant as not to have
noticed the change in the
length of the days; neither can they
be unaware of the physical changes that
have transpired.
They shall certainly be told that we are being carried
away
into unknown regions of space, and that this island is nearly
all
that remains of the Old World."
"Ha! ha!" laughed Ben Zoof, aloud; "it will be fine sport to watch
the old
Jew's face, when he is made to comprehend that he is flying
away millions and
millions of leagues from all his debtors."
Isaac Hakkabut was about fifty yards behind, and was consequently
unable
to overhear the conversation. He went shambling along,
half whimpering
and not unfrequently invoking the God of Israel;
but every now and then a
cunning light gleamed from his eyes,
and his lips became compressed with a
grim significance.
None of the recent phenomena had escaped his notice, and more than
once he
had attempted to entice Ben Zoof into conversation upon
the subject; but the
orderly made no secret of his antipathy to him,
and generally replied to his
advances either by satire or by banter.
He told him that he had everything to
gain under the new system
of nights and days, for, instead of living the
Jew's ordinary
life of a century, he would reach to the age of two
centuries;
and he congratulated him upon the circumstance of things having
become
so light, because it would prevent him feeling the burden of his
years.
At another time he would declare that, to an old usurer like
him,
it could not matter in the least what had become of the moon,
as he
could not possibly have advanced any money upon her.
And when Isaac,
undaunted by his jeers, persevered in besetting him
with questions, he tried
to silence him by saying, "Only wait till
the governor general comes; he is a
shrewd fellow, and will tell
you all about it."
"But will he protect my property?" poor Isaac would ask tremulously.
"To be sure he will! He would confiscate it all rather than that
you
should be robbed of it."
With this Job's comfort the Jew had been obliged to content himself as
best
he could, and to await the promised arrival of the governor.
When Servadac and his companions reached the shore,
they found that the
_Hansa_ had anchored in an exposed bay,
protected but barely by a few
projecting rocks, and in such
a position that a gale rising from the west
would inevitably
drive her on to the land, where she must be dashed in
pieces.
It would be the height of folly to leave her in her present
moorings;
without loss of time she must be brought round to the mouth
of
the Shelif, in immediate proximity to the Russian yacht.
The consciousness that his tartan was the subject of discussion made
the
Jew give way to such vehement ejaculations of anxiety, that Servadac
turned
round and peremptorily ordered him to desist from his clamor.
Leaving the old
man under the surveillance of the count and Ben Zoof,
the captain and the
lieutenant stepped into a small boat and were soon
alongside the floating
emporium.
A very short inspection sufficed to make them aware that both
the tartan
and her cargo were in a perfect state of preservation.
In the hold were
sugar-loaves by hundreds, chests of tea,
bags of coffee, hogsheads of
tobacco, pipes of wine, casks of brandy,
barrels of dried herrings, bales of
cotton, clothing of every kind,
shoes of all sizes, caps of various shape,
tools, household utensils,
china and earthenware, reams of paper, bottles of
ink, boxes of lucifer
matches, blocks of salt, bags of pepper and spices, a
stock of huge
Dutch cheeses, and a collection of almanacs and miscellaneous
literature.
At a rough guess the value could not be much under pounds 5,000
sterling.
A new cargo had been taken in only a few days before the
catastrophe,
and it had been Isaac Hakkabut's intention to cruise from Ceuta
to Tripoli,
calling wherever he had reason to believe there was likely to be
a market
for any of his commodities.
"A fine haul, lieutenant," said the captain.
"Yes, indeed," said the lieutenant; "but what if the owner refuses
to part
with it?"
"No fear; no fear," replied the captain. "As soon as ever the old
rascal
finds that there are no more Arabs or Algerians for him to
fleece,
he will be ready enough to transact a little business with us.
We
will pay him by bills of acceptance on some of his old friends
in the Old
World."
"But why should he want any payment?" inquired the lieutenant.
"Under the
circumstances, he must know that you have a right to make
a requisition of
his goods."
"No, no," quickly rejoined Servadac; "we will not do that.
Just because
the fellow is a German we shall not be justified in treating
him in German
fashion. We will transact our business in a business way.
Only let him
once realize that he is on a new globe, with no prospect
of getting back to
the old one, and he will be ready enough to come
to terms with us."
"Perhaps you are right," replied the lieutenant; "I hope you are.
But
anyhow, it will not do to leave the tartan here; not only
would she be in
danger in the event of a storm, but it is very
questionable whether she could
resist the pressure of the ice,
if the water were to freeze."
"Quite true, Procope; and accordingly I give you the commission to
see
that your crew bring her round to the Shelif as soon as may be."
"To-morrow morning it shall be done," answered the lieutenant, promptly.
Upon returning to the shore, it was arranged that the whole
of the little
colony should forthwith assemble at the gourbi.
The Spaniards were summoned
and Isaac, although he could
only with reluctance take his wistful gaze from
his tartan,
obeyed the governor's orders to follow.
An hour later and the entire population of twenty-two had met
in the
chamber adjoining the gourbi. Young Pablo made his
first acquaintance
with little Nina, and the child seemed
highly delighted to find a companion
so nearly of her own age.
Leaving the children to entertain each other,
Captain Servadac
began his address.
Before entering upon further explanation, he said that he counted
upon the
cordial co-operation of them all for the common welfare.
Negrete interrupted him by declaring that no promises or pledges could
be
given until he and his countrymen knew how soon they could be sent
back to
Spain.
"To Spain, do you say?" asked Servadac.
"To Spain!" echoed Isaac Hakkabut, with a hideous yell.
"Do they expect to
go back to Spain till they have paid their debts?
Your Excellency, they owe
me twenty reals apiece for their passage here;
they owe me two hundred
reals. Are they to be allowed . . . ?"
"Silence, Mordecai, you fool!" shouted Ben Zoof, who was accustomed to
call
the Jew by any Hebrew name that came uppermost to his memory.
"Silence!"
Servadac was disposed to appease the old man's anxiety by promising to
see
that justice was ultimately done; but, in a fever of frantic
excitement,
he went on to implore that he might have the loan of a few
sailors to carry
his ship to Algiers.
"I will pay you honestly; I will pay you _well_," he cried;
but his
ingrained propensity for making a good bargain prompted
him to add, "provided
you do not overcharge me."
Ben Zoof was about again to interpose some angry exclamation;
but Servadac
checked him, and continued in Spanish: "Listen to me,
my friends.
Something very strange has happened. A most wonderful
event has cut us
off from Spain, from France, from Italy, from every
country of Europe.
In fact, we have left the Old World entirely.
Of the whole earth, nothing
remains except this island on which
you are now taking refuge. The old
globe is far, far away.
Our present abode is but an insignificant fragment
that is left.
I dare not tell you that there is any chance of your ever
again
seeing your country or your homes."
He paused. The Spaniards evidently had no conception of his meaning.
Negrete begged him to tell them all again. He repeated
all that he
had said, and by introducing some illustrations
from familiar things, he
succeeded to a certain extent in
conveying some faint idea of the convulsion
that had happened.
The event was precisely what he had foretold. The
communication
was received by all alike with the most supreme
indifference.
Hakkabut did not say a word. He had listened with manifest
attention,
his lips twitching now and then as if suppressing a
smile.
Servadac turned to him, and asked whether he was still disposed
to
put out to sea and make for Algiers.
The Jew gave a broad grin, which, however, he was careful to conceal
from
the Spaniards. "Your Excellency jests," he said in French;
and turning
to Count Timascheff, he added in Russian:
"The governor has made up a
wonderful tale."
The count turned his back in disgust, while the Jew sidled up
to little
Nina and muttered in Italian. "A lot of lies, pretty one;
a lot of
lies!"
"Confound the knave!" exclaimed Ben Zoof; "he gabbles every tongue
under
the sun!"
"Yes," said Servadac; "but whether he speaks French, Russian, Spanish,
German,
or Italian, he is neither more nor less than a Jew."
CHAPTER XX
A LIGHT ON THE HORIZON
On the following day, without giving himself any further concern
about
the Jew's incredulity, the captain gave orders for the _Hansa_ to
be
shifted round to the harbor of the Shelif. Hakkabut raised no
objection,
not only because he was aware that the move insured the
immediate
safety of his tartan, but because he was secretly entertaining the
hope
that he might entice away two or three of the _Dobryna's_ crew and
make
his escape to Algiers or some other port.
Operations now commenced for preparing proper winter quarters.
Spaniards
and Russians alike joined heartily in the work,
the diminution of atmospheric
pressure and of the force
of attraction contributing such an increase to
their muscular
force as materially facilitated all their labors.
The first business was to accommodate the building adjacent to
the gourbi
to the wants of the little colony. Here for the present
the Spaniards
were lodged, the Russians retaining their berths upon
the yacht, while the
Jew was permitted to pass his nights upon
the _Hansa_. This
arrangement, however, could be only temporary.
The time could not be far
distant when ships' sides and ordinary
walls would fail to give an adequate
protection from the severity
of the cold that must be expected; the stock of
fuel was too limited
to keep up a permanent supply of heat in their present
quarters,
and consequently they must be driven to seek some other
refuge,
the internal temperature of which would at least be bearable.
The plan that seemed to commend itself most to their consideration
was,
that they should dig out for themselves some subterraneous pits
similar
to "silos," such as are used as receptacles for grain. They
presumed
that when the surface of Gallia should be covered by a thick layer
of ice,
which is a bad conductor of heat, a sufficient amount of warmth
for
animal vitality might still be retained in excavations of this
kind.
After a long consultation they failed to devise any better
expedient,
and were forced to resign themselves to this species of troglodyte
existence.
In one respect they congratulated themselves that they should be
better
off than many of the whalers in the polar seas, for as it is
impossible
to get below the surface of a frozen ocean, these adventurers
have
to seek refuge in huts of wood and snow erected on their ships,
which
at best can give but slight protection from extreme cold;
but here, with a
solid subsoil, the Gallians might hope to dig down
a hundred feet or so and
secure for themselves a shelter that would
enable them to brave the hardest
severity of climate.
The order, then, was at once given. The work was commenced.
A stock
of shovels, mattocks, and pick-axes was brought from
the gourbi, and with Ben
Zoof as overseer, both Spanish majos
and Russian sailors set to work with a
will.
It was not long, however, before a discovery, more unexpected than
agreeable,
suddenly arrested their labors. The spot chosen for the
excavation was
a little to the right of the gourbi, on a slight elevation of
the soil.
For the first day everything went on prosperously enough; but at a
depth of
eight feet below the surface, the navvies came in contact with a
hard surface,
upon which all their tools failed to make the slightest
impression.
Servadac and the count were at once apprised of the fact, and had
little
difficulty in recognizing the substance that had revealed itself as
the very
same which composed the shores as well as the subsoil of the Gallian
sea.
It evidently formed the universal substructure of the new
asteroid.
Means for hollowing it failed them utterly. Harder and more
resisting
than granite, it could not be blasted by ordinary powder; dynamite
alone
could suffice to rend it.
The disappointment was very great. Unless some means of
protection
were speedily devised, death seemed to be staring them in the
face.
Were the figures in the mysterious documents correct? If so,
Gallia must
now be a hundred millions of leagues from the sun, nearly three
times
the distance of the earth at the remotest section of her orbit.
The
intensity of the solar light and heat, too, was very seriously
diminishing,
although Gourbi Island (being on the equator of an orb
which had its axes
always perpendicular to the plane in which it revolved)
enjoyed a position
that gave it a permanent summer. But no advantage
of this kind could
compensate for the remoteness of the sun.
The temperature fell steadily;
already, to the discomfiture of the
little Italian girl, nurtured in
sunshine, ice was beginning to form
in the crevices of the rocks, and
manifestly the time was impending
when the sea itself would freeze.
Some shelter must be found before the temperature should fall to 60
degrees
below zero. Otherwise death was inevitable. Hitherto, for
the last few days,
the thermometer had been registering an average of about 6
degrees
below zero, and it had become matter of experience that the
stove,
although replenished with all the wood that was available, was
altogether
inadequate to effect any sensible mitigation of the severity of
the cold.
Nor could any amount of fuel be enough. It was certain that
ere long
the very mercury and spirit in the thermometers would be
congealed.
Some other resort must assuredly be soon found, or they must
perish.
That was clear.
The idea of betaking themselves to the _Dobryna_ and _Hansa_ could
not for
a moment be seriously entertained; not only did the structure
of the vessels
make them utterly insufficient to give substantial shelter,
but they were
totally unfitted to be trusted as to their stability
when exposed to the
enormous pressure of the accumulated ice.
Neither Servadac, nor the count, nor Lieutenant Procope were men to
be
easily disheartened, but it could not be concealed that they felt
themselves
in circumstances by which they were equally harassed and
perplexed.
The sole expedient that their united counsel could suggest was to
obtain
a refuge below ground, and _that_ was denied them by the strange
and
impenetrable substratum of the soil; yet hour by hour the sun's disc
was
lessening in its dimensions, and although at midday some faint
radiance
and glow were to be distinguished, during the night the
painfulness
of the cold was becoming almost intolerable.
Mounted upon Zephyr and Galette, the captain and the count
scoured the
island in search of some available retreat.
Scarcely a yard of ground was
left unexplored, the horses clearing
every obstacle as if they were, like
Pegasus, furnished with wings.
But all in vain. Soundings were made
again and again,
but invariably with the same result; the rock, hard as
adamant,
never failed to reveal itself within a few feet of the surface
of
the ground.
The excavation of any silo being thus manifestly hopeless,
there seemed
nothing to be done except to try and render
the buildings alongside the
gourbi impervious to frost.
To contribute to the supply of fuel, orders were
given to collect
every scrap of wood, dry or green, that the island
produced;
and this involved the necessity of felling the numerous
trees
that were scattered over the plain. But toil as they might
at
the accumulation of firewood, Captain Servadac and his
companions could not
resist the conviction that the consumption
of a very short period would
exhaust the total stock.
And what would happen then?
Studious if possible to conceal his real misgivings, and anxious that
the
rest of the party should be affected as little as might be by his
own
uneasiness, Servadac would wander alone about the island, racking his
brain
for an idea that would point the way out of the serious difficulty.
But still
all in vain.
One day he suddenly came upon Ben Zoof, and asked him whether he had
no
plan to propose. The orderly shook his head, but after a few
moments'
pondering, said: "Ah! master, if only we were at Montmartre,
we would
get shelter in the charming stone-quarries."
"Idiot!" replied the captain, angrily, "if we were at Montmartre,
you
don't suppose that we should need to live in stone-quarries?"
But the means of preservation which human ingenuity had failed to
secure
were at hand from the felicitous provision of Nature herself.
It was on the
10th of March that the captain and Lieutenant Procope
started off once more
to investigate the northwest corner of the island;
on their way their
conversation naturally was engrossed by the subject
of the dire necessities
which only too manifestly were awaiting them.
A discussion more than usually
animated arose between them, for the two
men were not altogether of the same
mind as to the measures that ought
to be adopted in order to open the fairest
chance of avoiding a fatal
climax to their exposure; the captain persisted
that an entirely new abode
must be sought, while the lieutenant was equally
bent upon devising
a method of some sort by which their present quarters
might be rendered
sufficiently warm. All at once, in the very heat of
his argument,
Procope paused; he passed his hand across his eyes, as if to
dispel a mist,
and stood, with a fixed gaze centered on a point towards the
south.
"What is that?" he said, with a kind of hesitation. "No, I am
not mistaken,"
he added; "it is a light on the horizon."
"A light!" exclaimed Servadac; "show me where."
"Look there!" answered the lieutenant, and he kept pointing steadily
in
its direction, until Servadac also distinctly saw the bright speck
in the
distance.
It increased in clearness in the gathering shades of evening.
"Can it be a
ship?" asked the captain.
"If so, it must be in flames; otherwise we should not be able
to see it so
far off," replied Procope.
"It does not move," said Servadac; "and unless I am greatly deceived,
I
can hear a kind of reverberation in the air."
For some seconds the two men stood straining eyes and ears
in rapt
attention. Suddenly an idea struck Servadac's mind.
"The volcano!" he
cried; "may it not be the volcano that we saw,
whilst we were on board the
_Dobryna?_"
The lieutenant agreed that it was very probable.
"Heaven be praised!" ejaculated the captain, and he went
on in the tones
of a keen excitement: "Nature has provided
us with our winter quarters;
the stream of burning lava
that is flowing there is the gift of a bounteous
Providence;
it will provide us all the warmth we need. No time to
lose!
To-morrow, my dear Procope, to-morrow we will explore it all;
no
doubt the life, the heat we want is reserved for us in the heart
and bowels
of our own Gallia!"
Whilst the captain was indulging in his expressions of enthusiasm,
Procope
was endeavoring to collect his thoughts. Distinctly he remembered
the
long promontory which had barred the _Dobryna's_ progress while coasting
the
southern confines of the sea, and which had obliged her to ascend
northwards
as far as the former latitude of Oran; he remembered also that at
the
extremity of the promontory there was a rocky headland crowned with
smoke;
and now he was convinced that he was right in identifying the
position,
and in believing that the smoke had given place to an eruption of
flame.
When Servadac gave him a chance of speaking, he said, "The more I
consider
it, captain, the more I am satisfied that your conjecture is
correct.
Beyond a doubt, what we see is the volcano, and to-morrow we will
not fail
to visit it."
On returning to the gourbi, they communicated their discovery to
Count
Timascheff only, deeming any further publication of it to be premature.
The
count at once placed his yacht at their disposal, and expressed
his intention
of accompanying them.
"The yacht, I think," said Procope, "had better remain where she is;
the
weather is beautifully calm, and the steam-launch will answer
our purpose
better; at any rate, it will convey us much closer
to shore than the
schooner."
The count replied that the lieutenant was by all means to use
his own
discretion, and they all retired for the night.
Like many other modern pleasure-yachts, the _Dobryna_, in addition
to her
four-oar, was fitted with a fast-going little steam-launch,
its screw being
propelled, on the Oriolle system, by means of a boiler,
small but very
effective. Early next morning, this handy little craft
was sufficiently
freighted with coal (of which there was still about ten
tons on board the
_Dobryna_), and manned by nobody except the captain,
the count, and the
lieutenant, left the harbor of the Shelif, much to the
bewilderment of Ben
Zoof, who had not yet been admitted into the secret.
The orderly, however,
consoled himself with the reflection that he had
been temporarily invested
with the full powers of governor general,
an office of which he was not a
little proud.
The eighteen miles between the island and the headland
were made in
something less than three hours.
The volcanic eruption was manifestly very
considerable,
the entire summit of the promontory being enveloped in
flames.
To produce so large a combustion either the oxygen of
Gallia's
atmosphere had been brought into contact with the explosive
gases
contained beneath her soil, or perhaps, still more probable,
the
volcano, like those in the moon, was fed by an internal
supply of oxygen of
her own.
It took more than half an hour to settle on a suitable landing-place.
At
length, a small semi-circular creek was discovered among the rocks,
which
appeared advantageous, because, if circumstances should so require,
it would
form a safe anchorage for both the _Dobryna_ and the _Hansa_.
The launch securely moored, the passengers landed on the side of
the
promontory opposite to that on which a torrent of burning lava
was descending
to the sea. With much satisfaction they experienced,
as they approached
the mountain, a sensible difference in the temperature,
and their spirits
could not do otherwise than rise at the prospect of having
their hopes
confirmed, that a deliverance from the threatened calamity
had so opportunely
been found. On they went, up the steep acclivity,
scrambling over its
rugged projections, scaling the irregularities of its
gigantic strata,
bounding from point to point with the agility of chamois,
but never alighting
on anything except on the accumulation of the same
hexagonal prisms with
which they had now become so familiar.
Their exertions were happily rewarded. Behind a huge pyramidal rock
they
found a hole in the mountain-side, like the mouth of a great
tunnel.
Climbing up to this orifice, which was more than sixty feet above the
level
of the sea, they ascertained that it opened into a long dark
gallery.
They entered and groped their way cautiously along the sides.
A
continuous rumbling, that increased as they advanced, made them
aware that
they must be approaching the central funnel of the volcano;
their only fear
was lest some insuperable wall of rock should suddenly
bar their further
progress.
Servadac was some distance ahead.
"Come on!" he cried cheerily, his voice ringing through the
darkness,
"come on! Our fire is lighted! no stint of fuel! Nature
provides that!
Let us make haste and warm ourselves!"
Inspired by his confidence, the count and the lieutenant
advanced bravely
along the unseen and winding path.
The temperature was now at least fifteen
degrees above zero,
and the walls of the gallery were beginning to feel
quite
warm to the touch, an indication, not to be overlooked,
that the
substance of which the rock was composed was metallic
in its nature, and
capable of conducting heat.
"Follow me!" shouted Servadac again; "we shall soon find a regular stove!"
Onwards they made their way, until at last a sharp turn brought them
into
a sudden flood of light. The tunnel had opened into a vast cavern,
and
the gloom was exchanged for an illumination that was perfectly
dazzling.
Although the temperature was high, it was not in any way
intolerable.
One glance was sufficient to satisfy the explorers that
the grateful light
and heat of this huge excavation were to be
attributed to a torrent of lava
that was rolling downwards
to the sea, completely subtending the aperture of
the cave.
Not inaptly might the scene be compared to the celebrated
Grotto
of the Winds at the rear of the central fall of Niagara,
only with the
exception that here, instead of a curtain
of rushing water, it was a curtain
of roaring flame that hung
before the cavern's mouth.
"Heaven be praised!" cried Servadac, with glad emotion; "here is
all that
we hoped for, and more besides!"
CHAPTER XXI
WINTER QUARTERS
The habitation that had now revealed itself, well lighted and thoroughly
warm,
was indeed marvelous. Not only would it afford ample
accommodation for
Hector Servadac and "his subjects," as Ben Zoof delighted
to call them,
but it would provide shelter for the two horses, and for a
considerable
number of domestic animals.
This enormous cavern was neither more or less than the common junction
of
nearly twenty tunnels (similar to that which had been traversed by
the
explorers), forming ramifications in the solid rock, and the pores,
as it
were, by which the internal heat exuded from the heart of the mountain.
Here,
as long as the volcano retained its activity, every living
creature on the
new asteroid might brave the most rigorous of climates;
and as Count
Timascheff justly remarked, since it was the only burning
mountain they had
sighted, it was most probably the sole outlet for Gallia's
subterranean
fires, and consequently the eruption might continue unchanged
for ages to
come.
But not a day, not an hour, was to be lost now.
The steam-launch returned
to Gourbi Island, and preparations
were forthwith taken in hand for conveying
man and beast,
corn and fodder, across to the volcanic headland.
Loud and
hearty were the acclamations of the little colony,
especially of the
Spaniards, and great was the relief of Nina,
when Servadac announced to them
the discovery of their future domicile;
and with requickened energies they
labored hard at packing,
anxious to reach their genial winter quarters
without delay.
For three successive days the _Dobryna_, laden to her very gunwale,
made a
transit to and fro. Ben Zoof was left upon the island
to superintend
the stowage of the freight, whilst Servadac found
abundant occupation in
overlooking its disposal within the recesses
of the mountain. First of
all, the large store of corn and fodder,
the produce of the recent harvest,
was landed and deposited in one
of the vaults; then, on the 15th, about fifty
head of live cattle--
bullocks, cows, sheep, and pigs--were conveyed to their
rocky stalls.
These were saved for the sake of preserving the several
breeds,
the bulk of the island cattle being slaughtered, as the
extreme
severity of the climate insured all meat remaining fresh for
almost
an indefinite period. The winter which they were expecting
would
probably be of unprecedented length; it was quite likely that
it
would exceed the six months' duration by which many arctic
explorers
have been tried; but the population of Gallia had no anxiety
in
the matter of provisions--their stock was far more than adequate;
while
as for drink, as long as they were satisfied with pure water,
a frozen sea
would afford them an inexhaustible reservoir.
The need for haste in forwarding their preparations became more
and more
manifest; the sea threatened to be un-navigable very soon,
as ice was already
forming which the noonday sun was unable to melt.
And if haste were
necessary, so also were care, ingenuity, and forethought.
It was
indispensable that the space at their command should be
properly utilized,
and yet that the several portions of the store
should all be readily
accessible.
On further investigation an unexpected number of galleries
was discovered,
so that, in fact, the interior of the mountain
was like a vast bee-hive
perforated with innumerable cells;
and in compliment to the little Italian it
was unanimously voted
by the colony that their new home should be called
"Nina's Hive."
The first care of Captain Servadac was to ascertain how he could
make the
best possible use of the heat which nature had
provided for them so
opportunely and with so lavish a hand.
By opening fresh vents in the solid
rock (which by the action
of the heat was here capable of fissure) the
stream
of burning lava was diverted into several new channels,
where it
could be available for daily use; and thus Mochel,
the _Dobryna's_ cook, was
furnished with an admirable kitchen,
provided with a permanent stove, where
he was duly installed
with all his culinary apparatus.
"What a saving of expense it would be," exclaimed Ben Zoof, "if
every
household could be furnished with its own private volcano!"
The large cavern at the general junction of the galleries was fitted up
as
a drawing-room, and arranged with all the best furniture both of the
gourbi
and of the cabin of the _Dobryna_. Hither was also brought the
schooner's
library, containing a good variety of French and Russian books;
lamps were
suspended over the different tables; and the walls of the
apartment were
tapestried with the sails and adorned with the flags belonging
to the yacht.
The curtain of fire extending over the opening of the cavern
provided it,
as already stated, with light and heat.
The torrent of lava fell into a small rock-bound basin that had no
apparent
communication with the sea, and was evidently the aperture of a deep
abyss,
of which the waters, heated by the descent of the eruptive
matter,
would no doubt retain their liquid condition long after the Gallian
Sea
had become a sheet of ice.
A small excavation to the left of the common hall was allotted
for the
special use of Servadac and the count; another on
the right was appropriated
to the lieutenant and Ben Zoof;
whilst a third recess, immediately at the
back, made a convenient
little chamber for Nina. The Spaniards and the
Russian sailors
took up their sleeping-quarters in the adjacent
galleries,
and found the temperature quite comfortable.
Such were the internal arrangements of Nina's Hive, the refuge
where the
little colony were full of hope that they would be able
to brave the rigors
of the stern winter-time that lay before them--
a winter-time during which
Gallia might possibly be projected even
to the orbit of Jupiter, where the
temperature would not exceed
one twenty-fifth of the normal winter
temperature of the earth.
The only discontented spirit was Isaac Hakkabut. Throughout all
the
preparations which roused even the Spaniards to activity, the Jew,
still
incredulous and deaf to every representation of the true state
of things,
insisted upon remaining in the creek at Gourbi Island;
nothing could induce
him to leave his tartan, where, like a miser,
he would keep guard over his
precious cargo, ever grumbling
and growling, but with his weather-eye open in
the hope of catching
sight of some passing sail. It must be owned that
the whole
party were far from sorry to be relieved of his presence;
his
uncomely figure and repulsive countenance was a perpetual bugbear.
He had
given out in plain terms that he did not intend to part
with any of his
property, except for current money, and Servadac,
equally resolute, had
strictly forbidden any purchases to be made,
hoping to wear out the rascal's
obstinacy.
Hakkabut persistently refused to credit the real situation;
he could not
absolutely deny that some portions of the terrestrial
globe had undergone a
certain degree of modification, but nothing could
bring him to believe that
he was not, sooner or later, to résumé his
old line of business in the
Mediterranean. With his wonted distrust
of all with whom he came in
contact, he regarded every argument
that was urged upon him only as evidence
of a plot that had been
devised to deprive him of his goods.
Repudiating, as he did utterly,
the hypothesis that a fragment had become
detached from the earth,
he scanned the horizon for hours together with an
old telescope,
the case of which had been patched up till it looked like a
rusty
stove-pipe, hoping to descry the passing trader with which he
might
effect some bartering upon advantageous terms.
At first he professed to regard the proposed removal into
winter-quarters
as an attempt to impose upon his credulity;
but the frequent voyages made by
the _Dobryna_ to the south,
and the repeated consignments of corn and cattle,
soon served
to make him aware that Captain Servadac and his
companions
were really contemplating a departure from Gourbi Island.
The movement set him thinking. What, he began to ask himself--
what
if all that was told him was true? What if this sea was no
longer the
Mediterranean? What if he should never again behold his
German
fatherland? What if his marts for business were gone for ever?
A vague
idea of ruin began to take possession of his mind:
he must yield to
necessity; he must do the best he could.
As the result of his cogitations, he
occasionally left his tartan
and made a visit to the shore. At length
he endeavored to mingle
with the busy group, who were hurrying on their
preparations;
but his advances were only met by jeers and scorn, and,
ridiculed by
all the rest, he was fain to turn his attention to Ben
Zoof,
to whom he offered a few pinches of tobacco.
"No, old Zebulon," said Ben Zoof, steadily refusing the gift,
"it is
against orders to take anything from you.
Keep your cargo to yourself; eat
and drink it all if you can;
we are not to touch it."
Finding the subordinates incorruptible, Isaac determined
to go to the
fountain-head. He addressed himself to Servadac,
and begged him to tell him
the whole truth, piteously adding
that surely it was unworthy of a French
officer to deceive
a poor old man like himself.
"Tell you the truth, man!" cried Servadac. "Confound it, I have
told
you the truth twenty times. Once for all, I tell you now,
you have left
yourself barely time enough to make your escape
to yonder mountain."
"God and Mahomet have mercy on me!" muttered the Jew, whose
creed
frequently assumed a very ambiguous character.
"I will tell you what," continued the captain--"you shall have a few
men
to work the _Hansa_ across, if you like."
"But I want to go to Algiers," whimpered Hakkabut.
"How often am I to tell you that Algiers is no longer in existence?
Only
say yes or no--are you coming with us into winter-quarters?"
"God of Israel! what is to become of all my property?"
"But, mind you," continued the captain, not heeding the interruption,
"if
you do not choose voluntarily to come with us, I shall
have the _Hansa_, by
my orders, removed to a place of safety.
I am not going to let your cursed
obstinacy incur the risk
of losing your cargo altogether."
"Merciful Heaven! I shall be ruined!" moaned Isaac, in despair.
"You are going the right way to ruin yourself, and it would
serve you
right to leave you to your own devices. But be off!
I have no more to
say."
And, turning contemptuously on his heel, Servadac left the old
man
vociferating bitterly, and with uplifted hands protesting
vehemently against
the rapacity of the Gentiles.
By the 20th all preliminary arrangements were complete,
and everything
ready for a final departure from the island.
The thermometer stood on an
average at 8 degrees below zero,
and the water in the cistern was completely
frozen.
It was determined, therefore, for the colony to embark on
the
following day, and take up their residence in Nina's Hive.
A final consultation was held about the _Hansa_. Lieutenant
Procope
pronounced his decided conviction that it would be impossible for
the
tartan to resist the pressure of the ice in the harbor of the
Shelif,
and that there would be far more safety in the proximity of the
volcano.
It was agreed on all hands that the vessel must be shifted;
and
accordingly orders were given, four Russian sailors were sent on board,
and
only a few minutes elapsed after the _Dobryna_ had weighed anchor,
before the
great lateen sail of the tartan was unfurled, and the "shop-ship,"
as Ben
Zoof delighted to call it, was also on her way to the southward.
Long and loud were the lamentations of the Jew. He kept
exclaiming
that he had given no orders, that he was being moved
against
his will, that he had asked for no assistance, and needed
none;
but it required no very keen discrimination to observe that all
along
there was a lurking gleam of satisfaction in his little gray
eyes,
and when, a few hours later, he found himself securely anchored,
and
his property in a place of safety, he quite chuckled with glee.
"God of Israel!" he said in an undertone, "they have made no charge;
the
idiots have piloted me here for nothing."
For nothing! His whole nature exulted in the consciousness that he
was
enjoying a service that had been rendered gratuitously.
Destitute of human inhabitants, Gourbi Island was now left to the
tenancy
of such birds and beasts as had escaped the recent promiscuous
slaughter.
Birds, indeed, that had migrated in search of warmer shores, had
returned,
proving that this fragment of the French colony was the only shred
of land
that could yield them any sustenance; but their life must
necessarily
be short. It was utterly impossible that they could survive
the cold
that would soon ensue.
The colony took possession of their new abode with but few
formalities.
Everyone, however, approved of all the internal arrangements of
Nina's Hive,
and were profuse in their expressions of satisfaction at finding
themselves
located in such comfortable quarters. The only malcontent
was Hakkabut;
he had no share in the general enthusiasm, refused even to
enter or inspect
any of the galleries, and insisted on remaining on board his
tartan.
"He is afraid," said Ben Zoof, "that he will have to pay for his
lodgings.
But wait a bit; we shall see how he stands the cold out there; the
frost,
no doubt, will drive the old fox out of his hole."
Towards evening the pots were set boiling, and a bountiful supper,
to
which all were invited, was spread in the central hall.
The stores of the
_Dobryna_ contained some excellent wine,
some of which was broached to do
honor to the occasion.
The health of the governor general was drunk, as well
as the toast
"Success to his council," to which Ben Zoof was called
upon
to return thanks. The entertainment passed off merrily.
The
Spaniards were in the best of spirits; one of them played the guitar,
another
the castanets, and the rest joined in a ringing chorus.
Ben Zoof contributed
the famous Zouave refrain, well known
throughout the French army, but rarely
performed in finer style
than by this _virtuoso:_
_"Misti goth dar dar tire lyre!
Flic! floc! flac! lirette,
lira!
Far la
rira,
Tour tala
rire,
Tour la
Ribaud,
Ricandeau,
Sans repos, repit, repit, repos, ris pot, ripette!
Si vous attrapez mon
refrain,
Fameux vous
etes."_
The concert was succeeded by a ball, unquestionably the first that
had
ever taken place in Gallia. The Russian sailors exhibited some of
their
national dances, which gained considerable applause, even although
they
followed upon the marvelous fandangos of the Spaniards. Ben
Zoof,
in his turn, danced a _pas seul_ (often performed in the Elysee
Montmartre)
with an elegance and vigor that earned many compliments from
Negrete.
It was nine o'clock before the festivities came to an end, and by
that
time the company, heated by the high temperature of the hall,
and by their
own exertions, felt the want of a little fresh air.
Accordingly the greater
portion of the party, escorted by Ben Zoof,
made their way into one of the
adjacent galleries that led to the shore.
Servadac, with the count and
lieutenant, did not follow immediately;
but shortly afterwards they proceeded
to join them, when on their way
they were startled by loud cries from those
in advance.
Their first impression was that they were cries of distress,
and they were
greatly relieved to find that they were shouts
of delight, which the dryness
and purity of the atmosphere
caused to re-echo like a volley of musketry.
Reaching the mouth of the gallery, they found the entire group
pointing
with eager interest to the sky.
"Well, Ben Zoof," asked the captain, "what's the matter now?"
"Oh, your Excellency," ejaculated the orderly, "look there! look
there!
The moon! the moon's come back!"
And, sure enough, what was apparently the moon was rising above
the mists
of evening.
CHAPTER XXII
A FROZEN OCEAN
The moon! She had disappeared for weeks; was she now
returning?
Had she been faithless to the earth? and had she now
approached
to be a satellite of the new-born world?
"Impossible!" said Lieutenant Procope; "the earth is millions
and millions
of leagues away, and it is not probable that the moon
has ceased to revolve
about her."
"Why not?" remonstrated Servadac. "It would not be more strange
than
the other phenomena which we have lately witnessed.
Why should not the moon
have fallen within the limits of
Gallia's attraction, and become her
satellite?"
"Upon that supposition," put in the count, "I should think that it
would
be altogether unlikely that three months would elapse without
our seeing
her."
"Quite incredible!" continued Procope. "And there is another
thing
which totally disproves the captain's hypothesis;
the magnitude of Gallia is
far too insignificant for her power
of attraction to carry off the moon."
"But," persisted Servadac, "why should not the same convulsion
that tore
us away from the earth have torn away the moon as well?
After wandering about
as she would for a while in the solar regions,
I do not see why she should
not have attached herself to us."
The lieutenant repeated his conviction that it was not likely.
"But why not?" again asked Servadac impetuously.
"Because, I tell you, the mass of Gallia is so inferior to that
of the
moon, that Gallia would become the moon's satellite;
the moon could not
possibly become hers."
"Assuming, however," continued Servadac, "such to be the case--"
"I am afraid," said the lieutenant, interrupting him, "that I
cannot
assume anything of the sort even for a moment."
Servadac smiled good-humoredly.
"I confess you seem to have the best of the argument,
and if Gallia had
become a satellite of the moon,
it would not have taken three months to catch
sight of her.
I suppose you are right."
While this discussion had been going on, the satellite,
or whatever it
might be, had been rising steadily above the horizon,
and had reached a
position favorable for observation.
Telescopes were brought, and it was very
soon ascertained,
beyond a question, that the new luminary was not the
well-known Phoebe
of terrestrial nights; it had no feature in common with the
moon.
Although it was apparently much nearer to Gallia than the moon
to
the earth, its superficies was hardly one-tenth as large,
and so feebly did
it reflect the light of the remote sun,
that it scarcely emitted radiance
enough to extinguish
the dim luster of stars of the eighth magnitude.
Like
the sun, it had risen in the west, and was now at its full.
To mistake its
identity with the moon was absolutely impossible;
not even Servadac could
discover a trace of the seas,
chasms, craters, and mountains which have been
so minutely
delineated in lunar charts, and it could not be denied that
any
transient hope that had been excited as to their once again
being
about to enjoy the peaceful smiles of "the queen of night"
must all be
resigned.
Count Timascheff finally suggested, though somewhat doubtfully,
the
question of the probability that Gallia, in her course across
the zone of the
minor planets, had carried off one of them;
but whether it was one of the 169
asteroids already included
in the astronomical catalogues, or one previously
unknown, he did
not presume to determine. The idea to a certain extent
was plausible,
inasmuch as it has been ascertained that several of the
telescopic
planets are of such small dimensions that a good walker might
make
a circuit of them in four and twenty hours; consequently
Gallia,
being of superior volume, might be supposed capable of
exercising
a power of attraction upon any of these miniature microcosms.
The first night in Nina's Hive passed without special incident;
and next
morning a regular scheme of life was definitely laid down.
"My lord
governor," as Ben Zoof until he was peremptorily forbidden
delighted to call
Servadac, had a wholesome dread of idleness
and its consequences, and
insisted upon each member of the party
undertaking some special duty to
fulfill. There was plenty to do.
The domestic animals required a great
deal of attention; a supply
of food had to be secured and preserved; fishing
had to be carried
on while the condition of the sea would allow it; and in
several
places the galleries had to be further excavated to render
them
more available for use. Occupation, then, need never be
wanting,
and the daily round of labor could go on in orderly routine.
A perfect concord ruled the little colony. The Russians and
Spaniards
amalgamated well, and both did their best to pick up various
scraps
of French, which was considered the official language of the
place.
Servadac himself undertook the tuition of Pablo and Nina, Ben Zoof
being
their companion in play-hours, when he entertained them with
enchanting
stories in the best Parisian French, about "a lovely city at the
foot
of a mountain," where he always promised one day to take them.
The end of March came, but the cold was not intense to such a degree
as to
confine any of the party to the interior of their resort;
several excursions
were made along the shore, and for a radius
of three or four miles the
adjacent district was carefully explored.
Investigation, however, always
ended in the same result; turn their course
in whatever direction they would,
they found that the country retained
everywhere its desert character, rocky,
barren, and without a trace
of vegetation. Here and there a slight
layer of snow, or a thin coating
of ice arising from atmospheric condensation
indicated the existence
of superficial moisture, but it would require a
period indefinitely long,
exceeding human reckoning, before that moisture
could collect
into a stream and roll downwards over the stony strata to the
sea.
It seemed at present out of their power to determine whether the
land
upon which they were so happily settled was an island or a
continent,
and till the cold was abated they feared to undertake any
lengthened
expedition to ascertain the actual extent of the strange
concrete
of metallic crystallization.
By ascending one day to the summit of the volcano, Captain Servadac
and
the count succeeded in getting a general idea of the aspect of the
country.
The mountain itself was an enormous block rising symmetrically to a
height of
nearly 3,000 feet above the level of the sea, in the form of a
truncated cone,
of which the topmost section was crowned by a wreath of smoke
issuing
continuously from the mouth of a narrow crater.
Under the old condition of terrestrial things, the ascent of this
steep
acclivity would have been attended with much fatigue,
but as the effect of
the altered condition of the law of gravity,
the travelers performed
perpetual prodigies in the way of agility,
and in little over an hour reached
the edge of the crater,
without more sense of exertion than if they had
traversed
a couple of miles on level ground. Gallia had its
drawbacks,
but it had some compensating advantages.
Telescopes in hand, the explorers from the summit scanned the
surrounding
view. Their anticipations had already realized what they saw.
Just as
they expected, on the north, east, and west lay the Gallian Sea,
smooth and
motionless as a sheet of glass, the cold having, as it were,
congealed the
atmosphere so that there was not a breath of wind.
Towards the south there
seemed no limit to the land, and the volcano formed
the apex of a triangle,
of which the base was beyond the reach of vision.
Viewed even from this
height, whence distance would do much to soften
the general asperity, the
surface nevertheless seemed to be bristling
with its myriads of hexagonal
lamellae, and to present difficulties which,
to an ordinary pedestrian, would
be insurmountable.
"Oh for some wings, or else a balloon!" cried Servadac,
as he gazed around
him; and then, looking down to the rock
upon which they were standing, he
added, "We seem to have been
transplanted to a soil strange enough in its
chemical character
to bewilder the _savants_ at a museum."
"And do you observe, captain," asked the count, "how the convexity
of our
little world curtails our view? See, how circumscribed
is the
horizon!"
Servadac replied that he had noticed the same circumstance from the top
of
the cliffs of Gourbi Island.
"Yes," said the count; "it becomes more and more obvious that ours
is a
very tiny world, and that Gourbi Island is the sole productive
spot upon its
surface. We have had a short summer, and who knows
whether we are not
entering upon a winter that may last for years,
perhaps for centuries?"
"But we must not mind, count," said Servadac, smiling. "We have
agreed,
you know, that, come what may, we are to be philosophers."
"Ay, true, my friend," rejoined the count; "we must be philosophers
and
something more; we must be grateful to the good Protector who has
hitherto
befriended us, and we must trust His mercy to the end."
For a few moments they both stood in silence, and contemplated
land and
sea; then, having given a last glance over
the dreary panorama, they prepared
to wend their way down
the mountain. Before, however, they commenced
their descent,
they resolved to make a closer examination of the
crater.
They were particularly struck by what seemed to them almost
the
mysterious calmness with which the eruption was effected.
There was none of
the wild disorder and deafening tumult
that usually accompany the discharge
of volcanic matter,
but the heated lava, rising with a uniform
gentleness,
quietly overran the limits of the crater, like the flow of
water
from the bosom of a peaceful lake. Instead of a boiler
exposed
to the action of an angry fire, the crater rather resembled
a
brimming basin, of which the contents were noiselessly escaping.
Nor were
there any igneous stones or red-hot cinders mingled
with the smoke that
crowned the summit; a circumstance that quite
accorded with the absence of
the pumice-stones, obsidians,
and other minerals of volcanic origin with
which the base
of a burning mountain is generally strewn.
Captain Servadac was of opinion that this peculiarity augured
favorably
for the continuance of the eruption. Extreme violence
in physical, as
well as in moral nature, is never of long duration.
The most terrible storms,
like the most violent fits of passion,
are not lasting; but here the calm
flow of the liquid fire appeared
to be supplied from a source that was
inexhaustible, in the same way
as the waters of Niagara, gliding on steadily
to their final plunge,
would defy all effort to arrest their course.
Before the evening of this day closed in, a most important change
was
effected in the condition of the Gallian Sea by the intervention
of human
agency. Notwithstanding the increasing cold, the sea,
unruffled as it
was by a breath of wind, still retained its liquid state.
It is an
established fact that water, under this condition of absolute
stillness, will
remain uncongealed at a temperature several degrees
below zero, whilst
experiment, at the same time, shows that a very
slight shock will often be
sufficient to convert it into solid ice.
It had occurred to Servadac that if
some communication could be opened
with Gourbi Island, there would be a fine
scope for hunting expeditions.
Having this ultimate object in view, he
assembled his little
colony upon a projecting rock at the extremity of the
promontory,
and having called Nina and Pablo out to him in front, he
said:
"Now, Nina, do you think you could throw something into the sea?"
"I think I could," replied the child, "but I am sure that Pablo
would
throw it a great deal further than I can."
"Never mind, you shall try first."
Putting a fragment of ice into Nina's hand, he addressed himself to Pablo:
"Look out, Pablo; you shall see what a nice little fairy Nina is!
Throw,
Nina, throw, as hard as you can."
Nina balanced the piece of ice two or three times in her hand,
and threw
it forward with all her strength.
A sudden thrill seemed to vibrate across the motionless waters
to the
distant horizon, and the Gallian Sea had become a solid
sheet of ice!
CHAPTER XXIII
A CARRIER-PIGEON
When, three hours after sunset, on the 23d of March, the Gallian
moon
rose upon the western horizon, it was observed that she
had entered upon her
last quarter. She had taken only four days
to pass from syzygy to
quadrature, and it was consequently evident
that she would be visible for
little more than a week at a time,
and that her lunation would be
accomplished within sixteen days.
The lunar months, like the solar days, had
been diminished by
one-half. Three days later the moon was in conjunction
with the sun,
and was consequently lost to view; Ben Zoof, as the first
observer
of the satellite, was extremely interested in its movements,
and
wondered whether it would ever reappear.
On the 26th, under an atmosphere perfectly clear and dry,
the thermometer
fell to 12 degrees F. below zero.
Of the present distance of Gallia from the
sun, and the number
of leagues she had traversed since the receipt of the
last
mysterious document, there were no means of judging;
the extent of
diminution in the apparent disc of the sun did
not afford sufficient basis
even for an approximate calculation;
and Captain Servadac was perpetually
regretting that they could
receive no further tidings from the anonymous
correspondent,
whom he persisted in regarding as a fellow-countryman.
The solidity of the ice was perfect; the utter stillness of the air at
the
time when the final congelation of the waters had taken place had resulted
in
the formation of a surface that for smoothness would rival a
skating-rink;
without a crack or flaw it extended far beyond the range of
vision.
The contrast to the ordinary aspect of polar seas was very
remarkable.
There, the ice-fields are an agglomeration of hummocks and
icebergs,
massed in wild confusion, often towering higher than the
masts
of the largest whalers, and from the instability of their
foundations
liable to an instantaneous loss of equilibrium; a breath of
wind,
a slight modification of the temperature, not unfrequently
serving
to bring about a series of changes outrivaling the most
elaborate
transformation scenes of a pantomime. Here, on the contrary,
the vast
white plain was level as the desert of Sahara or the Russian
steppes;
the waters of the Gallian Sea were imprisoned beneath the solid
sheet,
which became continually stouter in the increasing cold.
Accustomed to the uneven crystallizations of their own frozen seas,
the
Russians could not be otherwise than delighted with the polished
surface that
afforded them such excellent opportunity for enjoying
their favorite pastime
of skating. A supply of skates, found hidden
away amongst the
_Dobryna's_ stores, was speedily brought into use.
The Russians undertook the
instruction of the Spaniards,
and at the end of a few days, during which the
temperature
was only endurable through the absence of wind, there was
not
a Gallian who could not skate tolerably well, while many of them
could
describe figures involving the most complicated curves.
Nina and Pablo earned
loud applause by their rapid proficiency;
Captain Servadac, an adept in
athletics, almost outvied his instructor,
the count; and Ben Zoof, who had
upon some rare occasions skated upon
the Lake of Montmartre (in his eyes, of
course, a sea), performed
prodigies in the art.
This exercise was not only healthful in itself, but it was acknowledged
that,
in case of necessity, it might become a very useful means of
locomotion.
As Captain Servadac remarked, it was almost a substitute for
railways,
and as if to illustrate this proposition, Lieutenant Procope,
perhaps the
greatest expert in the party, accomplished the twenty miles to
Gourbi Island
and back in considerably less than four hours.
The temperature, meanwhile, continued to decrease, and the average
reading
of the thermometer was about 16 degrees F. below zero; the light
also
diminished in proportion, and all objects appeared to be enveloped in
a
half-defined shadow, as though the sun were undergoing a perpetual
eclipse.
It was not surprising that the effect of this continuously
overhanging gloom
should be to induce a frequent depression of spirits
amongst the majority
of the little population, exiles as they were from their
mother earth,
and not unlikely, as it seemed, to be swept far away into the
regions
of another planetary sphere. Probably Count Timascheff, Captain
Servadac,
and Lieutenant Procope were the only members of the community who
could
bring any scientific judgment to bear upon the uncertainty that
was
before them, but a general sense of the strangeness of their
situation
could not fail at times to weigh heavily upon the minds of
all.
Under these circumstances it was very necessary to counteract the
tendency
to de-spond by continual diversion; and the recreation of skating
thus
opportunely provided, seemed just the thing to arouse the flagging
spirits,
and to restore a wholesome excitement.
With dogged obstinacy, Isaac Hakkabut refused to take any
share either in
the labors or the amusements of the colony.
In spite of the cold, he had not
been seen since the day
of his arrival from Gourbi Island. Captain
Servadac
had strictly forbidden any communication with him;
and the smoke
that rose from the cabin chimney of the _Hansa_
was the sole indication of
the proprietor being still on board.
There was nothing to prevent him, if he
chose, from partaking
gratuitously of the volcanic light and heat which were
being
enjoyed by all besides; but rather than abandon his close
and
personal oversight of his precious cargo, he preferred
to sacrifice his own
slender stock of fuel.
Both the schooner and the tartan had been carefully moored in the way
that
seemed to promise best for withstanding the rigor of the winter.
After seeing
the vessels made secure in the frozen creek.
Lieutenant Procope, following
the example of many Arctic explorers,
had the precaution to have the ice
beveled away from the keels,
so that there should be no risk of the ships'
sides being crushed
by the increasing pressure; he hoped that they would
follow any
rise in the level of the ice-field, and when the thaw should
come,
that they would easily regain their proper water-line.
On his last visit to Gourbi Island, the lieutenant had ascertained
that
north, east, and west, far as the eye could reach,
the Gallian Sea had become
one uniform sheet of ice.
One spot alone refused to freeze; this was the pool
immediately
below the central cavern, the receptacle for the stream
of
burning lava. It was entirely enclosed by rocks,
and if ever a few
icicles were formed there by the action
of the cold, they were very soon
melted by the fiery shower.
Hissing and spluttering as the hot lava came in
contact with it,
the water was in a continual state of ebullition, and the
fish
that abounded in its depths defied the angler's craft; they were,
as
Ben Zoof remarked, "too much boiled to bite."
At the beginning of April the weather changed. The sky became
overcast,
but there was no rise in the temperature. Unlike the polar
winters
of the earth, which ordinarily are affected by atmospheric
influence,
and liable to slight intermissions of their severity at various
shiftings
of the wind, Gallia's winter was caused by her immense distance
from
the source of all light and heat, and the cold was consequently
destined
to go on steadily increasing until it reached the limit
ascertained
by Fourier to be the normal temperature of the realms of
space.
With the over-clouding of the heavens there arose a violent tempest;
but
although the wind raged with an almost inconceivable fury, it
was
unaccompanied by either snow or rain. Its effect upon the burning
curtain
that covered the aperture of the central hall was very
remarkable.
So far from there being any likelihood of the fire being
extinguished
by the vehemence of the current of air, the hurricane seemed
rather
to act as a ventilator, which fanned the flame into greater
activity,
and the utmost care was necessary to avoid being burnt by the
fragments
of lava that were drifted into the interior of the grotto.
More than once
the curtain itself was rifted entirely asunder, but only to
close up again
immediately after allowing a momentary draught of cold air to
penetrate the
hall in a way that was refreshing and rather advantageous than
otherwise.
On the 4th of April, after an absence of about four days, the new
satellite,
to Ben Zoof's great satisfaction, made its reappearance in a
crescent form,
a circumstance that seemed to justify the anticipation that
henceforward it
would continue to make a periodic revolution every
fortnight.
The crust of ice and snow was far too stout for the beaks
of the strongest
birds to penetrate, and accordingly large
swarms had left the island, and,
following the human population,
had taken refuge on the volcanic promontory;
not that there
the barren shore had anything in the way of nourishment
to
offer them, but their instinct impelled them to haunt now
the very
habitations which formerly they would have shunned.
Scraps of food were
thrown to them from the galleries;
these were speedily devoured, but were
altogether inadequate
in quantity to meet the demand. At length,
emboldened by hunger,
several hundred birds ventured through the tunnel, and
took up their
quarters actually in Nina's Hive. Congregating in the
large hall,
the half-famished creatures did not hesitate to snatch
bread,
meat, or food of any description from the hands of the residents
as
they sat at table, and soon became such an intolerable nuisance
that it
formed one of the daily diversions to hunt them down;
but although they were
vigorously attacked by stones and sticks,
and even occasionally by shot, it
was with some difficulty
that their number could be sensibly reduced.
By a systematic course of warfare the bulk of the birds
were all expelled,
with the exception of about a hundred,
which began to build in the crevices
of the rocks.
These were left in quiet possession of their quarters, as
not
only was it deemed advisable to perpetuate the various breeds,
but it
was found that these birds acted as a kind of police,
never failing either to
chase away or to kill any others of
their species who infringed upon what
they appeared to regard
as their own special privilege in intruding within
the limits
of their domain.
On the 15th loud cries were suddenly heard issuing from the mouth
of the
principal gallery.
"Help, help! I shall be killed!"
Pablo in a moment recognized the voice as Nina's. Outrunning
even Ben Zoof
he hurried to the assistance of his little playmate,
and discovered that she
was being attacked by half a dozen
great sea-gulls, and only after receiving
some severe blows
from their beaks could he succeed by means of a stout
cudgel
in driving them away.
"Tell me, Nina, what is this?" he asked as soon as the tumult had subsided.
The child pointed to a bird which she was caressing tenderly in her bosom.
"A pigeon!" exclaimed Ben Zoof, who had reached the scene
of commotion,
adding:
"A carrier-pigeon! And by all the saints of Montmartre,
there is a little
bag attached to its neck!"
He took the bird, and rushing into the hall placed it in Servadac's hands.
"Another message, no doubt," cried the captain, "from our unknown
friend.
Let us hope that this time he has given us his name and address."
All crowded round, eager to hear the news. In the struggle
with the
gulls the bag had been partially torn open, but still
contained the following
dispatch: "Gallia!
Chemin parcouru du 1er Mars au 1er Avril: 39,000,000 1.!
Distance du soleil: 110,000,000 1.!
Capte Nerina en passant.
Vivres vont manquer et . . ."
The rest of the document had been so damaged by the beaks of
the gulls
that it was illegible. Servadac was wild with vexation.
He felt more
and more convinced that the writer was a Frenchman, and that
the last line
indicated that he was in distress from scarcity of food.
The very thought of
a fellow-countryman in peril of starvation drove
him well-nigh to
distraction, and it was in vain that search was made
everywhere near the
scene of conflict in hopes of finding the missing
scrap that might bear a
signature or address.
Suddenly little Nina, who had again taken possession of the pigeon,
and
was hugging it to her breast, said:
"Look here, Ben Zoof!"
And as she spoke she pointed to the left wing of the bird.
The wing bore
the faint impress of a postage-stamp, and the
one word:
"FORMENTERA."
CHAPTER XXIV
A SLEDGE-RIDE
Formentera was at once recognized by Servadac and the count as the
name
of one of the smallest of the Balearic Islands. It was more than
probable
that the unknown writer had thence sent out the mysterious
documents,
and from the message just come to hand by the carrier-pigeon, it
appeared
all but certain that at the beginning of April, a fortnight
back,
he had still been there. In one important particular the
present
communication differed from those that had preceded it: it was
written
entirely in French, and exhibited none of the ecstatic
exclamations
in other languages that had been remarkable in the two former
papers.
The concluding line, with its intimation of failing
provisions,
amounted almost to an appeal for help. Captain Servadac
briefly drew
attention to these points, and concluded by saying, "My friends,
we must,
without delay, hasten to the assistance of this unfortunate
man."
"For my part," said the count, "I am quite ready to accompany you;
it is
not unlikely that he is not alone in his distress."
Lieutenant Procope expressed much surprise. "We must have passed
close
to Formentera," he said, "when we explored the site of the Balearic
Isles;
this fragment must be very small; it must be smaller than the
remaining
splinter of Gibraltar or Ceuta; otherwise, surely it would never
have
escaped our observation."
"However small it may be," replied Servadac, "we must find it.
How far off
do you suppose it is?"
"It must be a hundred and twenty leagues away," said the
lieutenant,
thoughtfully; "and I do not quite understand how you would
propose
to get there."
"Why, on skates of course; no difficulty in that, I should
imagine,"
answered Servadac, and he appealed to the count for
confirmation
of his opinion.
The count assented, but Procope looked doubtful.
"Your enterprise is generous," he said, "and I should be most unwilling
to
throw any unnecessary obstacle in the way of its execution; but, pardon
me,
if I submit to you a few considerations which to my mind are very
important.
First of all, the thermometer is already down to 22 degrees below
zero, and
the keen wind from the south is making the temperature absolutely
unendurable;
in the second place, supposing you travel at the rate of twenty
leagues a day,
you would be exposed for at least six consecutive days; and
thirdly,
your expedition will be of small avail unless you convey provisions
not only
for yourselves, but for those whom you hope to relieve."
"We can carry our own provisions on our backs in knapsacks,"
interposed
Servadac, quickly, unwilling to recognize any difficulty
in the way.
"Granted that you can," answered the lieutenant, quietly; "but where,
on
this level ice-field, will you find shelter in your periods of rest?
You must
perish with cold; you will not have the chance of digging
out ice-huts like
the Esquimaux."
"As to rest," said Servadac, "we shall take none; we shall keep on our
way
continuously; by traveling day and night without intermission,
we shall not
be more than three days in reaching Formentera."
"Believe me," persisted the lieutenant, calmly, "your enthusiasm
is
carrying you too far; the feat you propose is impossible;
but even conceding
the possibility of your success in reaching
your destination, what service do
you imagine that you,
half-starved and half-frozen yourself, could render to
those
who are already perishing by want and exposure? you would
only bring
them away to die."
The obvious and dispassionate reasoning of the lieutenant could
not fail
to impress the minds of those who listened to him;
the impracticability of
the journey became more and more apparent;
unprotected on that drear expanse,
any trav-eler must assuredly succumb
to the snow-drifts that were continually
being whirled across it.
But Hector Servadac, animated by the generous desire
of rescuing
a suffering fellow-creature, could scarcely be brought
within
the bounds of common sense. Against his better judgment he
was
still bent upon the expedition, and Ben Zoof declared himself
ready to
accompany his master in the event of Count Timascheff
hesitating to encounter
the peril which the undertaking involved.
But the count entirely repudiated
all idea of shrinking from what,
quite as much as the captain, he regarded as
a sacred duty,
and turning to Lieutenant Procope, told him that unless some
better
plan could be devised, he was prepared to start off at once
and
make the attempt to skate across to Formentera. The lieutenant,
who was
lost in thought, made no immediate reply.
"I wish we had a sledge," said Ben Zoof.
"I dare say that a sledge of some sort could be contrived," said the
count;
"but then we should have no dogs or reindeers to draw it."
"Why not rough-shoe the two horses?"
"They would never be able to endure the cold," objected the count.
"Never mind," said Servadac, "let us get our sledge and put them to the
test.
Something must be done!"
"I think," said Lieutenant Procope, breaking his thoughtful silence,
"that
I can tell you of a sledge already provided for your hand,
and I can suggest
a motive power surer and swifter than horses."
"What do you mean?" was the eager inquiry.
"I mean the _Dobryna_'s yawl," answered the lieutenant;
"and I have no
doubt that the wind would carry her rapidly
along the ice."
The idea seemed admirable. Lieutenant Procope was well aware to
what
marvelous perfection the Americans had brought their
sail-sledges,
and had heard how in the vast prairies of the United
States
they had been known to outvie the speed of an express
train,
occasionally attaining a rate of more than a hundred miles an
hour.
The wind was still blowing hard from the south, and assuming
that
the yawl could be propelled with a velocity of about fifteen
or at least
twelve leagues an hour, he reckoned that it was quite
possible to reach
Formentera within twelve hours, that is to say,
in a single day between the
intervals of sunrise and sunrise.
The yawl was about twelve feet long, and capable of holding
five or six
people. The addition of a couple of iron runners
would be all that was
requisite to convert it into an excellent
sledge, which, if a sail were
hoisted, might be deemed certain
to make a rapid progress over the smooth
surface of the ice.
For the protection of the passengers it was proposed to
erect
a kind of wooden roof lined with strong cloth; beneath this could
be
packed a supply of provisions, some warm furs, some cordials,
and a portable
stove to be heated by spirits of wine.
For the outward journey the wind was as favorable as could be desired;
but
it was to be apprehended that, unless the direction of the wind
should
change, the return would be a matter of some difficulty;
a system of tacking
might be carried out to a certain degree,
but it was not likely that the yawl
would answer her helm
in any way corresponding to what would occur in the
open sea.
Captain Servadac, however, would not listen to any
representation
of probable difficulties; the future, he said, must provide
for itself.
The engineer and several of the sailors set vigorously to work,
and before
the close of the day the yawl was furnished with a pair
of stout iron
runners, curved upwards in front, and fitted with a metal
scull designed to
assist in maintaining the directness of her course;
the roof was put on, and
beneath it were stored the provisions,
the wraps, and the cooking
utensils.
A strong desire was expressed by Lieutenant Procope that he should be
allowed
to accompany Captain Servadac instead of Count Timascheff. It
was unadvisable
for all three of them to go, as, in case of there being
several persons
to be rescued, the space at their command would be quite
inadequate.
The lieutenant urged that he was the most experienced seaman, and
as such was
best qualified to take command of the sledge and the management
of the sails;
and as it was not to be expected that Servadac would resign his
intention
of going in person to relieve his fellow-countryman, Procope
submitted his own
wishes to the count. The count was himself very
anxious to have his share
in the philanthropic enterprise, and demurred
considerably to the proposal;
he yielded, however, after a time, to
Servadac's representations that in
the event of the expedition proving
disastrous, the little colony would need
his services alike as governor and
protector, and overcoming his reluctance
to be left out of the perilous
adventure, was prevailed upon to remain behind
for the general good of the
community at Nina's Hive.
At sunrise on the following morning, the l6th of April, Captain
Servadac
and the lieutenant took their places in the yawl. The
thermometer
was more than 20 degrees below zero, and it was with deep emotion
that
their companions beheld them thus embarking upon the vast white
plain.
Ben Zoof's heart was too full for words; Count Timascheff could
not
forbear pressing his two brave friends to his bosom; the Spaniards
and
the Russian sailors crowded round for a farewell shake of the hand,
and
little Nina, her great eyes flooded with tears, held up her face
for a
parting kiss. The sad scene was not permitted to be long.
The sail was
quickly hoisted, and the sledge, just as if it had expanded
a huge white
wing, was in a little while carried far away beyond the horizon.
Light and unimpeded, the yawl scudded on with incredible speed.
Two sails,
a brigantine and a jib, were arranged to catch the wind
to the greatest
advantage, and the travelers estimated that their
progress would be little
under the rate of twelve leagues an hour.
The motion of their novel vehicle
was singularly gentle,
the oscillation being less than that of an ordinary
railway-carriage,
while the diminished force of gravity contributed to the
swiftness.
Except that the clouds of ice-dust raised by the metal
runners
were an evidence that they had not actually left the level
surface
of the ice, the captain and lieutenant might again and again
have
imagined that they were being conveyed through the air in a balloon.
Lieutenant Procope, with his head all muffled up for fear of
frost-bite,
took an occasional peep through an aperture that had been
intentionally left
in the roof, and by the help of a compass, maintained a
proper and straight
course for Formentera. Nothing could be more
dejected than the aspect
of that frozen sea; not a single living creature
relieved the solitude;
both the travelers, Procope from a scientific point of
view, Servadac from
an aesthetic, were alike impressed by the solemnity of
the scene,
and where the lengthened shadow of the sail cast upon the ice by
the oblique
rays of the setting sun had disappeared, and day had given place
to night,
the two men, drawn together as by an involuntary impulse, mutually
held
each other's hands in silence.
There had been a new moon on the previous evening; but, in the absence
of
moonlight, the constellations shone with remarkable brilliancy.
The new
pole-star close upon the horizon was resplendent, and even
had Lieutenant
Procope been destitute of a compass, he would have had
no difficulty in
holding his course by the guidance of that alone.
However great was the
distance that separated Gallia from the sun,
it was after all manifestly
insignificant in comparison with the remoteness
of the nearest of the fixed
stars.
Observing that Servadac was completely absorbed in his own
thoughts,
Lieutenant Procope had leisure to contemplate some of the
present
perplexing problems, and to ponder over the true astronomical
position.
The last of the three mysterious documents had represented that
Gallia,
in conformity with Kepler's second law, had traveled along her orbit
during
the month of March twenty millions of leagues less than she had
done
in the previous month; yet, in the same time, her distance from the
sun
had nevertheless been increased by thirty-two millions of leagues.
She
was now, therefore, in the center of the zone of telescopic
planets that
revolve between the orbits of Mars and Jupiter, and had
captured for herself
a satellite which, according to the document,
was Nerina, one of the
asteroids most recently identified.
If thus, then, it was within the power of
the unknown writer
to estimate with such apparent certainty Gallia's exact
position,
was it not likely that his mathematical calculations would enable
him
to arrive at some definite conclusion as to the date at which
she
would begin again to approach the sun? Nay, was it not to be
expected
that he had already estimated, with sufficient approximation to
truth,
what was to be the true length of the Gallian year?
So intently had they each separately been following their own train
of
thought, that daylight reappeared almost before the travelers were
aware of
it. On consulting their instruments, they found that they
must have
traveled close upon a hundred leagues since they started,
and they resolved
to slacken their speed. The sails were accordingly
taken in a little,
and in spite of the intensity of the cold,
the explorers ventured out of
their shelter, in order that they might
reconnoiter the plain, which was
apparently as boundless as ever.
It was completely desert; not so much as a
single point of rock
relieved the bare uniformity of its surface.
"Are we not considerably to the west of Formentera?" asked Servadac,
after
examining the chart.
"Most likely," replied Procope. "I have taken the same course as I
should
have done at sea, and I have kept some distance to windward of the
island;
we can bear straight down upon it whenever we like."
"Bear down then, now; and as quickly as you can."
The yawl was at once put with her head to the northeast
and Captain
Servadac, in defiance of the icy blast,
remained standing at the bow, his
gaze fixed on the horizon.
All at once his eye brightened.
"Look! look!" he exclaimed, pointing to a faint outline that broke
the
monotony of the circle that divided the plain from the sky.
In an instant the lieutenant had seized his telescope.
"I see what you mean," said he; "it is a pylone that has been
used for
some geodesic survey."
The next moment the sail was filled, and the yawl was
bearing down upon
the object with inconceivable swiftness,
both Captain Servadac and the
lieutenant too excited to utter a word.
Mile after mile the distance rapidly
grew less, and as they
drew nearer the pylone they could see that it was
erected on
a low mass of rocks that was the sole interruption to the
dull
level of the field of ice. No wreath of smoke rose above
the
little island; it was manifestly impossible, they conceived,
that any human
being could there have survived the cold;
the sad presentiment forced itself
upon their minds that it
was a mere cairn to which they had been
hurrying.
Ten minutes later, and they were so near the rock that
the lieutenant took
in his sail, convinced that the impetus
already attained would be sufficient
to carry him to the land.
Servadac's heart bounded as he caught sight of a
fragment of blue
canvas fluttering in the wind from the top of the
pylone:
it was all that now remained of the French national standard.
At
the foot of the pylone stood a miserable shed, its shutters
tightly
closed. No other habitation was to be seen; the entire
island was less
than a quarter of a mile in circumference;
and the conclusion was
irresistible that it was the sole surviving
remnant of Formentera, once a
member of the Balearic Archipelago.
To leap on shore, to clamber over the slippery stones,
and to reach the
cabin was but the work of a few moments.
The worm-eaten door was bolted on
the inside.
Servadac began to knock with all his might. No
answer.
Neither shouting nor knocking could draw forth a reply.
"Let us force it open, Procope!" he said.
The two men put their shoulders to the door, which soon yielded to
their
vigorous efforts, and they found themselves inside the shed, and in
almost
total darkness. By opening a shutter they admitted what daylight
they could.
At first sight the wretched place seemed to be deserted; the
little grate
contained the ashes of a fire long since extinguished; all
looked black
and desolate. Another instant's investigation, however,
revealed a bed
in the extreme corner, and extended on the bed a human
form.
"Dead!" sighed Servadac; "dead of cold and hunger!"
Lieutenant Procope bent down and anxiously contemplated the body.
"No; he is alive!" he said, and drawing a small flask from his pocket
he
poured a few drops of brandy between the lips of the senseless man.
There was a faint sigh, followed by a feeble voice, which uttered
the one
word, "Gallia?"
"Yes, yes! Gallia!" echoed Servadac, eagerly.
"My comet, my comet!" said the voice, so low as to be almost
inaudible,
and the unfortunate man relapsed again into unconsciousness.
"Where have I seen this man?" thought Servadac to himself;
"his face is
strangely familiar to me."
But it was no time for deliberation. Not a moment was to be lost
in
getting the unconscious astronomer away from his desolate quarters.
He was
soon conveyed to the yawl; his books, his scanty wardrobe,
his papers, his
instruments, and the blackboard which had
served for his calculations, were
quickly collected; the wind,
by a fortuitous Providence, had shifted into a
favorable quarter;
they set their sail with all speed, and ere long were on
their
journey back from Formentera.
Thirty-six hours later, the brave travelers were greeted by
the
acclamations of their fellow-colonists, who had been most
anxiously
awaiting their reappearance, and the still senseless
_savant_,
who had neither opened his eyes nor spoken a word throughout
the
journey, was safely deposited in the warmth and security
of the great hall of
Nina's Hive.
END OF FIRST BOOK
BOOK II
CHAPTER I
THE ASTRONOMER
By the return of the expedition, conveying its contribution from
Formentera,
the known population of Gallia was raised to a total of
thirty-six.
On learning the details of his friends' discoveries, Count Timascheff
did
not hesitate in believing that the exhausted individual who was lying
before
him was the author alike of the two unsigned documents picked up at
sea,
and of the third statement so recently brought to hand by the
carrier-pigeon.
Manifestly, he had arrived at some knowledge of Gallia's
movements:
he had estimated her distance from the sun; he had calculated the
diminution
of her tangential speed; but there was nothing to show that he had
arrived
at the conclusions which were of the most paramount interest to them
all.
Had he ascertained the true character of her orbit? had he
established
any data from which it would be possible to reckon what time must
elapse
before she would again approach the earth?
The only intelligible words which the astronomer had uttered
had been, "My
comet!"
To what could the exclamation refer? Was it to be conjectured
that a
fragment of the earth had been chipped off by the collision
of a comet? and
if so, was it implied that the name of the comet
itself was Gallia, and were
they mistaken in supposing that such was
the name given by the _savant_ to
the little world that had been
so suddenly launched into space? Again
and again they discussed.
these questions; but no satisfactory answer could
be found.
The only man who was able to throw any light upon the subject
was
lying amongst them in an unconscious and half-dying condition.
Apart from motives of humanity, motives of self-interest made it a
matter
of the deepest concern to restore animation to that senseless
form.
Ben Zoof, after making the encouraging remark that _savants_ have as
many
lives as a cat, proceeded, with Negrete's assistance, to give the
body
such a vigorous rubbing as would have threatened serious injury to
any
ordinary mortal, whilst they administered cordials and
restoratives
from the _Dobryna's_ medical stores powerful enough, one might
think,
to rouse the very dead.
Meanwhile the captain was racking his brain in his exertions
to recall
what were the circumstances of his previous acquaintance
with the Frenchman
upon whose features he was gazing; he only grew
more and more convinced that
he had once been familiar with them.
Perhaps it was not altogether surprising
that he had almost
forgotten him; he had never seen him since the days of his
youth,
that time of life which, with a certain show of justice, has
been
termed the age of ingratitude; for, in point of fact, the
astronomer
was none other than Professor Palmyrin Rosette, Servadac's
old
science-master at the Lycee Charle-magne.
After completing his year of elementary studies, Hector Servadac
had
entered the school at Saint Cyr, and from that time he and his
former
tutor had never met, so that naturally they would well-nigh pass
from
each other's recollection. One thing, however, on the other
hand,
might conduce to a mutual and permanent impression on their
memories;
during the year at the Lycee, young Servadac, never of a very
studious
turn of mind, had contrived, as the ringleader of a set of like
caliber
as himself, to lead the poor professor a life of perpetual
torment.
On the discovery of each delinquency he would fume and rage in a
manner
that was a source of unbounded delight to his audience.
Two years after Servadac left the Lycee, Professor Rosette had
thrown up
all educational employment in order that he might devote
himself entirely to
the study of astronomy. He endeavored to obtain
a post at the
Observatory, but his ungenial character was so well
known in scientific
circles that he failed in his application;
however, having some small private
means, he determined on his own
account to carry on his researches without
any official salary.
He had really considerable genius for the science that
he had adopted;
besides discovering three of the latest of the telescopic
planets,
he had worked out the elements of the three hundred and
twenty-fifth
comet in the catalogue; but his chief delight was to
criticize
the publications of other astronomers, and he was never
better
pleased than when he detected a flaw in their reckonings.
When Ben Zoof and Negrete had extricated their patient from
the envelope
of furs in which he had been wrapped by Servadac
and the lieutenant, they
found themselves face to face with
a shrivelled little man, about five feet
two inches high,
with a round bald head, smooth and shiny as an ostrich's
egg,
no beard unless the unshorn growth of a week could be so
described,
and a long hooked nose that supported a huge pair of
spectacles
such as with many near-sighted people seems to have become a
part
of their individuality. His nervous system was
remarkably
developed, and his body might not inaptly be compared to one
of
the Rhumkorff's bobbins of which the thread, several hundred
yards in length,
is permeated throughout by electric fluid.
But whatever he was, his life, if
possible, must be preserved.
When he had been partially divested of his
clothing,
his heart was found to be still beating, though very
feebly.
Asserting that while there was life there was hope, Ben
Zoof
recommenced his friction with more vigor than ever.
When the rubbing had been continued without a moment's intermission
for
the best part of half an hour, the astronomer heaved a
faint sigh, which ere
long was followed by another and another.
He half opened his eyes, closed
them again, then opened them completely,
but without exhibiting any
consciousness whatever of his situation.
A few words seemed to escape his
lips, but they were quite unintelligible.
Presently he raised his right hand
to his forehead as though instinctively
feeling for something that was
missing; then, all of a sudden,
his features became contracted, his face
flushed with apparent irritation,
and he exclaimed fretfully, "My
spectacles!--where are my spectacles?"
In order to facilitate his operations, Ben Zoof had removed the
spectacles
in spite of the tenacity with which they seemed to adhere to the
temples of
his patient; but he now rapidly brought them back and readjusted
them as best
he could to what seemed to be their natural position on the
aquiline nose.
The professor heaved a long sigh of relief, and once more
closed his eyes.
Before long the astronomer roused himself a little more, and
glanced
inquiringly about him, but soon relapsed into his comatose
condition.
When next he opened his eyes, Captain Servadac happened to be
bending
down closely over him, examining his features with curious
scrutiny.
The old man darted an angry look at him through the
spectacles,
and said sharply, "Servadac, five hundred lines to-morrow!"
It was an echo of days of old. The words were few, but they were
enough
to recall the identity which Servadac was trying to make out.
"Is it possible?" he exclaimed. "Here is my old tutor, Mr.
Rosette,
in very flesh and blood."
"Can't say much for the flesh," muttered Ben Zoof.
The old man had again fallen back into a torpid slumber.
Ben Zoof
continued, "His sleep is getting more composed.
Let him alone; he will come
round yet. Haven't I heard of men
more dried up than he is, being
brought all the way from Egypt
in cases covered with pictures?"
"You idiot!--those were mummies; they had been dead for ages."
Ben Zoof did not answer a word. He went on preparing a warm
bed,
into which he managed to remove his patient, who soon fell into a
calm
and natural sleep.
Too impatient to await the awakening of the astronomer and to hear
what
representations he had to make, Servadac, the count, and the
lieutenant,
constituting themselves what might be designated "the Academy of
Sciences"
of the colony, spent the whole of the remainder of the day in
starting
and discussing the wildest conjectures about their situation.
The
hypothesis, to which they had now accustomed themselves for so long,
that a
new asteroid had been formed by a fracture of the earth's surface,
seemed to
fall to the ground when they found that Professor Palmyrin Rosette
had
associated the name of Gallia, not with their present home,
but with what he
called "my comet"; and that theory being abandoned,
they were driven to make
the most improbable speculations to replace it.
Alluding to Rosette, Servadac took care to inform his companions
that,
although the professor was always eccentric, and at times very
irascible,
yet he was really exceedingly good-hearted; his bark was worse
than his bite;
and if suffered to take their course without observation, his
outbreaks
of ill-temper seldom lasted long.
"We will certainly do our best to get on with him," said the count.
"He is
no doubt the author of the papers, and we must hope that he will
be able to
give us some valuable information."
"Beyond a question the documents have originated with him,"
assented the
lieutenant. "Gallia was the word written at the top
of every one of
them, and Gallia was the first word uttered
by him in our hearing."
The astronomer slept on. Meanwhile, the three together had
no
hesitation in examining his papers, and scrutinizing the figures on
his
extemporized blackboard. The handwriting corresponded with that
of
the papers already received; the blackboard was covered with
algebraical
symbols traced in chalk, which they were careful not to
obliterate;
and the papers, which consisted for the most part of detached
scraps,
presented a perfect wilderness of geometrical figures, conic
sections
of every variety being repeated in countless profusion.
Lieutenant Procope pointed out that these curves evidently had reference
to
the orbits of comets, which are variously parabolic, hyperbolic, or
elliptic.
If either of the first two, the comet, after once appearing within
the range
of terrestrial vision, would vanish forever in the outlying regions
of space;
if the last, it would be sure, sooner or later, after some periodic
interval,
to return.
From the _prima facie_ appearance of his papers, then, it seemed
probable
that the astronomer, during his sojourn at Formentera, had been
devoting
himself to the study of cometary orbits; and as calculations of this
kind
are ordinarily based upon the assumption that the orbit is a
parabola,
it was not unlikely that he had been endeavoring to trace the
path
of some particular comet.
"I wonder whether these calculations were made before or after the 1st
of
January; it makes all the difference," said Lieutenant Procope.
"We must bide our time and hear," replied the count.
Servadac paced restlessly up and down. "I would give a month of my
life,"
he cried, impetuously, "for every hour that the old fellow goes
sleeping on."
"You might be making a bad bargain," said Procope, smiling.
"Perhaps after
all the comet has had nothing to do with the convulsion
that we have
experienced."
"Nonsense!" exclaimed the captain; "I know better than that, and so do
you.
Is it not as clear as daylight that the earth and this comet have
been
in collision, and the result has been that our little world has been
split
off and sent flying far into space?"
Count Timascheff and the lieutenant looked at each other in silence.
"I do
not deny your theory," said Procope after a while.
"If it be correct, I
suppose we must conclude that the enormous disc
we observed on the night of
the catastrophe was the comet itself;
and the velocity with which it was
traveling must have been
so great that it was hardly arrested at all by the
attraction
of the earth."
"Plausible enough," answered Count Timascheff; "and it is to this
comet
that our scientific friend here has given the name of Gallia."
It still remained a puzzle to them all why the astronomer should
apparently
be interested in the comet so much more than in the new little
world
in which their strange lot was cast.
"Can you explain this?" asked the count.
"There is no accounting for the freaks of philosophers, you know,"
said
Servadac; "and have I not told you that this philosopher
in particular is one
of the most eccentric beings in creation?"
"Besides," added the lieutenant, "it is exceedingly likely
that his
observations had been going on for some considerable
period before the
convulsion happened."
Thus, the general conclusion arrived at by the Gallian Academy
of Science
was this: That on the night of the 31st of December,
a comet, crossing
the ecliptic, had come into collision with
the earth, and that the violence
of the shock had separated
a huge fragment from the globe, which fragment
from that date
had been traversing the remote inter-planetary
regions.
Palmyrin Rosette would doubtless confirm their solution
of the
phenomenon.
CHAPTER II
A REVELATION
To the general population of the colony the arrival of the stranger
was
a matter of small interest. The Spaniards were naturally too
indolent to be
affected in any way by an incident that concerned themselves
so remotely;
while the Russians felt themselves simply reliant on their
master, and as long
as they were with him were careless as to where or how
they spent their days.
Everything went on with them in an accustomed routine;
and they lay down
night after night, and awoke to their avocations morning
after morning,
just as if nothing extraordinary had occurred.
All night long Ben Zoof would not leave the professor's bedside.
He had
constituted himself sick nurse, and considered his reputation
at stake if he
failed to set his patient on his feet again.
He watched every movement,
listened to every breath, and never failed
to administer the strongest
cordials upon the slightest pretext.
Even in his sleep Rosette's irritable
nature revealed itself.
Ever and again, sometimes in a tone of uneasiness,
and sometimes
with the expression of positive anger, the name of
Gallia
escaped his lips, as though he were dreaming that his claim
to the
discovery of the comet was being contested or denied;
but although his
attendant was on the alert to gather all he could,
he was able to catch
nothing in the incoherent sentences
that served to throw any real light upon
the problem that they
were all eager to solve.
When the sun reappeared on the western horizon the professor
was still
sound asleep; and Ben Zoof, who was especially
anxious that the repose which
promised to be so beneficial
should not be disturbed, felt considerable
annoyance at hearing
a loud knocking, evidently of some blunt heavy
instrument against
a door that had been placed at the entrance of the
gallery,
more for the purpose of retaining internal warmth than for
guarding
against intrusion from without.
"Confound it!" said Ben Zoof. "I must put a stop to this;"
and he
made his way towards the door.
"Who's there?" he cried, in no very amiable tone.
"I." replied the quavering voice.
"Who are you?"
"Isaac Hakkabut. Let me in; do, please, let me in."
"Oh, it is you, old Ashtaroth, is it? What do you want?
Can't you
get anybody to buy your stuffs?"
"Nobody will pay me a proper price."
"Well, old Shimei, you won't find a customer here.
You had better be
off."
"No; but do, please--do, please, let me in," supplicated the Jew. "I
want
to speak to his Excellency, the governor."
"The governor is in bed, and asleep."
"I can wait until he awakes."
"Then wait where you are."
And with this inhospitable rejoinder the orderly was about to
return to
his place at the side of his patient, when Servadac,
who had been roused by
the sound of voices, called out,
"What's the matter, Ben Zoof?"
"Oh, nothing, sir; only that hound of a Hakkabut says he wants
to speak to
you."
"Let him in, then."
Ben Zoof hesitated.
"Let him in, I say," repeated the captain, peremptorily.
However reluctantly, Ben Zoof obeyed. The door was unfastened,
and
Isaac Hakkabut, enveloped in an old overcoat, shuffled into the gallery.
In a
few moments Servadac approached, and the Jew began to overwhelm
him with the
most obsequious epithets. Without vouchsafing any reply,
the captain
beckoned to the old man to follow him, and leading
the way to the central
hall, stopped, and turning so as to look
him steadily in the face, said, "Now
is your opportunity.
Tell me what you want."
"Oh, my lord, my lord," whined Isaac, "you must have some news
to tell
me."
"News? What do you mean?"
"From my little tartan yonder, I saw the yawl go out from the rock
here on
a journey, and I saw it come back, and it brought a stranger;
and I
thought--I thought--I thought--"
"Well, you thought--what did you think?"
"Why, that perhaps the stranger had come from the northern shores
of the
Mediterranean, and that I might ask him--"
He paused again, and gave a glance at the captain.
"Ask him what? Speak out, man?"
"Ask him if he brings any tidings of Europe," Hakkabut blurted
out at
last.
Servadac shrugged his shoulders in contempt and turned away.
Here was a
man who had been resident three months in Gallia,
a living witness of all the
abnormal phenomena that had occurred,
and yet refusing to believe that his
hope of making good bargains with
European traders was at an end.
Surely nothing, thought the captain,
will convince the old rascal now; and he
moved off in disgust.
The orderly, however, who had listened with much
amusement,
was by no means disinclined for the conversation to be
continued.
"Are you satisfied, old Ezekiel?" he asked.
"Isn't it so? Am I not right? Didn't a stranger arrive here last
night?"
inquired the Jew.
"Yes, quite true."
"Where from?"
"From the Balearic Isles."
"The Balearic Isles?" echoed Isaac.
"Yes."
"Fine quarters for trade! Hardly twenty leagues from Spain! He
must
have brought news from Europe!"
"Well, old Manasseh, what if he has?"
"I should like to see him."
"Can't be."
The Jew sidled close up to Ben Zoof, and laying his hand on his arm,
said
in a low and insinuating tone, "I am poor, you know; but I would
give you a
few reals if you would let me talk to this stranger."
But as if he thought he was making too liberal an offer, he added,
"Only
it must be at once."
"He is too tired; he is worn out; he is fast asleep,"
answered Ben
Zoof.
"But I would pay you to wake him."
The captain had overheard the tenor of the conversation,
and interposed
sternly, "Hakkabut! if you make the least
attempt to disturb our visitor, I
shall have you turned outside
that door immediately."
"No offense, my lord, I hope," stammered out the Jew. "I only meant--"
"Silence!" shouted Servadac. The old man hung his head, abashed.
"I will tell you what," said Servadac after a brief interval;
"I will give
you leave to hear what this stranger has to tell
as soon as he is able to
tell us anything; at present we have
not heard a word from his lips."
The Jew looked perplexed.
"Yes," said Servadac; "when we hear his story, you shall hear it too."
"And I hope it will be to your liking, old Ezekiel!" added Ben Zoof
in a
voice of irony.
They had none of them long to wait, for within a few minutes
Rosette's
peevish voice was heard calling, "Joseph! Joseph!"
The professor did not open his eyes, and appeared to be slumbering on,
but
very shortly afterwards called out again, "Joseph! Confound the
fellow!
where is he?" It was evident that he was half dreaming
about a former
servant now far away on the ancient globe.
"Where's my blackboard,
Joseph?"
"Quite safe, sir," answered Ben Zoof, quickly.
Rosette unclosed his eyes and fixed them full upon the orderly's
face.
"Are you Joseph?" he asked.
"At your service, sir," replied Ben Zoof with imperturbable gravity.
"Then get me my coffee, and be quick about it."
Ben Zoof left to go into the kitchen, and Servadac approached the
professor
in order to assist him in rising to a sitting posture.
"Do you recognize your quondam pupil, professor?" he asked.
"Ah, yes, yes; you are Servadac," replied Rosette. "It is
twelve
years or more since I saw you; I hope you have improved."
"Quite a reformed character, sir, I assure you," said Servadac, smiling.
"Well, that's as it should be; that's right," said the astronomer
with
fussy importance. "But let me have my coffee," he added
impatiently;
"I cannot collect my thoughts without my coffee."
Fortunately, Ben Zoof appeared with a great cup, hot and strong.
After
draining it with much apparent relish, the professor got
out of bed, walked
into the common hall, round which he glanced
with a pre-occupied air, and
proceeded to seat himself in an armchair,
the most comfortable which the
cabin of the _Dobryna_ had supplied.
Then, in a voice full of satisfaction,
and that involuntarily
recalled the exclamations of delight that had wound up
the two first
of the mysterious documents that had been received, he burst
out,
"Well, gentlemen, what do you think of Gallia?"
There was no time for anyone to make a reply before Isaac Hakkabut
had
darted forward.
"By the God--"
"Who is that?" asked the startled professor; and he frowned,
and made a
gesture of repugnance.
Regardless of the efforts that were made to silence him,
the Jew
continued, "By the God of Abraham, I beseech you,
give me some tidings of
Europe!"
"Europe?" shouted the professor, springing from his seat as if
he were
electrified; "what does the man want with Europe?"
"I want to get there!" screeched the Jew; and in spite of every
exertion
to get him away, he clung most tenaciously to the professor's
chair,
and again and again implored for news of Europe.
Rosette made no immediate reply. After a moment or two's
reflection,
he turned to Servadac and asked him whether it was not the middle
of April.
"It is the twentieth," answered the captain.
"Then to-day," said the astronomer, speaking with the
greatest
deliberation--"to-day we are just three millions of leagues
away
from Europe."
The Jew was utterly crestfallen.
"You seem here," continued the professor, "to be very ignorant
of the
state of things."
"How far we are ignorant," rejoined Servadac, "I cannot tell.
But I will
tell you all that we do know, and all that we have surmised."
And as briefly
as he could, he related all that had happened
since the memorable night of
the thirty-first of December; how they
had experienced the shock; how the
_Dobryna_ had made her voyage;
how they had discovered nothing except the
fragments of the old
continent at Tunis, Sardinia, Gibraltar, and now at
Formentera;
how at intervals the three anonymous documents had been
received;
and, finally, how the settlement at Gourbi Island had been
abandoned
for their present quarters at Nina's Hive.
The astronomer had hardly patience to hear him to the end.
"And what do
you say is your surmise as to your present position?"
he asked.
"Our supposition," the captain replied, "is this. We imagine that
we
are on a considerable fragment of the terrestrial globe that has
been
detached by collision with a planet to which you appear to have
given
the name of Gallia."
"Better than that!" cried Rosette, starting to his feet with excitement.
"How? Why? What do you mean?" cried the voices of the listeners.
"You are correct to a certain degree," continued the professor.
"It is
quite true that at 47' 35.6" after two o'clock on the morning
of the first of
January there was a collision; my comet grazed the earth;
and the bits of the
earth which you have named were carried clean away."
They were all fairly bewildered.
"Where, then," cried Servadac eagerly, "where are we?"
"You are on my comet, on Gallia itself!"
And the professor gazed around him with a perfect air of triumph.
CHAPTER III
THE PROFESSOR'S EXPERIENCES
"Yes, my comet!" repeated the professor, and from time to time
he
knitted his brows, and looked around him with a defiant air,
as though he
could not get rid of the impression that someone
was laying an unwarranted
claim to its proprietorship,
or that the individuals before him were
intruders upon his
own proper domain.
But for a considerable while, Servadac, the count,
and the lieutenant
remained silent and sunk in thought.
Here then, at last, was the unriddling
of the enigma they
had been so long endeavoring to solve; both the
hypotheses
they had formed in succession had now to give way before
the
announcement of the real truth. The first supposition,
that the
rotatory axis of the earth had been subject to some
accidental modification,
and the conjecture that replaced it,
namely, that a certain portion of the
terrestrial sphere had been
splintered off and carried into space, had both
now to yield
to the representation that the earth had been grazed by
an
unknown comet, which had caught up some scattered fragments from
its
surface, and was bearing them far away into sidereal regions.
Unfolded lay
the past and the present before them; but this
only served to awaken a keener
interest about the future.
Could the professor throw any light upon that?
they longed
to inquire, but did not yet venture to ask him.
Meanwhile Rosette assumed a pompous professional air, and appeared to
be
waiting for the entire party to be ceremoniously introduced to
him.
Nothing unwilling to humor the vanity of the eccentric little
man,
Servadac proceeded to go through the expected formalities.
"Allow me to present to you my excellent friend, the Count Timascheff,"
he
said.
"You are very welcome," said Rosette, bowing to the count
with a smile of
condescension.
"Although I am not precisely a voluntary resident on your comet,
Mr.
Professor, I beg to acknowledge your courteous reception,"
gravely responded
Timascheff.
Servadac could not quite conceal his amusement at the count's irony,
but
continued, "This is Lieutenant Procope, the officer in command
of the
_Dobryna_."
The professor bowed again in frigid dignity.
"His yacht has conveyed us right round Gallia," added the captain.
"Round Gallia?" eagerly exclaimed the professor.
"Yes, entirely round it," answered Servadac, and without allowing
time for
reply, proceeded, "And this is my orderly, Ben Zoof."
"Aide-de-camp to his Excellency the Governor of Gallia,"
interposed Ben
Zoof himself, anxious to maintain his master's
honor as well as his own.
Rosette scarcely bent his head.
The rest of the population of the Hive were all presented in
succession:
the Russian sailors, the Spaniards, young Pablo, and little
Nina,
on whom the professor, evidently no lover of children, glared
fiercely
through his formidable spectacles. Isaac Hakkabut, after his
introduction,
begged to be allowed to ask one question.
"How soon may we hope to get back?" he inquired,
"Get back!" rejoined Rosette, sharply; "who talks of getting back?
We have
hardly started yet."
Seeing that the professor was inclined to get angry, Captain
Servadac
adroitly gave a new turn to the conversation by asking him
whether
he would gratify them by relating his own recent experiences.
The
astronomer seemed pleased with the proposal, and at once commenced
a verbose
and somewhat circumlocutory address, of which the following
summary presents
the main features.
The French Government, being desirous of verifying the
measurement already
made of the arc of the meridian of Paris,
appointed a scientific commission
for that purpose.
From that commission the name of Palmyrin Rosette was
omitted,
apparently for no other reason than his personal
unpopularity.
Furious at the slight, the professor resolved to set to
work
independently on his own account, and declaring that there
were
inaccuracies in the previous geodesic operations,
he determined to re-examine
the results of the last triangulation
which had united Formentera to the
Spanish coast by a triangle,
one of the sides of which measured over a
hundred miles,
the very operation which had already been so
successfully
accomplished by Arago and Biot.
Accordingly, leaving Paris for the Balearic Isles, he placed
his
observatory on the highest point of Formentera, and accompanied
as he
was only by his servant, Joseph, led the life of a recluse.
He secured the
services of a former assistant, and dispatched him
to a high peak on the
coast of Spain, where he had to superintend
a rever-berator, which, with the
aid of a glass, could be seen
from Formentera. A few books and
instruments, and two months'
victuals, was all the baggage he took with him,
except an excellent
astronomical telescope, which was, indeed, almost part
and parcel
of himself, and with which he assiduously scanned the
heavens,
in the sanguine anticipation of making some discovery which
would
immortalize his name.
The task he had undertaken demanded the utmost patience.
Night after
night, in order to fix the apex of his triangle,
he had to linger on the
watch for the assistant's signal-light,
but he did not forget that his
predecessors, Arago and Biot,
had had to wait sixty-one days for a similar
purpose.
What retarded the work was the dense fog which, it has
been
already mentioned, at that time enveloped not only that part
of
Europe, but almost the entire world.
Never failing to turn to the best advantage the few intervals
when the
mist lifted a little, the astronomer would at the same
time cast an inquiring
glance at the firmament, as he was
greatly interested in the revision of the
chart of the heavens,
in the region contiguous to the constellation
Gemini.
To the naked eye this constellation consists of only six stars, but
through
a telescope ten inches in diameter, as many as six thousand are
visible.
Rosette, however, did not possess a reflector of this
magnitude,
and was obliged to content himself with the good but comparatively
small
instrument he had.
On one of these occasions, whilst carefully gauging the recesses
of
Gemini, he espied a bright speck which was unregistered in the chart,
and
which at first he took for a small star that had escaped being
entered in the
catalogue. But the observation of a few separate nights
soon made it
manifest that the star was rapidly changing its position
with regard to the
adjacent stars, and the astronomer's heart began
to leap at the thought that
the renown of the discovery of a new planet
would be associated with his
name.
Redoubling his attention, he soon satisfied himself that what
he saw was
not a planet; the rapidity of its displacement
rather forced him to the
conjecture that it must be a comet,
and this opinion was soon strengthened by
the appearance of a coma,
and subsequently confirmed, as the body approached
the sun,
by the development of a tail.
A comet! The discovery was fatal to all further progress
in the
triangulation. However conscientiously the assistant
on the Spanish
coast might look to the kindling of the beacon,
Rosette had no glances to
spare for that direction;
he had no eyes except for the one object of his
notice,
no thoughts apart from that one quarter of the firmament.
A comet! No time must be lost in calculating its elements.
Now, in order to calculate the elements of a comet, it is always
deemed
the safest mode of procedure to assume the orbit to be
a parabola.
Ordinarily, comets are conspicuous at their perihelia,
as being their
shortest distances from the sun, which is the focus
of their orbit, and
inasmuch as a parabola is but an ellipse with its
axis indefinitely produced,
for some short portion of its pathway
the orbit may be indifferently
considered either one or the other;
but in this particular case the professor
was right in adopting
the supposition of its being parabolic.
Just as in a circle, it is necessary to know three points to determine
the
circumference; so in ascertaining the elements of a comet,
three different
positions must be observed before what astronomers
call its "ephemeris" can
be established.
But Professor Rosette did not content himself with three positions;
taking
advantage of every rift in the fog he made ten, twenty,
thirty observations
both in right ascension and in declination,
and succeeded in working out with
the most minute accuracy the five
elements of the comet which was evidently
advancing with astounding
rapidity towards the earth.
These elements were:
l. The inclination of the plane of the cometary orbit to the
plane
of the ecliptic, an angle which is generally considerable,
but in
this case the planes were proved to coincide.
2. The position of the ascending node, or the point where the
comet
crossed the terrestrial orbit.
These two elements being obtained, the position in space of the
comet's
orbit was determined.
3. The direction of the axis major of the orbit, which was found
by
calculating the longitude of the comet's perihelion.
4. The perihelion distance from the sun, which settled the precise
form
of the parabola.
5. The motion of the comet, as being retrograde, or, unlike the
planets,
from east to west.
Rosette thus found himself able to calculate the date at which the
comet
would reach its perihelion, and, overjoyed at his discovery,
without
thinking of calling it Palmyra or Rosette,
after his own name, he resolved
that it should be known as Gallia.
His next business was to draw up a formal report.
Not only did he at once
recognize that a collision with the earth
was possible, but he soon foresaw
that it was inevitable,
and that it must happen on the night of the 31st of
December;
moreover, as the bodies were moving in opposite directions,
the
shock could hardly fail to be violent.
To say that he was elated at the prospect was far below the truth;
his
delight amounted almost to delirium. Anyone else would have
hurried
from the solitude of Formentera in sheer fright; but, without
communicating
a word of his startling discovery, he remained resolutely at
his post.
From occasional newspapers which he had received, he had learnt
that fogs,
dense as ever, continued to envelop both hemispheres, so that he
was
assured that the existence of the comet was utterly unknown
elsewhere;
and the ignorance of the world as to the peril that threatened it
averted
the panic that would have followed the publication of the facts, and
left
the philosopher of Formentera in sole possession of the great
secret.
He clung to his post with the greater persistency, because his
calculations
had led him to the conclusion that the comet would strike the
earth somewhere
to the south of Algeria, and as it had a solid nucleus, he
felt sure that,
as he expressed it, the effect would be "unique," and he was
anxious to be
in the vicinity.
The shock came, and with it the results already recorded.
Palmyrin Rosette
was suddenly separated from his servant Joseph,
and when, after a long period
of unconsciousness, he came to himself,
he found that he was the solitary
occupant of the only fragment
that survived of the Balearic Archipelago.
Such was the substance of the narrative which the professor gave
with
sundry repetitions and digressions; while he was giving it,
he frequently
paused and frowned as if irritated in a way that seemed
by no means justified
by the patient and good-humored demeanor
of his audience.
"But now, gentlemen," added the professor, "I must tell you something
more.
Important changes have resulted from the collision; the cardinal
points
have been displaced; gravity has been diminished: not that I
ever
supposed for a minute, as you did, that I was still upon the
earth.
No! the earth, attended by her moon, continued to rotate along
her
proper orbit. But we, gentlemen, have nothing to complain of;
our
destiny might have been far worse; we might all have been crushed
to death,
or the comet might have remained in adhesion to the earth;
and in neither of
these cases should we have had the satisfaction
of making this marvelous
excursion through untraversed solar regions.
No, gentlemen, I repeat it, we
have nothing to regret."
And as the professor spoke, he seemed to kindle with the emotion of
such
supreme contentment that no one had the heart to gainsay his
assertion.
Ben Zoof alone ventured an unlucky remark to the effect that if
the comet
had happened to strike against Montmartre, instead of a bit of
Africa,
it would have met with some resistance.
"Pshaw!" said Rosette, disdainfully. "A mole-hill like
Montmartre
would have been ground to powder in a moment."
"Mole-hill!" exclaimed Ben Zoof, stung to the quick.
"I can tell you it
would have caught up your bit of a comet
and worn it like a feather in a
cap."
The professor looked angry, and Servadac having imposed silence
upon his
orderly, explained the worthy soldier's sensitiveness
on all that concerned
Montmartre. Always obedient to his master,
Ben Zoof held his tongue;
but he felt that he could never forgive
the slight that had been cast upon
his beloved home.
It was now all-important to learn whether the astronomer had been able
to
continue his observations, and whether he had learned sufficient
of Gallia's
path through space to make him competent to determine,
at least
approximately, the period of its revolution round the sun.
With as much tact
and caution as he could, Lieutenant Procope endeavored
to intimate the
general desire for some information on this point.
"Before the shock, sir," answered the professor, "I had
conclusively
demonstrated the path of the comet; but, in consequence of
the
modifications which that shock has entailed upon my comet's orbit,
I
have been compelled entirely to recommence my calculations."
The lieutenant looked disappointed.
"Although the orbit of the earth was unaltered," continued the
professor,
"the result of the collision was the projection of the comet
into
a new orbit altogether."
"And may I ask," said Procope, deferentially, "whether you have got
the
elements of the fresh orbit?"
"Yes."
"Then perhaps you know--"
" I know this, sir, that at 47 minutes 35.6 seconds after two
o'clock on
the morning of the 1st of January last, Gallia,
in passing its ascending
node, came in contact with the earth;
that on the 10th of January it crossed
the orbit of Venus;
that it reached its perihelion on the 15th; that it
re-crossed
the orbit of Venus; that on the 1st of February it passed
its
descending node; on the 13th crossed the orbit of Mars;
entered the zone of
the telescopic planets on the 10th of March,
and, attracting Nerina, carried
it off as a satellite."
Servadac interposed:
"We are already acquainted with well-nigh all these extraordinary
facts;
many of them, moreover, we have learned from documents which we
have
picked up, and which, although unsigned, we cannot entertain a
doubt
have originated with you."
Professor Rosette drew himself up proudly and said:
"Of course, they
originated with me. I sent them off by hundreds.
From whom else could
they come?"
"From no one but yourself, certainly," rejoined the count,
with grave
politeness.
Hitherto the conversation had thrown no light upon the future movements
of
Gallia, and Rosette was disposed apparently to evade, or at least
to
postpone, the subject. When, therefore, Lieutenant Procope was about
to
press his inquiries in a more categorical form, Servadac, thinking
it
advisable not prematurely to press the little _savant_ too
far,
interrupted him by asking the professor how he accounted for the
earth
having suffered so little from such a formidable concussion.
"I account for it in this way," answered Rosette: "the earth
was
traveling at the rate of 28,000 leagues an hour, and Gallia
at the rate of
57,000 leagues an hour, therefore the result
was the same as though a train
rushing along at a speed of about
86,000 leagues an hour had suddenly
encountered some obstacle.
The nucleus of the comet, being excessively hard,
has done exactly
what a ball would do fired with that velocity close to a
pane of glass.
It has crossed the earth without cracking it."
"It is possible you may be right," said Servadac, thoughtfully.
"Right! of course I am right!" replied the snappish professor.
Soon,
however, recovering his equanimity, he continued:
"It is fortunate that the
earth was only touched obliquely;
if the comet had impinged perpendicularly,
it must have plowed
its way deep below the surface, and the disasters it
might have
caused are beyond reckoning. Perhaps," he added, with a
smile,
"even Montmartre might not have survived the calamity."
"Sir!" shouted Ben Zoof, quite unable to bear the unprovoked attack.
"Quiet, Ben Zoof!" said Servadac sternly.
Fortunately for the sake of peace, Isaac Hakkabut, who at length
was
beginning to realize something of the true condition of things,
came forward
at this moment, and in a voice trembling with eagerness,
implored the
professor to tell him when they would all be back again
upon the earth.
"Are you in a great hurry?" asked the professor coolly.
The Jew was about to speak again, when Captain Servadac interposed:
"Allow
me to say that, in somewhat more scientific terms, I was about
to ask you the
same question. Did I not understand you to say that,
as the consequence
of the collision, the character of the comet's orbit
has been changed?"
"You did, sir."
"Did you imply that the orbit has ceased to be a parabola?"
"Just so."
"Is it then an hyperbola? and are we to be carried on far and away
into
remote distance, and never, never to return?"
"I did not say an hyperbola."
"And is it not?"
"It is not."
"Then it must be an ellipse?"
"Yes."
"And does its plane coincide with the plane of the earth?"
"Yes."
"Then it must be a periodic comet?"
"It is."
Servadac involuntarily raised a ringing shout of joy that echoed
again
along the gallery.
"Yes," continued the professor, "Gallia is a periodic comet,
and allowing
for the perturbations to which it is liable from
the attraction of Mars and
Jupiter and Saturn, it will return
to the earth again in two years
precisely."
"You mean that in two years after the first shock, Gallia will meet the
earth
at the same point as they met before?" said Lieutenant Procope.
"I am afraid so," said Rosette.
"Why afraid?"
"Because we are doing exceedingly well as we are." The professor
stamped
his foot upon the ground, by way of emphasis, and added, "If I had my
will,
Gallia should never return to the earth again!"
CHAPTER IV
A REVISED CALENDAR
All previous hypotheses, then, were now forgotten in the presence
of
the one great fact that Gallia was a comet and gravitating through
remote
solar regions. Captain Servadac became aware that the huge disc
that
had been looming through the clouds after the shock was the form
of the
retreating earth, to the proximity of which the one high tide
they had
experienced was also to be attributed.
As to the fulfillment of the professor's prediction of an ultimate
return
to the terrestrial sphere, that was a point on which it must be
owned
that the captain, after the first flush of his excitement was
over,
was not without many misgivings.
The next day or two were spent in providing for the accommodation
of the
new comer. Fortunately his desires were very moderate;
he seemed to
live among the stars, and as long as he was
well provided with coffee, he
cared little for luxuries,
and paid little or no regard to the ingenuity with
which all
the internal arrangements of Nina's Hive had been
devised.
Anxious to show all proper respect to his former tutor,
Servadac
proposed to leave the most comfortable apartment of
the place at his
disposal; but the professor resolutely declined
to occupy it, saying that
what he required was a small chamber,
no matter how small, provided that it
was elevated and secluded,
which he could use as an observatory and where he
might prosecute
his studies without disturbance. A general search was
instituted,
and before long they were lucky enough to find, about a
hundred
feet above the central grotto, a small recess or reduct
hollowed,
as it were, in the mountain side, which would exactly
answer
their purpose. It contained room enough for a bed,
a table, an
arm-chair, a chest of drawers, and, what was
of still more consequence, for
the indispensable telescope.
One small stream of lava, an off-shoot of the
great torrent,
sufficed to warm the apartment enough.
In these retired quarters the astronomer took up his abode. It was on
all
hands acknowledged to be advisable to let him go on entirely in his own
way.
His meals were taken to him at stated intervals; he slept but
little;
carried on his calculations by day, his observations by night, and
very rarely
made his appearance amongst the rest of the little community.
The cold now became very intense, the thermometer registering
30 degrees
F. below zero. The mercury, however, never exhibited
any of those
fluctuations that are ever and again to be observed
in variable climates, but
continued slowly and steadily to fall,
and in all probability would continue
to do so until it reached
the normal temperature of the regions of outlying
space.
This steady sinking of the mercury was accompanied by a complete
stillness
of the atmosphere; the very air seemed to be congealed;
no particle of it
stirred; from zenith to horizon there was never a cloud;
neither were there
any of the damp mists or dry fogs which so often
extend over the polar
regions of the earth; the sky was always clear;
the sun shone by day and the
stars by night without causing any
perceptible difference in the
temperature.
These peculiar conditions rendered the cold endurable even in the open
air.
The cause of so many of the diseases that prove fatal to
Arctic
explorers resides in the cutting winds, unwholesome fogs, or
terrible
snow drifts, which, by drying up, relaxing, or otherwise
affecting
the lungs, make them incapable of fulfilling their proper
functions.
But during periods of calm weather, when the air has been
absolutely still,
many polar navigators, well-clothed and properly fed, have
been known
to withstand a temperature when the thermometer has fallen to 60
degrees
below zero. It was the experience of Parry upon Melville
Island,
of Kane beyond latitude 81 degrees north, and of Hall and the
crew
of the _Polaris_, that, however intense the cold, in the absence
of
the wind they could always brave its rigor.
Notwithstanding, then, the extreme lowness of the temperature,
the little
population found that they were able to move about
in the open air with
perfect immunity. The governor general
made it his special care to see
that his people were all well
fed and warmly clad. Food was both
wholesome and abundant,
and besides the furs brought from the _Dobryna's_
stores, fresh skins
could very easily be procured and made up into wearing
apparel.
A daily course of out-door exercise was enforced upon
everyone;
not even Pablo and Nina were exempted from the general rule;
the
two children, muffled up in furs, looking like little Esqui-meaux,
skated
along together, Pablo ever at his companion's side,
ready to give her a
helping hand whenever she was weary
with her exertions.
After his interview with the newly arrived astronomer,
Isaac Hakkabut
slunk back again to his tartan. A change had come
over his ideas; he
could no longer resist the conviction that
he was indeed millions and
millions of miles away from the earth,
where he had carried on so varied and
remunerative a traffic.
It might be imagined that this realization of his
true position
would have led him to a better mind, and that, in some
degree
at least, he would have been induced to regard the
few
fellow-creatures with whom his lot had been so strangely
cast,
otherwise than as mere instruments to be turned to his own
personal
and pecuniary advantage; but no--the desire of gain was
too
thoroughly ingrained into his hard nature ever to be eradicated,
and
secure in his knowledge that he was under the protection
of a French officer,
who, except under the most urgent necessity,
would not permit him to be
molested in retaining his property,
he determined to wait for some emergency
to arise which should
enable him to use his present situation for his own
profit.
On the one hand, the Jew took it into account that although the chances
of
returning to the earth might be remote, yet from what he had heard from
the
professor he could not believe that they were improbable; on the other,
he
knew that a considerable sum of money, in English and Russian coinage,
was in
the possession of various members of the little colony, and this,
although
valueless now, would be worth as much as ever if the proper condition
of
things should be restored; accordingly, he set his heart on getting
all the
monetary wealth of Gallia into his possession, and to do this
he must sell
his goods. But he would not sell them yet; there might come
a time when
for many articles the supply would not be equal to the demand;
that would be
the time for him; by waiting he reckoned he should be able
to transact some
lucrative business.
Such in his solitude were old Isaac's cogitations, whilst the
universal
population of Nina's Hive were congratulating themselves upon being
rid
of his odious presence.
As already stated in the message brought by the carrier pigeon,
the
distance traveled by Gallia in April was 39,000,000 leagues,
and at the end
of the month she was 110,000,000 leagues from the sun.
A diagram representing
the elliptical orbit of the planet, accompanied by an
ephemeris made out in
minute detail, had been drawn out by the professor.
The curve was divided
into twenty-four sections of unequal length,
representing respectively the
distance described in the twenty-four months
of the Gallian year, the twelve
former divisions, according to Kepler's law,
gradually diminishing in length
as they approached the point denoting
the aphelion and increasing as they
neared the perihelion.
It was on the 12th of May that Rosette exhibited this result of his
labors
to Servadac, the count, and the lieutenant, who visited his
apartment and
naturally examined the drawing with the keenest interest.
Gallia's path,
extending beyond the orbit of Jupiter, lay clearly
defined before their eyes,
the progress along the orbit and the solar
distances being inserted for each
month separately. Nothing could
look plainer, and if the professor's
calculations were correct
(a point upon which they dared not, if they would,
express the semblance
of a doubt), Gallia would accomplish her revolution in
precisely two years,
and would meet the earth, which would in the same period
of time have
completed two annual revolutions, in the very same spot as
before.
What would be the consequences of a second collision they
scarcely
ventured to think.
Without lifting his eye from the diagram, which he was still
carefully
scrutinizing, Servadac said, "I see that during
the month of May, Gallia will
only travel 30,400,000 leagues,
and that this will leave her about
140,000,000 leagues distant
from the sun."
"Just so," replied the professor.
"Then we have already passed the zone of the telescopic planets, have we
not?"
asked the count.
"Can you not use your eyes?" said the professor, testily.
"If you will
look you will see the zone marked clearly enough
upon the map."
Without noticing the interruption, Servadac continued his own
remarks,
"The comet then, I see, is to reach its aphelion on the 15th of
January,
exactly a twelvemonth after passing its perihelion."
"A twelvemonth! Not a Gallian twelvemonth?" exclaimed Rosette.
Servadac looked bewildered. Lieutenant Procope could not suppress a smile.
"What are you laughing at?" demanded the professor, turning round
upon him
angrily.
"Nothing, sir; only it amuses me to see how you want to revise
the
terrestrial calendar."
"I want to be logical, that's all."
"By all manner of means, my dear professor, let us be logical."
"Well, then, listen to me," resumed the professor, stiffly.
"I presume you
are taking it for granted that the Gallian year--
by which I mean the time in
which Gallia makes one revolution
round the sun--is equal in length to two
terrestrial years."
They signified their assent.
"And that year, like every other year, ought to be divided
into twelve
months."
"Yes, certainly, if you wish it," said the captain, acquiescing.
"If I wish it!" exclaimed Rosette. "Nothing of the sort!
Of course a
year must have twelve months!"
"Of course," said the captain.
"And how many days will make a month?" asked the professor.
"I suppose sixty or sixty-two, as the case may be.
The days now are only
half as long as they used to be,"
answered the captain.
"Servadac, don't be thoughtless!" cried Rosette, with all the
petulant
impatience of the old pedagogue. "If the days are only half as
long
as they were, sixty of them cannot make up a twelfth part of Gallia's
year--
cannot be a month."
"I suppose not," replied the confused captain.
"Do you not see, then," continued the astronomer, "that if
a Gallian month
is twice as long as a terrestrial month,
and a Gallian day is only half as
long as a terrestrial day,
there must be a hundred and twenty days in every
month?"
"No doubt you are right, professor," said Count Timascheff;
"but do you
not think that the use of a new calendar such as this
would practically be
very troublesome?"
"Not at all! not at all! I do not intend to use any other,"
was the
professor's bluff reply.
After pondering for a few moments, the captain spoke again.
"According,
then, to this new calendar, it isn't the middle
of May at all; it must now be
some time in March."
"Yes," said the professor, "to-day is the 26th
of March. It is the
266th day of the Gallian year.
It corresponds with the 133d day of the
terrestrial year.
You are quite correct, it is the 26th of March."
"Strange!" muttered Servadac.
"And a month, a terrestrial month, thirty old days, sixty new days
hence,
it will be the 86th of March."
"Ha, ha!" roared the captain; "this is logic with a vengeance!"
The old professor had an undefined consciousness that his
former pupil was
laughing at him; and as it was growing late,
he made an excuse that he had no
more leisure. The visitors
accordingly quitted the observatory.
It must be owned that the revised calendar was left to the
professor's
sole use, and the colony was fairly puzzled whenever he referred
to such
unheard-of dates as the 47th of April or the 118th of May.
According to the old calendar, June had now arrived;
[illustration omitted] [page intentionally blank] and by the
professor's
tables Gallia during the month would have advanced
27,500,000 leagues farther
along its orbit, and would have attained
a distance of 155,000,000 leagues
from the sun. The thermometer
continued to fall; the atmosphere
remained clear as heretofore.
The population performed their daily avocations
with systematic routine;
and almost the only thing that broke the monotony of
existence was
an occasional visit from the blustering, nervous, little
professor,
when some sudden fancy induced him to throw aside his astronomical
studies
for a time, and pay a visit to the common hall. His arrival
there was
generally hailed as the precursor of a little season of
excitement.
Somehow or other the conversation would eventually work its way
round
to the topic of a future collision between the comet and the
earth;
and in the same degree as this was a matter of sanguine
anticipation
to Captain Servadac and his friends, it was a matter of
aversion
to the astronomical enthusiast, who had no desire to quit his
present
quarters in a sphere which, being of his own discovery, he
could
hardly have cared for more if it had been of his own creation.
The
interview would often terminate in a scene of considerable animation.
On the 27th of June (old calendar) the professor burst like a
cannon-ball
into the central hall, where they were all assembled,
and without a word of
salutation or of preface, accosted the lieutenant
in the way in which in
earlier days he had been accustomed to speak
to an idle school-boy, "Now,
lieutenant! no evasions! no shufflings!
Tell me, have you or have you not
circumnavigated Gallia?"
The lieutenant drew himself up stiffly. "Evasions! shufflings!
I am
not accustomed, sir--" he began in a tone evidencing no
little resentment;
but catching a hint from the count he subdued
his voice, and simply said, "We
have."
"And may I ask," continued the professor, quite unaware of his
previous
discourtesy, "whether, when you made your voyage,
you took any account of
distances?"
"As approximately as I could," replied the lieutenant;
"I did what I could
by log and compass. I was unable to take
the altitude of sun or
star."
"At what result did you arrive? What is the measurement of our equator?"
"I estimate the total circumference of the equator to be about 1,400 miles."
"Ah!" said the professor, more than half speaking to himself,
"a
circumference of 1,400 miles would give a diameter of about 450 miles.
That
would be approximately about one-sixteenth of the diameter
of the earth."
Raising his voice, he continued, "Gentlemen, in order to complete
my
account of my comet Gallia, I require to know its area, its mass,
its volume,
its density, its specific gravity."
"Since we know the diameter," remarked the lieutenant, "there can
be no
difficulty in finding its surface and its volume."
"And did I say there was any difficulty?" asked the professor,
fiercely.
"I have been able to reckon that ever since I was born."
"Cock-a-doodle-doo!" cried Ben Zoof, delighted at any opportunity
of
paying off his old grudge.
The professor looked at him, but did not vouchsafe a word.
Addressing the
captain, he said, "Now, Servadac, take your paper
and a pen, and find me the
surface of Gallia."
With more submission than when he was a school-boy, the captain
sat down
and endeavored to recall the proper formula.
"The surface of a sphere? Multiply circumference by diameter."
"Right!" cried Rosette; "but it ought to be done by this time."
"Circumference, 1,400; diameter, 450; area of surface, 630,000,"
read the
captain.
"True," replied Rosette, "630,000 square miles; just 292 times less
than
that of the earth."
"Pretty little comet! nice little comet!" muttered Ben Zoof.
The astronomer bit his lip, snorted, and cast at him a withering look,
but
did not take any further notice.
"Now, Captain Servadac," said the professor, "take your pen again,
and
find me the volume of Gallia."
The captain hesitated.
"Quick, quick!" cried the professor, impatiently; "surely you
have not
forgotten how to find the volume of a sphere!"
"A moment's breathing time, please."
"Breathing time, indeed! A mathematician should not want breathing
time!
Come, multiply the surface by the third of the radius. Don't you
recollect?"
Captain Servadac applied himself to his task while the by-standers
waited,
with some difficulty suppressing their inclination to laugh.
There
was a short silence, at the end of which Servadac announced
that the volume
of the comet was 47,880,000 cubic miles.
"Just about 5,000 times less than the earth," observed the lieutenant.
"Nice little comet! pretty little comet!" said Ben Zoof.
The professor scowled at him, and was manifestly annoyed at having
the
insignificant dimensions of his comet pointed out in so disparaging a
manner.
Lieutenant Procope further remarked that from the earth he supposed
it
to be about as conspicuous as a star of the seventh magnitude, and
would
require a good telescope to see it.
"Ha, ha!" laughed the orderly, aloud; "charming little comet! so
pretty;
and so modest!"
"You rascal!" roared the professor, and clenched his hand
in passion, as
if about to strike him. Ben Zoof laughed the more,
and was on the point
of repeating his satirical comments,
when a stern order from the captain made
him hold his tongue.
The truth was that the professor was just as sensitive
about his
comet as the orderly was about Montmartre, and if the
contention
between the two had been allowed to go on unchecked, it
is
impossible to say what serious quarrel might not have arisen.
When Professor Rosette's equanimity had been restored,
he said, "Thus,
then, gentlemen, the diameter, the surface,
the volume of my comet are
settled; but there is more to be done.
I shall not be satisfied until, by
actual measurement,
I have determined its mass, its density, and the force of
gravity
at its surface."
"A laborious problem," remarked Count Timascheff.
"Laborious or not, it has to be accomplished. I am resolved
to find
out what my comet weighs."
"Would it not be of some assistance, if we knew of what substance
it is
composed?" asked the lieutenant.
"That is of no moment at all," replied the professor;
"the problem is
independent of it."
"Then we await your orders," was the captain's reply.
"You must understand, however," said Rosette, "that there are
various
preliminary calculations to be made; you will have to wait
till
they are finished."
"As long as you please," said the count.
"No hurry at all," observed the captain, who was not in the
least
impatient to continue his mathematical exercises.
"Then, gentlemen," said the astronomer, "with your leave we
will for this
purpose make an appointment a few weeks hence.
What do you say to the 62d of
April?"
Without noticing the general smile which the novel date provoked,
the
astronomer left the hall, and retired to his observatory.
CHAPTER V
WANTED: A STEELYARD
Under the still diminishing influence of the sun's attraction,
but
without let or hindrance, Gallia continued its interplanetary
course,
accompanied by Nerina, its captured satellite, which performed
its
fortnightly revolutions with unvarying regularity.
Meanwhile, the question beyond all others important was ever
recurring to
the minds of Servadac and his two companions:
were the astronomer's
calculations correct, and was there a sound
foundation for his prediction
that the comet would again touch
the earth? But whatever might be their
doubts or anxieties,
they were fain to keep all their misgivings to
themselves;
the professor was of a temper far too cross-grained for
them
to venture to ask him to revise or re-examine the results
of his
observations.
The rest of the community by no means shared in their uneasiness.
Negrete
and his fellow-countrymen yielded to their destiny
with philosophical
indifference. Happier and better provided
for than they had ever been
in their lives, it did not give
them a passing thought, far less cause any
serious concern,
whether they were still circling round the sun, or whether
they
were being carried right away within the limits of another
system.
Utterly careless of the future, the majos, light-hearted as
ever,
carolled out their favorite songs, just as if they had never
quitted
the shores of their native land.
Happiest of all were Pablo and Nina. Racing through the galleries
of
the Hive, clambering over the rocks upon the shore, one day
skating far away
across the frozen ocean, the next fishing
in the lake that was kept liquid by
the heat of the lava-torrent,
the two children led a life of perpetual
enjoyment.
Nor was their recreation allowed to interfere with their
studies.
Captain Servadac, who in common with the count really liked them
both,
conceived that the responsibilities of a parent in some degree
had
devolved upon him, and took great care in superintending
their daily lessons,
which he succeeded in making hardly less
pleasant than their sports.
Indulged and loved by all, it was little wonder that young
Pablo had no
longing for the scorching plains of Andalusia,
or that little Nina had lost
all wish to return with her pet
goat to the barren rocks of Sardinia.
They had now a home
in which they had nothing to desire.
"Have you no father nor mother?" asked Pablo, one day.
"No," she answered.
"No more have I," said the boy, "I used to run along by the side
of the
diligences when I was in Spain."
"I used to look after goats at Madalena," said Nina;
"but it is much nicer
here--I am so happy here.
I have you for a brother, and everybody is so
kind.
I am afraid they will spoil us, Pablo," she added, smiling.
"Oh, no, Nina; you are too good to be spoiled, and when I am with you,
you
make me good too," said Pablo, gravely.
July had now arrived. During the month Gallia's advance along
its
orbit would be reduced to 22,000,000 leagues, the distance from
the sun at
the end being 172,000,000 leagues, about four and a half
times as great as
the average distance of the earth from the sun.
It was traveling now at about
the same speed as the earth,
which traverses the ecliptic at a rate of
21,000,000 leagues a month,
or 28,800 leagues an hour.
In due time the 62d April, according to the revised Gallian calendar,
dawned;
and in punctual fulfillment of the professor's appointment, a
note
was delivered to Servadac to say that he was ready, and hoped that
day
to commence operations for calculating the mass and density of his
comet,
as well as the force of gravity at its surface.
A point of far greater interest to Captain Servadac and his friends
would
have been to ascertain the nature of the substance of which
the comet was
composed, but they felt pledged to render the professor
any aid they could in
the researches upon which he had set his heart.
Without delay, therefore,
they assembled in the central hall, where they
were soon joined by Rosette,
who seemed to be in fairly good temper.
"Gentlemen," he began, "I propose to-day to endeavor
to complete our
observations of the elements of my comet.
Three matters of investigation are
before us. First, the measure
of gravity at its surface; this
attractive force we know,
by the increase of our own muscular force, must of
course
be considerably less than that at the surface of the
earth.
Secondly, its mass, that is, the quality of its matter.
And
thirdly, its density or quantity of matter in a unit
of its volume. We
will proceed, gentlemen, if you please,
to weigh Gallia."
Ben Zoof, who had just entered the hall, caught the professor's last
sentence,
and without saying a word, went out again and was absent for some
minutes.
When he returned, he said, "If you want to weigh this comet of
yours,
I suppose you want a pair of scales; but I have been to look, and
I
cannot find a pair anywhere. And what's more," he added
mischievously,
"you won't get them anywhere."
A frown came over the professor's countenance. Servadac saw it,
and
gave his orderly a sign that he should desist entirely
from his
bantering.
"I require, gentlemen," resumed Rosette, "first of all to know by how
much
the weight of a kilogramme here differs from its weight upon the
earth;
the attraction, as we have said, being less, the weight will
proportionately
be less also."
"Then an ordinary pair of scales, being under the influence
of attraction,
I suppose, would not answer your purpose,"
submitted the lieutenant.
"And the very kilogramme weight you used would have become lighter,"
put
in the count, deferentially.
"Pray, gentlemen, do not interrupt me," said the professor,
authoritatively,
as if _ex cathedra_." I need no instruction on these
points."
Procope and Timascheff demurely bowed their heads.
The professor resumed. "Upon a steelyard, or spring-balance,
dependent
upon mere tension or flexibility, the attraction will have no
influence.
If I suspend a weight equivalent to the weight of a kilogramme,
the index
will register the proper weight on the surface of Gallia.
Thus I shall
arrive at the difference I want: the difference between
the earth's
attraction and the comet's. Will you, therefore, have the
goodness
to provide me at once with a steelyard and a tested kilogramme?"
The audience looked at one another, and then at Ben Zoof,
who was
thoroughly acquainted with all their resources.
"We have neither one nor the
other," said the orderly.
The professor stamped with vexation.
"I believe old Hakkabut has a steelyard on board his tartan,"
said Ben
Zoof, presently.
"Then why didn't you say so before, you idiot?" roared the
excitable
little man.
Anxious to pacify him, Servadac assured him that every exertion
should be
made to procure the instrument, and directed Ben Zoof
to go to the Jew and
borrow it.
"No, stop a moment," he said, as Ben Zoof was moving away on his,
errand;
"perhaps I had better go with you myself; the old Jew may make a
difficulty
about lending us any of his property."
"Why should we not all go?" asked the count; "we should see what kind
of a
life the misanthrope leads on board the _Hansa_."
The proposal met with general approbation. Before they
started,
Professor Rosette requested that one of the men might be ordered to
cut
him a cubic decimeter out of the solid substance of Gallia. "My
engineer
is the man for that," said the count; "he will do it well for you if
you
will give him the precise measurement."
"What! you don't mean," exclaimed the professor, again going off
into a
passion, "that you haven't a proper measure of length?"
Ben Zoof was sent off to ransack the stores for the article in
question,
but no measure was forthcoming. "Most likely we shall find
one on
the tartan," said the orderly.
"Then let us lose no time in trying," answered the professor,
as he
hustled with hasty strides into the gallery.
The rest of the party followed, and were soon in the open
air upon the
rocks that overhung the shore. They descended
to the level of the
frozen water and made their way towards
the little creek where the _Dobryna_
and the _Hansa_ lay firmly
imprisoned in their icy bonds.
The temperature was low beyond previous experience; but well muffled
up in
fur, they all endured it without much actual suffering.
Their breath issued
in vapor, which was at once congealed into little
crystals upon their
whiskers, beards, eyebrows, and eyelashes,
until their faces, covered with
countless snow-white prickles,
were truly ludicrous. The little
professor, most comical of all,
resembled nothing so much as the cub of an
Arctic bear.
It was eight o'clock in the morning. The sun was rapidly
approaching
the zenith; but its disc, from the extreme remoteness,
was proportionately
dwarfed; its beams being all but destitute
of their proper warmth and
radiance. The volcano to its very summit
and the surrounding rocks were
still covered with the unsullied
mantle of snow that had fallen while the
atmosphere was still
to some extent charged with vapor; but on the north side
the snow
had given place to the cascade of fiery lava, which, making
its
way down the sloping rocks as far as the vaulted opening of
the
central cavern, fell thence perpendicularly into the sea.
Above the cavern,
130 feet up the mountain, was a dark hole,
above which the stream of lava
made a bifurcation in its course.
From this hole projected the case of an
astronomer's telescope;
it was the opening of Palmyrin Rosette's
observatory.
Sea and land seemed blended into one dreary whiteness,
to which the pale
blue sky offered scarcely any contrast.
The shore was indented with the marks
of many footsteps left
by the colonists either on their way to collect ice
for
drinking purposes, or as the result of their skating expeditions;
the
edges of the skates had cut out a labyrinth of curves
complicated as the
figures traced by aquatic insects upon
the surface of a pool.
Across the quarter of a mile of level ground that lay between
the mountain
and the creek, a series of footprints, frozen hard
into the snow, marked the
course taken by Isaac Hakkabut on his
last return from Nina's Hive.
On approaching the creek, Lieutenant Procope drew his
companions'
attention to the elevation of the _Dobryna's_ and _Hansa's_
waterline,
both vessels being now some fifteen feet above the level of the
sea.
"What a strange phenomenon!" exclaimed the captain.
"It makes me very uneasy," rejoined the lieutenant;
"in shallow places
like this, as the crust of ice thickens,
it forces everything upwards with
irresistible force."
"But surely this process of congelation must have a limit!"
said the
count.
"But who can say what that limit will be? Remember that we have not
yet
reached our maximum of cold," replied Procope.
"Indeed, I hope not!" exclaimed the professor; "where would
be the use of
our traveling 200,000,000 leagues from the sun,
if we are only to experience
the same temperature as we should
find at the poles of the earth?"
"Fortunately for us, however, professor," said the lieutenant,
with a
smile, "the temperature of the remotest space never descends
beyond 70
degrees below zero."
"And as long as there is no wind," added Servadac, "we may pass
comfortably
through the winter, without a single attack of catarrh."
Lieutenant Procope proceeded to impart to the count his anxiety about
the
situation of his yacht. He pointed out that by the constant
superposition
of new deposits of ice, the vessel would be elevated to a great
height,
and consequently in the event of a thaw, it must be exposed to a
calamity
similar to those which in polar seas cause destruction to so many
whalers.
There was no time now for concerting measures offhand to prevent
the
disaster, for the other members of the party had already
reached the spot
where the _Hansa_ lay bound in her icy trammels.
A flight of steps, recently
hewn by Hakkabut himself, gave access
for the present to the gangway, but it
was evident that some
different contrivance would have to be resorted to when
the tartan
should be elevated perhaps to a hundred feet.
A thin curl of blue smoke issued from the copper funnel that
projected
above the mass of snow which had accumulated upon
the deck of the
_Hansa_. The owner was sparing of his fuel,
and it was only the
non-conducting layer of ice enveloping
the tartan that rendered the internal
temperature endurable.
"Hi! old Nebuchadnezzar, where are you?" shouted Ben Zoof,
at the full
strength of his lungs.
At the sound of his voice, the cabin door opened, and the Jew's
head and
shoulders protruded onto the deck.
CHAPTER VI
MONEY AT A PREMIUM
"Who's there? I have nothing here for anyone. Go
away!"
Such was the inhospitable greeting with which Isaac
Hakkabut
received his visitors.
"Hakkabut! do you take us for thieves?" asked Servadac,
in tones of stern
displeasure.
"Oh, your Excellency, my lord, I did not know that it "was you,"
whined
the Jew, but without emerging any farther from his cabin.
"Now, old Hakkabut, come out of your shell! Come and show the
governor
proper respect, when he gives you the honor of his company," cried
Ben Zoof,
who by this time had clambered onto the deck.
After considerable hesitation, but still keeping his hold upon
the
cabin-door, the Jew made up his mind to step outside.
"What do you want?" he
inquired, timorously.
"I want a word with you," said Servadac, "but I do not want to
stand
talking out here in the cold."
Followed by the rest of the party, he proceeded to mount the steps.
The
Jew trembled from head to foot. "But I cannot let you into my cabin.
I
am a poor man; I have nothing to give you," he moaned piteously.
"Here he is!" laughed Ben Zoof, contemptuously; "he is beginning
his
chapter of lamentations over again. But standing out here will
never do.
Out of the way, old Hakkabut, I say! out of the way!" and, without
more ado,
he thrust the astonished Jew on one side and opened the door of the
cabin.
Servadac, however, declined to enter until he had taken the pains to
explain
to the owner of the tartan that he had no intention of laying violent
hands
upon his property, and that if the time should ever come that his
cargo
was in requisition for the common use, he should receive a proper
price
for his goods, the same as he would in Europe.
"Europe, indeed!" muttered the Jew maliciously between his
teeth.
"European prices will not do for me. I must have Gallian
prices--
and of my own fixing, too!"
So large a portion of the vessel had been appropriated to the cargo
that
the space reserved for the cabin was of most meager dimensions.
In one corner
of the compartment stood a small iron stove, in which
smoldered a bare
handful of coals; in another was a trestle-board
which served as a bed; two
or three stools and a rickety deal table,
together with a few cooking
utensils, completed a stock of furniture
which was worthy of its
proprietor.
On entering the cabin, Ben Zoof's first proceeding was to throw on
the
fire a liberal supply of coals, utterly regardless of the groans
of poor
Isaac, who would almost as soon have parted with his
own bones as submit to
such reckless expenditure of his fuel.
The perishing temperature of the
cabin, however, was sufficient
justification for the orderly's conduct, and
by a little skillful
manipulation he soon succeeded in getting up a tolerable
fire.
The visitors having taken what seats they could, Hakkabut closed the
door,
and, like a prisoner awaiting his sentence, stood with folded
hands,
expecting the captain to speak.
"Listen," said Servadac; "we have come to ask a favor."
Imagining that at least half his property was to be confiscated, the
Jew
began to break out into his usual formula about being a poor man and
having
nothing to spare; but Servadac, without heeding his complainings, went
on:
"We are not going to ruin you, you know."
Hakkabut looked keenly into the captain's face.
"We have only come to know whether you can lend us a steelyard."
So far from showing any symptom of relief, the old miser exclaimed,
with a
stare of astonishment, as if he had been asked for some
thousand
francs: "A steelyard?"
"Yes!" echoed the professor, impatiently; "a steelyard."
"Have you not one?" asked Servadac.
"To be sure he has!" said Ben Zoof.
Old Isaac stammered and stuttered, but at last confessed that
perhaps
there might be one amongst the stores.
"Then, surely, you will not object to lend it to us?"
said the
captain.
"Only for one day," added the professor.
The Jew stammered again, and began to object. "It is a very
delicate
instrument, your Excellency. The cold, you know,
the cold may do injury
to the spring; and perhaps you are going
to use it to weigh something very
heavy."
"Why, old Ephraim, do you suppose we are going to weigh a mountain with
it?"
said Ben Zoof.
"Better than that!" cried out the professor, triumphantly; "we are
going
to weigh Gallia with it; my comet."
"Merciful Heaven!" shrieked Isaac, feigning consternation
at the bare
suggestion.
Servadac knew well enough that the Jew was holding out only for a
good
bargain, and assured him that the steelyard was required for no
other purpose
than to weigh a kilogramme, which (considering how much
lighter everything
had become) could not possibly put the slightest
strain upon the
instrument.
The Jew still spluttered, and moaned, and hesitated.
"Well, then," said Servadac, "if you do not like to lend us your
steelyard,
do you object to sell it to us?"
Isaac fairly shrieked aloud. "God of Israel!" he ejaculated,
"sell
my steelyard? Would you deprive me of one of the most
indispensable of
my means of livelihood? How should I weigh
my merchandise without my
steelyard--my solitary steelyard,
so delicate and so correct?"
The orderly wondered how his master could refrain from strangling
the old
miser upon the spot; but Servadac, rather amused than otherwise,
determined
to try another form of persuasion. "Come, Hakkabut, I see
that you are
not disposed either to lend or to sell your steelyard.
What do you say to
letting us hire it?"
The Jew's eyes twinkled with a satisfaction that he was unable to
conceal.
"But what security would you give? The instrument is very
valuable;"
and he looked more cunning than ever.
"What is it worth? If it is worth twenty francs, I will leave
a
deposit of a hundred. Will that satisfy you?"
He shook his head doubtfully. "It is very little; indeed, it is
too
little, your Excellency. Consider, it is the only steelyard
in all this
new world of ours; it is worth more, much more.
If I take your deposit it
must be in gold--all gold.
But how much do you agree to give me for the
hire--
the hire, one day?"
"You shall have twenty francs," said Servadac.
"Oh, it is dirt cheap; but never mind, for one day, you shall have
it.
Deposit in gold money a hundred francs, and twenty francs for the
hire."
The old man folded his hands in meek resignation.
"The fellow knows how to make a good bargain," said Servadac, as
Isaac,
after casting a distrustful look around, went out of the cabin.
"Detestable old wretch!" replied the count, full of disgust.
Hardly a minute elapsed before the Jew was back again, carrying
his
precious steelyard with ostentatious care. It was of an ordinary
kind.
A spring balance, fitted with a hook, held the article to be
weighed;
a pointer, revolving on a disc, indicated the weight of the
article.
Professor Rosette was manifestly right in asserting that such a
machine
would register results quite independently of any change in the
force
of attraction. On the earth it would have registered a
kilogramme
as a kilogramme; here it recorded a different value
altogether,
as the result of the altered force of gravity.
Gold coinage to the worth of one hundred and twenty francs was handed
over
to the Jew, who clutched at the money with unmistakable eagerness.
The
steelyard was committed to the keeping of Ben Zoof, and the visitors
prepared
to quit the _Hansa_.
All at once it occurred to the professor that the steelyard
would be
absolutely useless to him, unless he had the means
for ascertaining the
precise measurement of the unit of the soil
of Gallia which he proposed to
weigh. "Something more you must
lend me," he said, addressing the
Jew. "I must have a measure,
and I must have a kilogramme."
"I have neither of them," answered Isaac. "I have neither.
I am
sorry; I am very sorry." And this time the old Jew spoke the truth.
He
would have been really glad to do another stroke or two of business
upon
terms as advantageous as the transaction he had just concluded.
Palmyrin Rosette scratched his head in perplexity, glaring round upon
his
companions as if they were personally responsible for his annoyance.
He
muttered something about finding a way out of his difficulty,
and hastily
mounted the cabin-ladder. The rest followed, but they had hardly
reached the
deck when the chink of money was heard in the room below.
Hakkabut was
locking away the gold in one of the drawers.
Back again, down the ladder, scrambled the little professor,
and before
the Jew was aware of his presence he had seized him
by the tail of his
slouchy overcoat. "Some of your money!
I must have money!" he said.
"Money!" gasped Hakkabut; "I have no money." He was pale with
fright,
and hardly knew what he was saying.
"Falsehood!" roared Rosette. "Do you think I cannot see?"
And
peering down into the drawer which the Jew was vainly
trying to close, he
cried, "Heaps of money! French money!
Five-franc pieces! the very thing
I want! I must have them!"
The captain and his friends, who had returned to the cabin looked
on with
mingled amusement and bewilderment.
"They are mine!" shrieked Hakkabut.
"I will have them!" shouted the professor.
"You shall kill me first!" bellowed the Jew.
"No, but I must!" persisted the professor again.
It was manifestly time for Servadac to interfere. "My dear
professor,"
he said, smiling, "allow me to settle this little matter for
you."
"Ah! your Excellency," moaned the agitated Jew, "protect me!
I am but a
poor man--"
"None of that, Hakkabut. Hold your tongue." And, turning to
Rosette,
the captain said, "If, sir, I understand right, you require some
silver
five-franc pieces for your operation?"
"Forty," said Rosette, surlily.
"Two hundred francs!" whined Hakkabut.
"Silence!" cried the captain.
"I must have more than that," the professor continued.
"I want ten
two-franc pieces, and twenty half-francs."
"Let me see," said Servadac, "how much is that in all?
Two hundred and
thirty francs, is it not?"
"I dare say it is," answered the professor.
"Count, may I ask you," continued Servadac, "to be security to the Jew
for
this loan to the professor?"
"Loan!" cried the Jew, "do you mean only a loan?"
"Silence!" again shouted the captain.
Count Timascheff, expressing his regret that his purse contained
only
paper money, begged to place it at Captain Servadac's disposal.
"No paper, no paper!" exclaimed Isaac. "Paper has no currency in Gallia."
"About as much as silver," coolly retorted the count.
"I am a poor man," began the Jew.
"Now, Hakkabut, stop these miserable lamentations of yours, once for
all.
Hand us over two hundred and thirty francs in silver money, or we will
proceed
to help ourselves."
Isaac began to yell with all his might: "Thieves! thieves!"
In a moment Ben Zoof's hand was clasped tightly over his mouth.
"Stop that
howling, Belshazzar!"
"Let him alone, Ben Zoof. He will soon come to his senses,"
said
Servadac, quietly.
When the old Jew had again recovered himself, the captain addressed
him.
"Now, tell us, what interest do you expect?"
Nothing could overcome the Jew's anxiety to make another good bargain.
He
began: "Money is scarce, very scarce, you know--"
"No more of this!" shouted Servadac. "What interest, I say,
what
interest do you ask?"
Faltering and undecided still, the Jew went on. "Very scarce, you
know.
Ten francs a day, I think, would not be unreasonable,
considering--"
The count had no patience to allow him to finish what he was about
to
say. He flung down notes to the value of several rubles.
With a
greediness that could not be concealed, Hakkabut grasped them all.
Paper,
indeed, they were; but the cunning Israelite knew that they
would in any case
be security far beyond the value of his cash.
He was making some eighteen
hundred per cent. interest, and accordingly
chuckled within himself at
his unexpected stroke of business.
The professor pocketed his French coins with a satisfaction far
more
demonstrative. "Gentlemen," he said, "with these franc
pieces I obtain
the means of determining accurately both a meter
and a kilogramme."
CHAPTER VII
GALLIA WEIGHED
A quarter of an hour later, the visitors to the _Hansa_ had
reassembled
in the common hall of Nina's Hive.
"Now, gentlemen, we can proceed," said the professor.
"May I request that
this table may be cleared?"
Ben Zoof removed the various articles that were lying on the table,
and
the coins which had just been borrowed from the Jew were placed
upon it in
three piles, according to their value.
The professor commenced. "Since none of you gentlemen,
at the time
of the shock, took the precaution to save either
a meter measure or a
kilogramme weight from the earth,
and since both these articles are necessary
for the calculation
on which we are engaged, I have been obliged to devise
means
of my own to replace them."
This exordium delivered, he paused and seemed to watch its effect upon
his
audience, who, however, were too well acquainted with the professor's
temper
to make any attempt to exonerate themselves from the rebuke
of carelessness,
and submitted silently to the implied reproach.
"I have taken pains," he continued, "to satisfy myself
that these coins
are in proper condition for my purpose.
I find them unworn and unchipped;
indeed, they are almost new.
They have been hoarded instead of circulated;
accordingly, they are
fit to be utilized for my purpose of obtaining the
precise
length of a terrestrial meter."
Ben Zoof looked on in perplexity, regarding the lecturer with much
the
same curiosity as he would have watched the performances
of a traveling
mountebank at a fair in Montmartre; but Servadac
and his two friends had
already divined the professor's meaning.
They knew that French coinage is all
decimal, the franc being
the standard of which the other coins, whether gold,
silver, or copper,
are multiples or measures; they knew, too, that the
caliber or
diameter of each piece of money is rigorously determined by
law,
and that the diameters of the silver coins representing five
francs,
two francs, and fifty centimes measure thirty-seven,
twenty-seven,
and eighteen millimeters respectively; and they accordingly
guessed
that Professor Rosette had conceived the plan of placing such a
number
of these coins in juxtaposition that the length of their
united
diameters should measure exactly the thousand millimeters that
make
up the terrestrial meter.
The measurement thus obtained was by means of a pair of compasses
divided
accurately into ten equal portions, or decimeters,
each of course 3.93 inches
long. A lath was then cut of this
exact length and given to the
engineer of the _Dobryna_,
who was directed to cut out of the solid rock the
cubic decimeter
required by the professor.
The next business was to obtain the precise weight of a kilogramme.
This
was by no means a difficult matter. Not only the diameters,
but also
the weights, of the French coins are rigidly determined
by law, and as the
silver five-franc pieces always weigh exactly
twenty-five grammes, the united
weight of forty of these coins
is known to amount to one kilogramme.
"Oh!" cried Ben Zoof; "to be able to do all this I see you must
be rich as
well as learned."
With a good-natured laugh at the orderly's remark, the meeting
adjourned
for a few hours. By the appointed time the engineer had
finished his task,
and with all due care had prepared a cubic decimeter of
the material
of the comet.
"Now, gentlemen," said Professor Rosette, "we are in a position to
complete
our calculation; we can now arrive at Gallia's attraction, density,
and mass."
Everyone gave him his complete attention.
"Before I proceed," he resumed, "I must recall to your minds
Newton's
general law, 'that the attraction of two bodies is directly
proportional
to the product of their masses, and inversely proportional to
the square
of their distances.'"
"Yes," said Servadac; "we remember that."
"Well, then," continued the professor, "keep it in mind for a few
minutes
now. Look here! In this bag are forty five-franc
pieces--
altogether they weigh exactly a kilogramme; by which I mean
that
if we were on the earth, and I were to hang the bag on the hook
of
the steelyard, the indicator on the dial would register one
kilogramme.
This is clear enough, I suppose?"
As he spoke the professor designedly kept his eyes fixed
upon Ben
Zoof. He was avowedly following the example
of Arago, who was
accustomed always in lecturing to watch
the countenance of the least
intelligent of his audience,
and when he felt that he had made his meaning
clear to him,
he concluded that he must have succeeded with all the
rest.
In this case, however, it was technical ignorance, rather than
any
lack of intelligence, that justified the selection of the orderly
for
this special attention.
Satisfied with his scrutiny of Ben Zoof's face, the professor went
on.
"And now, gentlemen, we have to see what these coins weigh here upon
Gallia."
He suspended the money bag to the hook; the needle oscillated, and
stopped.
"Read it off!" he said.
The weight registered was one hundred and thirty-three grammes.
"There, gentlemen, one hundred and thirty-three grammes!
Less than
one-seventh of a kilogramme! You see, consequently,
that the force of
gravity here on Gallia is not one-seventh
of what it is upon the earth!"
"Interesting!" cried Servadac, "most interesting!
But let us go on and
compute the mass."
"No, captain, the density first," said Rosette.
"Certainly," said the lieutenant; "for, as we already know the volume,
we
can determine the mass as soon as we have ascertained the density."
The professor took up the cube of rock. "You know what this is,"
he
went on to say. "You know, gentlemen, that this block is a cube
hewn
from the substance of which everywhere, all throughout
your voyage of
circumnavigation, you found Gallia to be composed--
a substance to which your
geological attainments did not suffice
to assign a name."
"Our curiosity will be gratified," said Servadac, "if you
will enlighten
our ignorance."
But Rosette did not take the slightest notice of the interruption.
"A substance it is which no doubt constitutes the sole material
of the
comet, extending from its surface to its innermost depths.
The probability is
that it would be so; your experience confirms
that probability: you
have found no trace of any other substance.
Of this rock here is a solid
decimeter; let us get at its weight,
and we shall have the key which will
unlock the problem of
the whole weight of Gallia. We have demonstrated
that the force
of attraction here is only one-seventh of what it is upon the
earth,
and shall consequently have to multiply the apparent weight
of our
cube by seven, in order to ascertain its proper weight.
Do you understand me,
goggle-eyes?"
This was addressed to Ben Zoof, who was staring hard at him.
"No!" said
Ben Zoof.
"I thought not; it is of no use waiting for your puzzle-brains
to make it
out. I must talk to those who can understand."
The professor took the cube, and, on attaching it to the hook
of the
steelyard, found that its apparent weight was one kilogramme
and four hundred
and thirty grammes.
"Here it is, gentlemen; one kilogramme, four hundred and thirty
grammes.
Multiply that by seven; the product is, as nearly as
possible,
ten kilogrammes. What, therefore, is our conclusion?
Why, that the
density of Gallia is just about double the density of the
earth,
which we know is only five kilogrammes to a cubic decimeter.
Had it
not been for this greater density, the attraction of Gallia
would only have
been one-fifteenth instead of one-seventh of
the terrestrial attraction."
The professor could not refrain from exhibiting his gratification
that,
however inferior in volume, in density, at least, his comet had the
advantage
over the earth.
Nothing further now remained than to apply the investigations
thus
finished to the determining of the mass or weight.
This was a matter of
little labor.
"Let me see," said the captain; "what is the force of gravity
upon the
various planets?"
"You can't mean, Servadac, that you have forgotten that?
But you always
were a disappointing pupil."
The captain could not help himself: he was forced to confess
that
his memory had failed him.
"Well, then," said the professor, "I must remind you.
Taking the
attraction on the earth as 1, that on Mercury
is 1.15, on Venus it is .92, on
Mars .5, and on Jupiter 2.45;
on the moon the attraction is .16, whilst on
the surface of
the sun a terrestrial kilogramme would weigh 28
kilogrammes."
"Therefore, if a man upon the surface of the sun were to fall down,
he
would have considerable difficulty in getting up again.
A cannon ball, too,
would only fly a few yards," said Lieutenant Procope.
"A jolly battle-field for cowards!" exclaimed Ben Zoof.
"Not so jolly, Ben Zoof, as you fancy," said his master;
"the cowards
would be too heavy to run away."
Ben Zoof ventured the remark that, as the smallness of Gallia
secured to
its inhabitants such an increase of strength and agility,
he was almost sorry
that it had not been a little smaller still.
"Though it could not anyhow have been very much smaller,"
he added,
looking slyly at the professor.
"Idiot!" exclaimed Rosette. "Your head is too light already;
a puff
of wind would blow it away."
"I must take care of my head, then, and hold it on,"
replied the
irrepressible orderly.
Unable to get the last word, the professor was about to retire,
when
Servadac detained him.
"Permit me to ask you one more question," he said.
"Can you tell me what
is the nature of the soil of Gallia?"
"Yes, I can answer that. And in this matter I do not think
your
impertinent orderly will venture to put Montmartre into the
comparison.
This soil is of a substance not unknown upon the earth."
And
speaking very slowly, the professor said: "It contains 70 per cent.
of
tellurium, and 30 per cent. of gold."
Servadac uttered an exclamation of surprise.
"And the sum of the specific gravities of these two substances is
10,
precisely the number that represents Gallia's density."
"A comet of gold!" ejaculated the captain.
"Yes; a realization of what the illustrious Maupertuis has already
deemed
probable," replied the astronomer.
"If Gallia, then, should ever become attached to the earth, might it
not
bring about an important revolution in all monetary affairs?"
inquired the
count.
"No doubt about it!" said Rosette, with manifest satisfaction.
"It would
supply the world with about 246,000 trillions of francs."
"It would make gold about as cheap as dirt, I suppose," said Servadac.
The last observation, however, was entirely lost upon the professor,
who
had left the hall with an air almost majestic, and was already
on his way to
the observatory.
"And what, I wonder, is the use of all these big figures?"
said Ben Zoof
to his master, when next day they were alone together.
"That's just the charm of them, my good fellow," was the captain's cool
reply,
"that they are of no use whatever."
CHAPTER VIII
JUPITER SOMEWHAT CLOSE
Except as to the time the comet would take to revolve round the
sun,
it must be confessed that all the professor's calculations had
comparatively
little interest for anyone but himself, and he was consequently
left
very much to pursue his studies in solitude.
The following day was the 1st of August, or, according to Rosette, the
63rd
of April. In the course of this month Gallia would travel
16,500,000 leagues,
attaining at the end a distance of 197,000,000 leagues
from the sun.
This would leave 81,000,000 leagues more to be traversed before
reaching
the aphelion of the 15th of January, after which it would begin once
more
to approach the sun.
But meanwhile, a marvelous world, never before so close
within the range
of human vision, was revealing itself.
No wonder that Palmyrin Rosette cared
so little to quit
his observatory; for throughout those calm, clear Gallian
nights,
when the book of the firmament lay open before him, he could
revel
in a spectacle which no previous astronomer had ever been
permitted to
enjoy.
The glorious orb that was becoming so conspicuous an object
was none other
than the planet Jupiter, the largest of all
the bodies existing within the
influence of solar attraction.
During the seven months that had elapsed since
its collision
with the earth, the comet had been continuously
approaching
the planet, until the distance between them was scarcely
more
than 61,000,000 leagues, and this would go on diminishing until
the
15th of October.
Under these circumstances, was it perfectly certain that no
danger could
accrue? Was not Gallia, when its pathway
led it into such close
proximity to this enormous planet,
running a risk of being attracted within
its influence?
Might not that influence be altogether disastrous?
The
professor, it is true, in his estimate of the duration
of his comet's
revolution, had represented that he had made
all proper allowances for any
perturbations that would be caused
either by Jupiter, by Saturn, or by Mars;
but what if there
were any errors in his calculations? what if there should
be
any elements of disturbance on which he had not reckoned?
Speculations of this kind became more and more frequent,
and Lieutenant
Procope pointed out that the danger incurred
might be of a fourfold
character: first, that the comet,
being irresistibly attracted, might
be drawn on to the very
surface of the planet, and there annihilated;
secondly, that as
the result of being brought under that attraction, it might
be
transformed into a satellite, or even a sub-satellite, of that
mighty
world; thirdly, that it might be diverted into a new orbit,
which would never
be coincident with the ecliptic; or, lastly,
its course might be so retarded
that it would only reach
the ecliptic too late to permit any junction with
the earth.
The occurrence of any one of these contingencies would be
fatal
to their hopes of reunion with the globe, from which they had
been
so strangely severed.
To Rosette, who, without family ties which he had never found leisure
or
inclination to contract, had no shadow of desire to return to the earth,
it
would be only the first of these probabilities that could give him
any
concern. Total annihilation might not accord with his views, but he
would
be quite content for Gallia to miss its mark with regard to the
earth,
indifferent whether it revolved as a new satellite around Jupiter, or
whether
it wended its course through the untraversed regions of the milky
way.
The rest of the community, however, by no means sympathized with
the
professor's sentiments, and the following month was a period of
considerable
doubt and anxiety.
On the 1st of September the distance between Gallia and Jupiter
was
precisely the same as the mean distance between the earth and the
sun;
on the 16th, the distance was further reduced to 26,000,000
leagues.
The planet began to assume enormous dimensions, and it almost
seemed
as if the comet had already been deflected from its elliptical
orbit,
and was rushing on in a straight line towards the overwhelming
luminary.
The more they contemplated the character of this gigantic planet,
the more
they became impressed with the likelihood of a serious
perturbation in their
own course. The diameter of Jupiter is
85,390 miles, nearly eleven
times as great as that of the earth;
his volume is 1,387 times, and his mass
300 times greater;
and although the mean density is only about a quarter of
that
of the earth, and only a third of that of water (whence it has
been
supposed that the superficies of Jupiter is liquid), yet his
other
proportions were large enough to warrant the apprehension
that important
disturbances might result from his proximity.
"I forget my astronomy, lieutenant," said Servadac. "Tell me
all you
can about this formidable neighbor."
The lieutenant having refreshed his memory by reference to
Flammarion's
_Recits de l'Infini_, of which he had a Russian translation,
and some other
books, proceeded to recapitulate that Jupiter accomplishes
his revolution
round the sun in 4,332 days 14 hours and 2 minutes;
that he travels at the
rate of 467 miles a minute along an orbit
measuring 2,976 millions of miles;
and that his rotation on his axis
occupies only 9 hours and 55 minutes.
"His days, then, are shorter than ours?" interrupted the captain.
"Considerably," answered the lieutenant, who went on to
describe how the
displacement of a point at the equator
of Jupiter was twenty-seven times as
rapid as on the earth,
causing the polar compression to be about 2,378 miles;
how the axis,
being nearly perpendicular, caused the days and nights to
be
nearly of the same length, and the seasons to be invariable;
and how
the amount of light and heat received by the planet
is only a twenty-fifth
part of that received by the earth,
the average distance from the sun being
475,693,000 miles.
"And how about these satellites? Sometimes, I suppose, Jupiter
has
the benefit of four moons all shining at once?" asked Servadac.
Of the satellites, Lieutenant Procope went on to say that one
is rather
smaller than our own moon; that another moves round
its primary at an
interval about equal to the moon's distance
from ourselves; but that they all
revolve in considerably less time:
the first takes only l day 18 hours 27
minutes; the second takes
3 days 13 hours 14 minutes; the third, 7 days 3
hours 42 minutes;
whilst the largest of all takes but 16 days 16 hours 32
minutes.
The most remote revolves round the planet at a distance
of
1,192,820 miles.
"They have been enlisted into the service of science,"
said Procope.
"It is by their movements that the velocity
of light has been calculated; and
they have been made available
for the determination of terrestrial
longitudes."
"It must be a wonderful sight," said the captain.
"Yes," answered Procope. "I often think Jupiter is like a
prodigious
clock with four hands."
"I only hope that we are not destined to make a fifth hand,"
answered
Servadac.
Such was the style of the conversation that was day by day
reiterated
during the whole month of suspense. Whatever topic might be
started,
it seemed soon to settle down upon the huge orb that was looming
upon
them with such threatening aspect.
"The more remote that these planets are from the sun," said Procope,
"the
more venerable and advanced in formation are they found to be.
Neptune,
situated 2,746,271,000 miles from the sun, issued from
the solar nebulosity,
thousands of millions of centuries back.
Uranus, revolving 1,753,851,000
miles from the center of the
planetary system, is of an age amounting to many
hundred millions
of centuries. Jupiter, the colossal planet,
gravitating at a distance
of 475,693,000 miles, may be reckoned as 70,000,000
centuries old.
Mars has existed for 1,000,000,000 years at a distance of
139,212,000 miles.
The earth, 91,430,000 miles from the sun, quitted his
burning
bosom 100,000,000 years ago. Venus, revolving now
66,131,000
miles away, may be assigned the age of 50,000,000 years at
least;
and Mercury, nearest of all, and youngest of all, has been
revolving
at a distance of 35,393,000 miles for the space of 10,000,000
years--
the same time as the moon has been evolved from the earth."
Servadac listened attentively. He was at a loss what to say;
and the
only reply he made to the recital of this novel theory was
to the effect
that, if it were true, he would prefer being captured
by Mercury than by
Jupiter, for Mercury, being so much the younger,
would probably prove the
less imperative and self-willed master.
It was on the 1st of September that the comet had crossed
the orbit of
Jupiter, and on the 1st of October the two
bodies were calculated to be at
their minimum separation.
No direct shock, however, could be apprehended; the
demonstration
was sufficiently complete that the orbit of Gallia did
not
coincide with that of the planet, the orbit of Jupiter being
inclined
at an angle of 1 degrees 19 mins to the orbit of the earth,
with which that
of Gallia was, no doubt, coincident.
As the month of September verged towards its close, Jupiter began
to wear
an aspect that must have excited the admiration
of the most ignorant or the
most indifferent observer.
Its salient points were illumined with novel and
radiant tints,
and the solar rays, reflected from its disc, glowed with
a
mingled softness and intensity upon Gallia, so that Nerina
had to pale
her beauty.
Who could wonder that Rosette, enthusiast as he was, should be
irremovable
from his observatory? Who could expect otherwise than that,
with the
prospect before him of viewing the giant among planets,
ten times nearer than
any mortal eye had ever done, he should have
begrudged every moment that
distracted his attention?
Meanwhile, as Jupiter grew large, the sun grew small.
From its increased remoteness the diameter of the sun's disc was
diminished
to 5 degrees 46 mins.
And what an increased interest began to be associated
with the
satellites! They were visible to the naked eye!
Was it not a new record
in the annals of science?
Although it is acknowledged that they are not ordinarily visible on
earth
without the aid of a somewhat powerful telescope, it has been
asserted that a
favored few, endued with extraordinary powers of vision,
have been able to
identify them with an unassisted eye; but here,
at least, in Nina's Hive were
many rivals, for everyone could so far
distinguish them one from the other as
to describe them by their colors.
The first was of a dull white shade; the
second was blue; the third was
white and brilliant; the fourth was orange, at
times approaching to a red.
It was further observed that Jupiter itself was
almost void of scintillation.
Rosette, in his absorbing interest for the glowing glories of the
planet,
seemed to be beguiled into comparative forgetfulness of the
charms
of his comet; but no astronomical enthusiasm of the professor
could
quite allay the general apprehension that some serious
collision
might be impending.
Time passed on. There was nothing to justify apprehension.
The
question was continually being asked, "What does
the professor really
think?"
"Our friend the professor," said Servadac, "is not likely to tell us
very
much; but we may feel pretty certain of one thing: he wouldn't keep
us
long in the dark, if he thought we were not going back to the earth
again.
The greatest satisfaction he could have would be to inform us that we
had
parted from the earth for ever."
"I trust from my very soul," said the count, "that his
prognostications
are correct."
"The more I see of him, and the more I listen to him," replied
Servadac,
"the more I become convinced that his calculations are based on
a
solid foundation, and will prove correct to the minutest particular."
Ben Zoof here interrupted the conversation. "I have something
on my
mind," he said.
"Something on your mind? Out with it!" said the captain.
"That telescope!" said the orderly; "it strikes me that that
telescope
which the old professor keeps pointed up at yonder big sun is
bringing
it down straight upon us."
The captain laughed heartily.
"Laugh, captain, if you like; but I feel disposed to break the
old
telescope into atoms."
"Ben Zoof," said Servadac, his laughter exchanged for a look
of stern
displeasure, "touch that telescope, and you shall
swing for it!"
The orderly looked astonished.
"I am governor here," said Servadac.
Ben Zoof knew what his master meant, and to him his master's wish was law.
The interval between the comet and Jupiter was, by the 1st
of October,
reduced to 43,000,000 miles. The belts all parallel
to Jupiter's
equator were very distinct in their markings.
Those immediately north and
south of the equator were of a dusky hue;
those toward the poles were
alternately dark and light;
the intervening spaces of the planet's
superficies, between edge
and edge, being intensely bright. The belts
themselves were
occasionally broken by spots, which the records of
astronomy
describe as varying both in form and in extent.
The physiology of belts and spots alike was beyond the astronomer's
power
to ascertain; and even if he should be destined once again to take
his place
in an astronomical congress on the earth, he would be just as
incapable as
ever of determining whether or no they owed their existence
to the external
accumulation of vapor, or to some internal agency.
It would not be Professor
Rosette's lot to enlighten his brother
_savants_ to any great degree as to
the mysteries that are associated
with this, which must ever rank as one of
the most magnificent amongst
the heavenly orbs.
As the comet approached the critical point of its career it cannot
be
denied that there was an unacknowledged consciousness of alarm.
Mutually
reserved, though ever courteous, the count and the captain
were secretly
drawn together by the prospect of a common danger;
and as their return to the
earth appeared to them to become more
and more dubious, they abandoned their
views of narrow isolation,
and tried to embrace the wider philosophy that
acknowledges
the credibility of a habitable universe.
But no philosophy could be proof against the common instincts
of their
humanity; their hearts, their hopes, were set upon
their natural home; no
speculation, no science, no experience,
could induce them to give up their
fond and sanguine anticipation
that once again they were to come in contact
with the earth.
"Only let us escape Jupiter," said Lieutenant Procope, repeatedly, "and
we
are free from anxiety."
"But would not Saturn lie ahead?" asked Servadac and the count
in one
breath.
"No!" said Procope; "the orbit of Saturn is remote, and does
not come
athwart our path. Jupiter is our sole hindrance.
Of Jupiter we must
say, as William Tell said, 'Once through
the ominous pass and all is
well.'"
The 15th of October came, the date of the nearest approximation
of the
comet to the planet. They were only 31,000,000 miles apart.
What would
now transpire? Would Gallia be diverted from its proper
way? or would
it hold the course that the astronomer had predicted?
Early next morning the captain ventured to take the count and the
lieutenant
up to the observatory. The professor was in the worst of
tempers.
That was enough. It was enough, without a word, to indicate the
course
which events had taken. The comet was pursuing an unaltered
way.
The astronomer, correct in his prognostications, ought to
have been the
most proud and contented of philosophers;
his pride and contentment were both
overshadowed by the certainty
that the career of his comet was destined to be
so transient,
and that it must inevitably once again come into
collision
with the earth.
CHAPTER IX MARKET PRICES IN GALLIA
"All right!" said Servadac, convinced by the professor's ill
humor
that the danger was past; "no doubt we are in for a two
years'
excursion, but fifteen months more will take us back to the
earth!"
"And we shall see Montmartre again!" exclaimed Ben Zoof,
in excited tones
that betrayed his delight in the anticipation.
To use a nautical expression, they had safely "rounded the point,"
and
they had to be congratulated on their successful navigation;
for if, under
the influence of Jupiter's attraction, the comet had been
retarded for a
single hour, in that hour the earth would have already
traveled 2,300,000
miles from the point where contact would ensue,
and many centuries would
elapse before such a coincidence would
possibly again occur.
On the 1st of November Gallia and Jupiter were 40,000,000 miles apart.
It
was little more than ten weeks to the 15th of January, when the comet
would
begin to re-approach the sun. Though light and heat were
now reduced to
a twenty-fifth part of their terrestrial intensity,
so that a perpetual
twilight seemed to have settled over Gallia,
yet the population felt cheered
even by the little that was left,
and buoyed up by the hope that they should
ultimately regain their proper
position with regard to the great luminary, of
which the temperature
has been estimated as not less than 5,000,000
degrees.
Of the anxiety endured during the last two months Isaac Hakkabut
had known
nothing. Since the day he had done his lucky stroke
of business he had
never left the tartan; and after Ben Zoof,
on the following day, had returned
the steelyard and the
borrowed cash, receiving back the paper roubles
deposited,
all communication between the Jew and Nina's Hive had
ceased.
In the course of the few minutes' conversation which Ben Zoof
had
held with him, he had mentioned that he knew that
the whole soil of Gallia
was made of gold; but the old man,
guessing that the orderly was only
laughing at him as usual,
paid no attention to the remark, and only meditated
upon
the means he could devise to get every bit of the money
in the new
world into his own possession. No one grieved
over the life of solitude
which Hakkabut persisted in leading.
Ben Zoof giggled heartily, as he
repeatedly observed "it was
astonishing how they reconciled themselves to his
absence."
The time came, however, when various circumstances prompted him
to think
he must renew his intercourse with the inhabitants of
the Hive. Some of
his goods were beginning to spoil, and he felt
the necessity of turning them
into money, if he would not be a loser;
he hoped, moreover, that the scarcity
of his commodities would
secure very high prices.
It happened, just about this same time, that Ben Zoof had been
calling his
master's attention to the fact that some of their most
necessary provisions
would soon be running short, and that their stock
of coffee, sugar, and
tobacco would want replenishing. Servadac's mind,
of course, turned to
the cargo on board the _Hansa_, and he resolved,
according to his promise, to
apply to the Jew and become a purchaser.
Mutual interest and necessity thus
conspired to draw Hakkabut and
the captain together.
Often and often had Isaac gloated in his solitude over the prospect
of
first selling a portion of his merchandise for all the gold
and silver in the
colony. His recent usurious transaction
had whetted his appetite.
He would next part with some more
of his cargo for all the paper money they
could give him;
but still he should have goods left, and they would want
these.
Yes, they should have these, too, for promissory notes.
Notes would
hold good when they got back again to the earth;
bills from his Excellency
the governor would be good bills;
anyhow there would be the sheriff. By
the God of Israel!
he would get good prices, and he would get fine
interest!
Although he did not know it, he was proposing to follow the practice
of
the Gauls of old, who advanced money on bills for payment in a future
life.
Hakkabut's "future life," however, was not many months in advance
of
the present.
Still Hakkabut hesitated to make the first advance, and it was
accordingly
with much satisfaction that he hailed Captain Servadac's
appearance
on board the _Hansa_.
"Hakkabut," said the captain, plunging without further preface
into
business, "we want some coffee, some tobacco, and other things.
I have come
to-day to order them, to settle the price, and to-morrow
Ben Zoof shall fetch
the goods away."
"Merciful, heavens!" the Jew began to whine; but Servadac cut him short.
"None of that miserable howling! Business! I am come to buy your
goods.
I shall pay for them."
"Ah yes, your Excellency," whispered the Jew, his voice
trembling like a
street beggar. "Don't impose on me.
I am poor; I am nearly ruined
already."
"Cease your wretched whining!" cried Servadac. "I have told you
once,
I shall pay for all I buy."
"Ready money?" asked Hakkabut.
"Yes, ready money. What makes you ask?" said the captain,
curious to
hear what the Jew would say.
"Well, you see--you see, your Excellency," stammered out the Jew,
"to give
credit to one wouldn't do, unless I gave credit to another.
You are
solvent--I mean honorable, and his lordship the count is honorable;
but
maybe--maybe--"
"Well?" said Servadac, waiting, but inclined to kick the old rascal
out of
his sight.
"I shouldn't like to give credit," he repeated.
"I have not asked you for credit. I have told you, you shall
have
ready money."
"Very good, your Excellency. But how will you pay me?"
"Pay you? Why, we shall pay you in gold and silver and copper,
while
our money lasts, and when that is gone we shall pay you
in bank notes."
"Oh, no paper, no paper!" groaned out the Jew, relapsing into
his
accustomed whine.
"Nonsense, man!" cried Servadac.
"No paper!" reiterated Hakkabut.
"Why not? Surely you can trust the banks of England, France, and Russia."
"Ah no! I must have gold. Nothing so safe as gold."
"Well then," said the captain, not wanting to lose his temper,
"you shall
have it your own way; we have plenty of gold for
the present. We will
leave the bank notes for by and by."
The Jew's countenance brightened, and
Servadac, repeating that
he should come again the next day, was about to quit
the vessel.
"One moment, your Excellency," said Hakkabut, sidling up with
a
hypocritical smile; "I suppose I am to fix my own prices."
"You will, of course, charge ordinary prices--proper market
prices;
European prices, I mean."
"Merciful heavens!" shrieked the old man, "you rob me of my rights;
you
defraud me of my privilege. The monopoly of the market belongs to
me.
It is the custom; it is my right; it is my privilege to fix my own
prices."
Servadac made him understand that he had no intention of swerving
from his
decision.
"Merciful heavens!" again howled the Jew, "it is sheer ruin.
The time of
monopoly is the time for profit; it is the
time for speculation."
"The very thing, Hakkabut, that I am anxious to prevent.
Just stop now,
and think a minute. You seem to forget _my_ rights;
you are forgetting
that, if I please, I can confiscate all your
cargo for the common use.
You ought to think yourself lucky
in getting any price at all. Be
contented with European prices;
you will get no more. I am not going to
waste my breath on you.
I will come again to-morrow;" and, without allowing
Hakkabut time
to renew his lamentations, Servadac went away.
All the rest of the day the Jew was muttering bitter curses against
the
thieves of Gentiles in general, and the governor of Gallia in
particular,
who were robbing him of his just profits, by binding him down to
a maximum
price for his goods, just as if it were a time of revolution in the
state.
But he would be even with them yet; he would have it all out of
them:
he would make European prices pay, after all. He had a plan--he
knew how;
and he chuckled to himself, and grinned maliciously.
True to his word, the captain next morning arrived at the tartan.
He was
accompanied by Ben Zoof and two Russian sailors.
"Good-morning, old Eleazar;
we have come to do our little bit
of friendly business with you, you know,"
was Ben Zoof's greeting.
"What do you want to-day?" asked the Jew.
"To-day we want coffee, and we want sugar, and we want tobacco.
We must
have ten kilogrammes of each. Take care they are all good;
all first
rate. I am commissariat officer, and I am responsible."
"I thought you were the governor's aide-de-camp," said Hakkabut.
"So I am, on state occasions; but to-day, I tell you.
I am superintendent
of the commissariat department.
Now, look sharp!"
Hakkabut hereupon descended into the hold of the tartan, and soon
returned,
carrying ten packets of tobacco, each weighing one kilogramme, and
securely
fastened by strips of paper, labeled with the French government
stamp.
"Ten kilogrammes of tobacco at twelve francs a kilogramme:
a hundred and
twenty francs," said the Jew.
Ben Zoof was on the point of laying down the money, when Servadac stopped him.
"Let us just see whether the weight is correct."
Hakkabut pointed out that the weight was duly registered on
every packet,
and that the packets had never been unfastened.
The captain, however, had his
own special object in view,
and would not be diverted. The Jew fetched
his steelyard,
and a packet of the tobacco was suspended to it.
"Merciful heavens!" screamed Isaac.
The index registered only 133 grammes!
"You see, Hakkabut, I was right. I was perfectly justified in
having
your goods put to the test," said Servadac, quite seriously.
"But--but, your Excellency--" stammered out the bewildered man.
"You will, of course, make up the deficiency," the captain continued,
not
noticing the interruption.
"Oh, my lord, let me say--" began Isaac again.
"Come, come, old Caiaphas, do you hear? You are to make up the
deficiency,"
exclaimed Ben Zoof.
"Ah, yes, yes; but--"
The unfortunate Israelite tried hard to speak, but his agitation
prevented
him. He understood well enough the cause of the phenomenon,
but he was
overpowered by the conviction that the "cursed Gentiles"
wanted to cheat
him. He deeply regretted that he had not a pair
of common scales on
board.
"Come, I say, old Jedediah, you are a long while making up what's
short,"
said Ben Zoof, while the Jew was still stammering on.
As soon as he recovered his power of articulation, Isaac began
to pour out
a medley of lamentations and petitions for mercy.
The captain was
inexorable. "Very sorry, you know, Hakkabut. It is
not my fault
that the packet is short weight; but I cannot pay
for a kilogramme except I
have a kilogramme."
Hakkabut pleaded for some consideration.
"A bargain is a bargain," said Servadac. "You must complete your contract."
And, moaning and groaning, the miserable man was driven to make
up the
full weight as registered by his own steelyard.
He had to repeat the process
with the sugar and coffee:
for every kilogramme he had to weigh seven.
Ben Zoof and
the Russians jeered him most unmercifully.
"I say, old Mordecai, wouldn't you rather give your goods away,
than sell
them at this rate? I would."
"I say, old Pilate, a monopoly isn't always a good thing, is it?"
"I say, old Sepharvaim, what a flourishing trade you're driving!"
Meanwhile seventy kilogrammes of each of the articles required were
weighed,
and the Jew for each seventy had to take the price of ten.
All along Captain Servadac had been acting only in jest. Aware
that
old Isaac was an utter hypocrite, he had no compunction in turning
a
business transaction with him into an occasion for a bit of fun.
But the joke
at an end, he took care that the Jew was properly paid
all his legitimate
due.
CHAPTER X
FAR INTO SPACE
A month passed away. Gallia continued its course, bearing its
little
population onwards, so far removed from the ordinary influence of
human
passions that it might almost be said that its sole ostensible
vice
was represented by the greed and avarice of the miserable Jew.
After all, they were but making a voyage--a strange, yet a
transient,
excursion through solar regions hitherto untraversed;
but if
the professor's calculations were correct--and why
should they be
doubted?--their little vessel was destined,
after a two years' absence, once
more to return "to port."
The landing, indeed, might be a matter of
difficulty;
but with the good prospect before them of once again
standing
on terrestrial shores, they had nothing to do at present
except
to make themselves as comfortable as they could in
their present
quarters.
Thus confident in their anticipations, neither the captain,
the count, nor
the lieutenant felt under any serious
obligation to make any extensive
provisions for the future;
they saw no necessity for expending the strength
of the people,
during the short summer that would intervene upon the
long
severity of winter, in the cultivation or the preservation
of their
agricultural resources. Nevertheless, they often found
themselves
talking over the measures they would have been driven
to adopt, if they had
found themselves permanently attached
to their present home.
Even after the turning-point in their career, they knew that at least
nine
months would have to elapse before the sea would be open to
navigation;
but at the very first arrival of summer they would be bound to
arrange for
the _Dobryna_ and the _Hansa_ to retransport themselves and all
their animals
to the shores of Gourbi Island, where they would have to
commence their
agricultural labors to secure the crops that must form their
winter store.
During four months or thereabouts, they would lead the lives of
farmers and
of sportsmen; but no sooner would their haymaking and their corn
harvest have
been accomplished, than they would be compelled again, like a
swarm of bees,
to retire to their semi-troglodyte existence in the cells of
Nina's Hive.
Now and then the captain and his friends found themselves speculating
whether,
in the event of their having to spend another winter upon
Gallia,
some means could not be devised by which the dreariness of a
second
residence in the recesses of the volcano might be escaped.
Would
not another exploring expedition possibly result in the discovery
of a vein
of coal or other combustible matter, which could be turned
to account in
warming some erection which they might hope to put up?
A prolonged existence
in their underground quarters was felt to be
monotonous and depressing, and
although it might be all very well
for a man like Professor Rosette, absorbed
in astronomical studies,
it was ill suited to the temperaments of any of
themselves for any longer
period than was absolutely indispensable.
One contingency there was, almost too terrible to be taken into
account.
Was it not to be expected that the time might come when the
internal
fires of Gallia would lose their activity, and the stream of
lava
would consequently cease to flow? Why should Gallia be
exempt
from the destiny that seemed to await every other heavenly
body?
Why should it not roll onwards, like the moon, a dark cold mass in
space?
In the event of such a cessation of the volcanic eruption,
whilst the
comet was still at so great a distance from the sun,
they would indeed be at
a loss to find a substitute for what
alone had served to render life
endurable at a temperature
of 60 degrees below zero. Happily, however,
there was at
present no symptom of the subsidence of the lava's
stream;
the volcano continued its regular and unchanging discharge,
and
Servadac, ever sanguine, declared that it was useless
to give themselves any
anxiety upon the matter.
On the l5th of December, Gallia was 276,000,000 leagues from the sun,
and,
as it was approximately to the extremity of its axis major,
would travel only
some 11,000,000 or 12,000,000 leagues during the month.
Another world was now
becoming a conspicuous object in the heavens,
and Palmyrin Rosette, after
rejoicing in an approach nearer to
Jupiter than any other mortal man had ever
attained, was now to be
privileged to enjoy a similar opportunity of
contemplating the
planet Saturn. Not that the circumstances were
altogether so favorable.
Scarcely 31,000,000 miles had separated Gallia from
Jupiter;
the minimum distance of Saturn would not be less than 415,000,000
miles;
but even this distance, although too great to affect the
comet's
progress more than had been duly reckoned on, was considerably
shorter
than what had ever separated Saturn from the earth.
To get any information about the planet from Rosette appeared
quite
impossible. Although equally by night and by day he never
seemed to
quit his telescope, he did not evince the slightest
inclination to impart the
result of his observations.
It was only from the few astronomical works that
happened
to be included in the _Dobryna's_ library that any details
could
be gathered, but these were sufficient to give a large amount
of
interesting information.
Ben Zoof, when he was made aware that the earth would be invisible
to the
naked eye from the surface of Saturn, declared that he then,
for his part,
did not care to learn any more about such a planet;
to him it was
indispensable that the earth should remain in sight,
and it was his great
consolation that hitherto his native sphere
had never vanished from his
gaze.
At this date Saturn was revolving at a distance of 420,000,000
miles from
Gallia, and consequently 874,440,000 miles
from the sun, receiving only a
hundredth part of the light
and heat which that luminary bestows upon the
earth.
On consulting their books of reference, the colonists found
that
Saturn completes his revolution round the sun in a period
of 29 years and 167
days, traveling at the rate of more than
21,000 miles an hour along an orbit
measuring 5,490 millions
of miles in length. His circumference is about
220,000 miles;
his superficies, 144,000 millions of square miles; his
volume,
143,846 millions of cubic miles. Saturn is 735 times
larger
than the earth, consequently he is smaller than Jupiter;
in mass he
is only 90 times greater than the earth,
which gives him a density less than
that of water.
He revolves on his axis in 10 hours 29 minutes, causing his
own
year to consist of 86,630 days; and his seasons, on account
of the
great inclination of his axis to the plane of his orbit,
are each of the
length of seven terrestrial years.
Although the light received from the sun is comparatively feeble,
the
nights upon Saturn must be splendid. Eight satellites--
Mimas,
Enceladus, Tethys, Dione, Rhea, Titan, Hyperion, and Japetus--
accompany the
planet; Mimas, the nearest to its primary, rotating on its
axis in 221/2
hours, and revolving at a distance of only 120,800 miles,
whilst Japetus, the
most remote, occupies 79 days in its rotation,
and revolves at a distance of
2,314,000 miles.
Another most important contribution to the magnificence of the nights
upon
Saturn is the triple ring with which, as a brilliant setting,
the planet is
encompassed. To an observer at the equator, this ring,
which has been
estimated by Sir William Herschel as scarcely 100
miles in thickness, must
have the appearance of a narrow band
of light passing through the zenith
12,000 miles above his head.
As the observer, however, increases his latitude
either north
or south, the band will gradually widen out into three
detached
and concentric rings, of which the innermost, dark though
transparent,
is 9,625 miles in breadth; the intermediate one, which is
brighter
than the planet itself, being 17,605 miles broad; and the
outer,
of a dusky hue, being 8,660 miles broad.
Such, they read, is the general outline of this strange appendage,
which
revolves in its own plane in 10 hours 32 minutes.
Of what matter it is
composed, and how it resists disintegration,
is still an unsettled question;
but it might almost seem
that the Designer of the universe, in permitting its
existence,
had been willing to impart to His intelligent creatures the
manner
in which celestial bodies are evolved, and that this
remarkable
ring-system is a remnant of the nebula from which Saturn
was
himself developed, and which, from some unknown cause,
has become
solidified. If at any time it should disperse,
it would either fall
into fragments upon the surface of Saturn,
or the fragments, mutually
coalescing, would form additional
satellites to circle round the planet in
its path.
To any observer stationed on the planet, between the extremes of lat.
45
degrees on either side of the equator, these wonderful rings would
present
various strange phenomena. Sometimes they would appear as
an
illuminated arch, with the shadow of Saturn passing over it like the
hour-hand
over a dial; at other times they would be like a semi-aureole of
light.
Very often, too, for periods of several years, daily eclipses of the
sun
must occur through the interposition of this triple ring.
Truly, with the constant rising and setting of the satellites,
some with
bright discs at their full, others like silver crescents,
in quadrature, as
well as by the encircling rings, the aspect
of the heavens from the surface
of Saturn must be as impressive
as it is gorgeous.
Unable, indeed, the Gallians were to realize all the marvels of
this
strange world. After all, they were practically a thousand
times
further off than the great astronomers have been able to approach
by
means of their giant telescopes. But they did not complain;
their
little comet, they knew, was far safer where it was;
far better out of the
reach of an attraction which, by affecting
their path, might have annihilated
their best hopes.
The distances of several of the brightest of the fixed stars have
been
estimated. Amongst others, Vega in the constellation Lyra
is 100
millions of millions of miles away; Sirius in Canis Major,
123 millions of
millions; the Pole-star, 282 millions of millions;
and Capella, 340 millions
of millions of miles, a figure represented
by no less than fifteen
digits.
The hard numerical statement of these enormous figures, however,
fails
altogether in any adequate way to convey a due impression
of the magnitude of
these distances. Astronomers, in their ingenuity,
have endeavored to
use some other basis, and have found "the
velocity of light" to be convenient
for their purpose.
They have made their representations something in this
way:
"Suppose," they say, "an observer endowed with an infinite length of
vision:
suppose him stationed on the surface of Capella; looking
thence
towards the earth, he would be a spectator of events that had
happened
seventy years previously; transport him to a star ten times
distant,
and he will be reviewing the terrestrial sphere of 720 years
back;
carry him away further still, to a star so remote that it
requires
something less than nineteen centuries for light to reach it,
and
he would be a witness of the birth and death of Christ;
convey him further
again, and he shall be looking upon the dread
desolation of the Deluge; take
him away further yet (for space is
infinite), and he shall be a spectator of
the Creation of the spheres.
History is thus stereotyped in space; nothing
once accomplished can
ever be effaced."
Who can altogether be astonished that Palmyrin Rosette, with his
burning
thirst for astronomical research, should have been conscious
of a longing for
yet wider travel through the sidereal universe?
With his comet now under the
influence of one star, now of another,
what various systems might he not have
explored! what undreamed-of
marvels might not have revealed themselves before
his gaze!
The stars, fixed and immovable in name, are all of them in
motion,
and Gallia might have followed them in their un-tracked way.
But Gallia had a narrow destiny. She was not to be allowed
to wander
away into the range of attraction of another center;
nor to mingle with the
star clusters, some of which have
been entirely, others partially resolved;
nor was she to lose
herself amongst the 5,000 nebulae which have resisted
hitherto
the grasp of the most powerful reflectors. No; Gallia
was
neither to pass beyond the limits of the solar system,
nor to travel
out of sight of the terrestrial sphere.
Her orbit was circumscribed to little
over 1,500 millions
of miles; and, in comparison with the infinite space
beyond,
this was a mere nothing.
CHAPTER XI
A FETE DAY
The temperature continued to decrease; the mercurial
thermometer,
which freezes at 42 degrees below zero, was no longer of
service,
and the spirit thermometer of the _Dobryna_ had been brought into
use.
This now registered 53 degrees below freezing-point.
In the creek, where the two vessels had been moored for the winter,
the
elevation of the ice, in anticipation of which Lieutenant Procope
had taken
the precautionary measure of beveling, was going on slowly
but irresistibly,
and the tartan was upheaved fifty feet above
the level of the Gallian Sea,
while the schooner, as being lighter,
had been raised to a still greater
altitude.
So irresistible was this gradual process of elevation,
so utterly defying
all human power to arrest, that the lieutenant
began to feel very anxious as
to the safety of his yacht.
With the exception of the engine and the
masts,
everything had been cleared out and conveyed to shore,
but in the
event of a thaw it appeared that nothing short
of a miracle could prevent the
hull from being dashed to pieces,
and then all means of leaving the
promontory would be gone.
The _Hansa_, of course, would share a similar fate;
in fact,
it had already heeled over to such an extent as to render
it
quite dangerous for its obstinate owner, who, at the peril
of his life,
resolved that he would stay where he could watch
over his all-precious cargo,
though continually invoking curses
on the ill-fate of which he deemed himself
the victim.
There was, however, a stronger will than Isaac Hakkabut's. Although
no one
of all the community cared at all for the safety of the Jew,
they cared very
much for the security of his cargo, and when Servadac
found that nothing
would induce the old man to abandon his present
quarters voluntarily, he very
soon adopted measures of coercion that
were far more effectual than any
representations of personal danger.
"Stop where you like, Hakkabut," said the captain to him; "but
understand
that I consider it my duty to make sure that your cargo is taken
care of.
I am going to have it carried across to land, at once."
Neither groans, nor tears, nor protestations on the part of the Jew,
were
of the slightest avail. Forthwith, on the 20th of December,
the removal
of the goods commenced.
Both Spaniards and Russians were all occupied for several days
in the work
of unloading the tartan. Well muffled up as they
were in furs, they
were able to endure the cold with impunity,
making it their special care to
avoid actual contact with any
article made of metal, which, in the low state
of the temperature,
would inevitably have taken all the skin off their
hands,
as much as if it had been red-hot. The task, however, was
brought
to an end without accident of any kind; and when the stores
of the
_Hansa_ were safely deposited in the galleries
of the Hive, Lieutenant
Procope avowed that he really felt
that his mind had been unburdened from a
great anxiety.
Captain Servadac gave old Isaac full permission to take up his
residence
amongst the rest of the community, promised him the entire control
over
his own property, and altogether showed him so much consideration
that,
but for his unbounded respect for his master, Ben Zoof would have
liked
to reprimand him for his courtesy to a man whom he so cordially
despised.
Although Hakkabut clamored most vehemently about his goods
being carried
off "against his will," in his heart he was more
than satisfied to see his
property transferred to a place
of safety, and delighted, moreover, to know
that the transport
had been effected without a farthing of expense to
himself.
As soon, then, as he found the tartan empty, he was only too
glad
to accept the offer that had been made him, and very soon
made his way over
to the quarters in the gallery where his
merchandise had been stored.
Here he lived day and night.
He supplied himself with what little food he
required from
his own stock of provisions, a small spirit-lamp
sufficing
to perform all the operations of his meager
cookery.
Consequently all intercourse between himself and the rest of
the
inhabitants was entirely confined to business transactions,
when occasion
required that some purchase should be made from
his stock of
commodities. Meanwhile, all the silver and gold of
the colony was
gradually finding its way to a double-locked drawer,
of which the Jew most
carefully guarded the key.
The 1st of January was drawing near, the anniversary of the shock
which
had resulted in the severance of thirty-six human beings from
the society of
their fellow-men. Hitherto, not one of them was missing.
The unvarying
calmness of the climate, notwithstanding the cold,
had tended to maintain
them in good health, and there seemed no reason
to doubt that, when Gallia
returned to the earth, the total of its
little population would still be
complete.
The 1st of January, it is true, was not properly "New Year's Day"
in
Gallia, but Captain Servadac, nevertheless, was very anxious
to have it
observed as a holiday.
"I do not think," he said to Count Timascheff and Lieutenant
Procope,
"that we ought to allow our people to lose their interest in the
world
to which we are all hoping to return; and how can we cement the
bond
that ought to unite us, better than by celebrating, in common with
our
fellow-creatures upon earth, a day that awakens afresh the
kindliest
sentiments of all? Besides," he added, smiling, "I expect
that Gallia,
although invisible just at present to the naked eye, is being
closely
watched by the telescopes of our terrestrial friends, and I have
no
doubt that the newspapers and scientific journals of both
hemispheres
are full of accounts detailing the movements of the new
comet."
"True," asserted the count. "I can quite imagine that we are
occasioning
no small excitement in all the chief observatories."
"Ay, more than that," said the lieutenant; "our Gallia is certain
to be
far more than a mere object of scientific interest or curiosity.
Why should
we doubt that the elements of a comet which has once come into
collision with
the earth have by this time been accurately calculated?
What our friend the
professor has done here, has been done likewise on
the earth, where, beyond a
question, all manner of expedients are being
discussed as to the best way of
mitigating the violence of a concussion
that must occur."
The lieutenant's conjectures were so reasonable that they commanded
assent.
Gallia could scarcely be otherwise than an object of terror to the
inhabitants
of the earth, who could by no means be certain that a second
collision would
be comparatively so harmless as the first. Even to the
Gallians themselves,
much as they looked forward to the event, the prospect
was not unmixed
with alarm, and they would rejoice in the invention of any
device by which it
was likely the impetus of the shock might be deadened.
Christmas arrived, and was marked by appropriate religious observance
by
everyone in the community, with the exception of the Jew,
who made a point of
secluding himself more obstinately than ever
in the gloomy recesses of his
retreat.
To Ben Zoof the last week of the year was full of bustle.
The arrangements
for the New Year _fete_ were entrusted to him,
and he was anxious, in spite
of the resources of Gallia being so limited,
to make the program for the
great day as attractive as possible.
It was a matter of debate that night whether the professor should
be
invited to join the party; it was scarcely likely that he would care
to
come, but, on the whole, it was felt to be advisable to ask him.
At first
Captain Servadac thought of going in person with
the invitation; but,
remembering Rosette's dislike to visitors,
he altered his mind, and sent
young Pablo up to the observatory
with a formal note, requesting the pleasure
of Professor Rosette's
company at the New Year's _fete_.
Pablo was soon back, bringing no answer except that the professor
had told
him that "to-day was the l25th of June, and that to-morrow
would be the 1st
of July."
Consequently, Servadac and the count took it for granted that Palmyrin
Rosette
declined their invitation.
An hour after sunrise on New Year's Day, Frenchmen, Russians,
Spaniards,
and little Nina, as the representative of Italy, sat down to
a
feast such as never before had been seen in Gallia. Ben Zoof
and
the Russian cook had quite surpassed themselves. The wines,
part of the
_Dobryna's_ stores, were of excellent quality.
Those of the vintages of
France and Spain were drunk in toasting
their respective countries, and even
Russia was honored in a
similar way by means of a few bottles of
kummel. The company was
more than contented--it was as jovial as Ben
Zoof could desire;
and the ringing cheers that followed the great toast of
the day--"A
happy return to our Mother Earth," must fairly have
startled
the professor in the silence of his observatory.
The _dejeuner_ over, there still remained three hours of daylight.
The sun
was approaching the zenith, but so dim and enfeebled were his rays
that they
were very unlike what had produced the wines of Bordeaux and
Burgundy which
they had just been enjoying, and it was necessary for all,
before starting
upon an excursion that would last over nightfall,
to envelop themselves in
the thickest of clothing.
Full of spirits, the party left the Hive, and chattering and
singing as
they went, made their way down to the frozen shore,
where they fastened on
their skates. Once upon the ice,
everyone followed his own fancy, and
some singly, some in groups,
scattered themselves in all directions.
Captain Servadac,
the count, and the lieutenant were generally seen
together.
Negrete and the Spaniards, now masters of their novel
exercise,
wandered fleetly and gracefully hither and thither,
occasionally
being out of sight completely. The Russian sailors,
following a
northern custom, skated in file, maintaining their
rank by means of a long
pole passed under their right arms,
and in this way they described a trackway
of singular regularity.
The two children, blithe as birds, flitted about, now
singly,
now arm-in-arm, now joining the captain's party, now making a
short
peregrination by themselves, but always full of life and spirit.
As
for Ben Zoof, he was here, there, and everywhere,
his imperturbable good
temper ensuring him a smile of welcome
whenever he appeared.
Thus coursing rapidly over the icy plain, the whole party had
soon
exceeded the line that made the horizon from the shore.
First, the rocks of
the coast were lost to view; then the white crests
of the cliffs were no
longer to be seen; and at last, the summit
of the volcano, with its corona of
vapor, was entirely out of sight.
Occasionally the skaters were obliged to
stop to recover their breath,
but, fearful of frost-bite, they almost
instantly resumed their exercise,
and proceeded nearly as far as Gourbi
Island before they thought
about retracing their course.
But night was coming on, and the sun was already sinking in the east with
the
rapidity to which the residents on Gallia were by this time well
accustomed.
The sunset upon this contracted horizon was very
remarkable.
There was not a cloud nor a vapor to catch the tints of the
declining beams;
the surface of the ice did not, as a liquid sea would,
reflect the last green
ray of light; but the radiant orb, enlarged by the
effect of refraction,
its circumference sharply defined against the sky, sank
abruptly, as though
a trap had been opened in the ice for its reception.
Before the daylight ended. Captain Servadac had cautioned
the party
to collect themselves betimes into one group.
"Unless you are sure of your
whereabouts before dark," he said,
"you will not find it after. We have
come out like a party
of skirmishers; let us go back in full force."
The night would be dark; their moon was in conjunction, and would not be
seen;
the stars would only give something of that "pale radiance" which the
poet
Corneille has described.
Immediately after sunset the torches were lighted, and the long
series of
flames, fanned by the rapid motion of their bearers,
had much the appearance
of an enormous fiery banner. An hour later,
and the volcano appeared
like a dim shadow on the horizon, the light
from the crater shedding a lurid
glare upon the surrounding gloom.
In time the glow of the burning lava,
reflected in the icy mirror,
fell upon the troop of skaters, and cast their
lengthened shadows
grotesquely on the surface of the frozen sea.
Later still, half an hour or more afterwards, the torches were
all but
dying out. The shore was close at hand. All at once,
Ben Zoof
uttered a startled cry, and pointed with bewildered
excitement towards the
mountain. Involuntarily, one and all,
they plowed their heels into the
ice and came to a halt.
Exclamations of surprise and horror burst from every
lip.
The volcano was extinguished! The stream of burning lava
had
suddenly ceased to flow!
Speechless with amazement, they stood still for some moments.
There was
not one of them that did not realize, more or less,
how critical was their
position. The sole source of the heat that had
enabled them to brave
the rigor of the cold had failed them! death,
in the cruellest of all shapes,
seemed staring them in the face--
death from cold! Meanwhile, the last
torch had flickered out.
It was quite dark.
"Forward!" cried Servadac, firmly.
At the word of command they advanced to the shore; clambered with
no
little difficulty up the slippery rocks; gained the mouth of the
gallery;
groped their way into the common hall.
How dreary! how chill it seemed!
The fiery cataract no longer spread its glowing covering over the mouth
of
the grotto. Lieutenant Procope leaned through the aperture.
The pool,
hitherto kept fluid by its proximity to the lava,
was already encrusted with
a layer of ice.
Such was the end of the New Year's Day so happily begun.
CHAPTER XII
THE BOWELS OF THE COMET
The whole night was spent in speculating, with gloomy forebodings, upon
the
chances of the future. The temperature of the hall, now entirely
exposed
to the outer air, was rapidly falling, and would quickly become
unendurable.
Far too intense was the cold to allow anyone to remain at the
opening,
and the moisture on the walls soon resolved itself into
icicles. But the
mountain was like the body of a dying man, that
retains awhile a certain
amount of heat at the heart after the extremities
have become cold and dead.
In the more interior galleries there was still a
certain degree of warmth,
and hither Servadac and his companions were glad
enough to retreat.
Here they found the professor, who, startled by the sudden cold,
had been
fain to make a precipitate retreat from his observatory.
Now would have been
the opportunity to demand of the enthusiast whether
he would like to prolong
his residence indefinitely upon his little comet.
It is very likely that he
would have declared himself ready to put up with
any amount of discomfort to
be able to gratify his love of investigation;
but all were far too
disheartened and distressed to care to banter him
upon the subject on which
he was so sensitive.
Next morning, Servadac thus addressed his people.
"My friends, except from
cold, we have nothing to fear.
Our provisions are ample--more than enough for
the remaining
period of our sojourn in this lone world of ours; our
preserved
meat is already cooked; we shall be able to dispense with
all
fuel for cooking purposes. All that we require is
warmth--
warmth for ourselves; let us secure that, and all may be
well.
Now, I do not entertain a doubt but that the warmth we require
is
resident in the bowels of this mountain on which we are living;
to the depth
of those bowels we must penetrate; there we shall
obtain the warmth which is
indispensable to our very existence."
His tone, quite as much as his words, restored confidence to many
of his
people, who were already yielding to a feeling of despair.
The count and the
lieutenant fervently, but silently, grasped his hand.
"Nina," said the captain, "you will not be afraid to go down to the
lower
depths of the mountain, will you?"
"Not if Pablo goes," replied the child.
"Oh yes, of course, Pablo will go. You are not afraid to go,
are
you, Pablo?" he said, addressing the boy.
"Anywhere with you, your Excellency," was the boy's prompt reply.
And certain it was that no time must be lost in penetrating below
the
heart of the volcano; already the most protected of the many
ramifications of
Nina's Hive were being pervaded by a cold that
was insufferable. It was
an acknowledged impossibility to get access
to the crater by the exterior
declivities of the mountain-side;
they were far too steep and too slippery to
afford a foothold.
It must of necessity be entered from the interior.
Lieutenant Procope accordingly undertook the task of exploring all
the
galleries, and was soon able to report that he had discovered one
which he
had every reason to believe abutted upon the central funnel.
His reason for
coming to this conclusion was that the caloric emitted
by the rising vapors
of the hot lava seemed to be oozing, as it were, out of
the tellurium, which
had been demonstrated already to be a conductor of heat.
Only succeed in
piercing through this rock for seven or eight yards,
and the lieutenant did
not doubt that his way would be opened into the old
lava-course, by following
which he hoped descent would be easy.
Under the lieutenant's direction the Russian sailors were
immediately set
to work. Their former experience had convinced
them that spades and
pick-axes were of no avail, and their
sole resource was to proceed by
blasting with gunpowder.
However skillfully the operation might be carried
on,
it must necessarily occupy several days, and during that time
the
sufferings from cold must be very severe.
"If we fail in our object, and cannot get to the depths of the
mountain,
our little colony is doomed," said Count Timascheff.
"That speech is not like yourself," answered Servadac, smiling.
"What has
become of the faith which has hitherto carried you
so bravely through all our
difficulties?"
The count shook his head, as if in despair, and said, sadly, "The
Hand
that has hitherto been outstretched to help seems now to be
withdrawn."
"But only to test our powers of endurance," rejoined the captain,
earnestly.
"Courage, my friend, courage! Something tells me that this
cessation
of the eruption is only partial; the internal fire is not all
extinct.
All is not over yet. It is too soon to give up; never
despair!"
Lieutenant Procope quite concurred with the captain.
Many causes, he knew,
besides the interruption of the influence
of the oxygen upon the mineral
substances in Gallia's interior,
might account for the stoppage of the
lava-flow in this one
particular spot, and he considered it more than
probable that a
fresh outlet had been opened in some other part of the
surface,
and that the eruptive matter had been diverted into the new
channel.
But at present his business was to prosecute his labors
so that a
retreat might be immediately effected from their
now untenable position.
Restless and agitated, Professor Rosette, if he took any
interest in these
discussions, certainly took no share in them.
He had brought his telescope
down from the observatory into
the common hall, and there at frequent
intervals, by night
and by day, he would endeavor to continue his
observations;
but the intense cold perpetually compelled him to desist,
or
he would literally have been frozen to death.
No sooner, however, did he find
himself obliged to retreat
from his study of the heavens, than he would begin
overwhelming
everybody about him with bitter complaints, pouring out
his
regrets that he had ever quitted his quarters at Formentera.
On the 4th of January, by persevering industry, the process
of boring was
completed, and the lieutenant could hear that
fragments of the blasted rock,
as the sailors cleared them away
with their spades, were rolling into the
funnel of the crater.
He noticed, too, that they did not fall
perpendicularly,
but seemed to slide along, from which he inferred that the
sides
of the crater were sloping; he had therefore reason to hope
that a
descent would be found practicable.
Larger and larger grew the orifice; at length it would admit a man's
body,
and Ben Zoof, carrying a torch, pushed himself through it, followed
by
the lieutenant and Servadac. Procope's conjecture proved
correct.
On entering the crater, they found that the sides slanted at the
angle
of about 4 degrees ; moreover, the eruption had evidently been
of
recent origin, dating probably only from the shock which had
invested
Gallia with a proportion of the atmosphere of the earth, and
beneath
the coating of ashes with which they were covered, there were
various
irregularities in the rock, not yet worn away by the action of the
lava,
and these afforded a tolerably safe footing.
"Rather a bad staircase!" said Ben Zoof, as they began to make
their way
down.
In about half an hour, proceeding in a southerly direction,
they had
descended nearly five hundred feet. From time
to time they came upon
large excavations that at first sight
had all the appearance of galleries,
but by waving his torch,
Ben Zoof could always see their extreme limits, and
it was
evident that the lower strata of the mountain did not present
the
same system of ramification that rendered the Hive above
so commodious a
residence.
It was not a time to be fastidious; they must be satisfied
with such
accommodation as they could get, provided it was warm.
Captain Servadac was
only too glad to find that his hopes
about the temperature were to a certain
extent realized.
The lower they went, the greater was the diminution in the
cold,
a diminution that was far more rapid than that which is
experienced
in making the descent of terrestrial mines.
In this case it was a volcano,
not a colliery, that was
the object of exploration, and thankful enough they
were
to find that it had not become extinct. Although the lava,
from
some unknown cause, had ceased to rise in the crater,
yet plainly it existed
somewhere in an incandescent state,
and was still transmitting considerable
heat to inferior strata.
Lieutenant Procope had brought in his hand a mercurial thermometer,
and
Servadac carried an aneroid barometer, by means of which he could
estimate
the depth of their descent below the level of the Gallian Sea.
When they
were six hundred feet below the orifice the mercury registered a
temperature
of 6 degrees below zero.
"Six degrees!" said Servadac; "that will not suit us.
At this low
temperature we could not survive the winter.
We must try deeper down. I
only hope the ventilation
will hold out."
There was, however, nothing to fear on the score of ventilation.
The great
current of air that rushed into the aperture penetrated everywhere,
and made
respiration perfectly easy.
The descent was continued for about another three hundred feet,
which
brought the explorers to a total depth of nine hundred feet from
their old
quarters. Here the thermometer registered 12 degrees above zero--
a
temperature which, if only it were permanent, was all they wanted.
There was
no advantage in proceeding any further along the lava-course;
they could
already hear the dull rumblings that indicated that they
were at no great
distance from the central focus.
"Quite near enough for me!" exclaimed Ben Zoof. "Those who
are
chilly are welcome to go as much lower as they like.
For my part, I shall be
quite warm enough here."
After throwing the gleams of torch-light in all directions,
the explorers
seated themselves on a jutting rock,
and began to debate whether it was
practicable for the colony
to make an abode in these lower depths of the
mountain.
The prospect, it must be owned, was not inviting. The
crater,
it is true, widened out into a cavern sufficiently large,
but here
its accommodation ended. Above and below were a few
ledges in the rock
that would serve as receptacles for provisions;
but, with the exception of a
small recess that must be reserved
for Nina, it was clear that henceforth
they must all renounce
the idea of having separate apartments. The
single cave must
be their dining-room, drawing-room, and dormitory, all in
one.
From living the life of rabbits in a warren, they were reduced
to the
existence of moles, with the difference that they could not,
like them,
forget their troubles in a long winter's sleep.
The cavern, however, was quite capable of being lighted
by means of lamps
and lanterns. Among the stores were several
barrels of oil and a
considerable quantity of spirits of wine,
which might be burned when required
for cooking purposes.
Moreover, it would be unnecessary for them to
confine
themselves entirely to the seclusion of their gloomy
residence;
well wrapped up, there would be nothing to prevent them
making
occasional excursions both to the Hive and to the sea-shore.
A
supply of fresh water would be constantly required;
ice for this purpose must
be perpetually carried in from the coast,
and it would be necessary to
arrange that everyone in turn
should perform this office, as it would be no
sinecure to clamber
up the sides of the crater for 900 feet, and descend the
same
distance with a heavy burden.
But the emergency was great, and it was accordingly soon decided
that the
little colony should forthwith take up its quarters
in the cave. After
all, they said, they should hardly be much
worse off than thousands who
annually winter in Arctic regions.
On board the whaling-vessels, and in the
establishments
of the Hudson's Bay Company, such luxuries as separate
cabins
or sleeping-chambers are never thought of; one large
apartment,
well heated and ventilated, with as few corners as possible,
is
considered far more healthy; and on board ship the entire hold,
and in forts
a single floor, is appropriated to this purpose.
The recollection of this
fact served to reconcile them,
in a great degree, to the change to which they
felt it
requisite to submit.
Having remounted the ascent, they made the result of their exploration
known
to the mass of the community, who received the tidings with a sense of
relief,
and cordially accepted the scheme of the migration.
The first step was to clear the cavern of its accumulation of ashes,
and
then the labor of removal commenced in earnest. Never was a
task
undertaken with greater zest. The fear of being to a certainty
frozen
to death if they remained where they were, was a stimulus that
made
everyone put forth all his energies. Beds, furniture, cooking
utensils--
first the stores of the _Dobryna_, then the cargo of the
tartan--
all were carried down with the greatest alacrity, and the
diminished
weight combined with the downhill route to make the labor
proceed
with incredible briskness.
Although Professor Rosette yielded to the pressure of circumstances,
and
allowed himself to be conducted to the lower regions, nothing would
induce
him to allow his telescope to be carried underground;
and as it was
undeniable that it would certainly be of no service
deep down in the bowels
of the mountain, it was allowed to remain
undisturbed upon its tripod in the
great hall of Nina's Hive.
As for Isaac Hakkabut, his outcry was beyond description
lamentable.
Never, in the whole universe, had a merchant met with such
reverses;
never had such a pitiable series of losses befallen an unfortunate
man.
Regardless of the ridicule which his abject wretchedness excited,
he
howled on still, and kept up an unending wail; but meanwhile
he kept a keen
eye upon every article of his property, and amidst
universal laughter
insisted on having every item registered in an
inventory as it was
transferred to its appointed place of safety.
Servadac considerately allowed
the whole of the cargo to be deposited
in a hollow apart by itself, over
which the Jew was permitted to keep
a watch as vigilant as he pleased.
By the 10th the removal was accomplished. Rescued, at all
events,
from the exposure to a perilous temperature of 60 degrees below
zero,
the community was installed in its new home. The large cave
was
lighted by the _Dobryna's_ lamps, while several lanterns, suspended
at
intervals along the acclivity that led to their deserted quarters
above,
gave a weird picturesqueness to the scene, that might vie with
any
of the graphic descriptions of the "Arabian Nights' Entertainments."
"How do you like this, Nina?" said Ben Zoof.
"_Va bene!_" replied the child. "We are only living in the
cellars
instead of upon the ground floor."
"We will try and make ourselves comfortable," said the orderly.
"Oh yes, we will be happy here," rejoined the child; "it is nice and warm."
Although they were as careful as they could to conceal
their misgivings
from the rest, Servadac and his two friends
could not regard their present
situation without distrust.
When alone, they would frequently ask each other
what would become
of them all, if the volcanic heat should really be
subsiding,
or if some unexpected perturbation should retard the course
of
the comet, and compel them to an indefinitely prolonged residence
in
their grim abode. It was scarcely likely that the comet could
supply
the fuel of which ere long they would be in urgent need.
Who could expect to
find coal in the bowels of Gallia,--coal, which is
the residuum of ancient
forests mineralized by the lapse of ages?
Would not the lava-cinders exhumed
from the extinct volcano
be their last poor resource?
"Keep up your spirits, my friends," said Servadac; "we have plenty of
time
before us at present. Let us hope that as fresh difficulties
arise,
fresh ways of escape will open. Never despair!"
"True," said the count; "it is an old saying that 'Necessity is the
mother
of invention.' Besides, I should think it very unlikely that the
internal
heat will fail us now before the summer."
The lieutenant declared that he entertained the same hope.
As the reason
of his opinion he alleged that the combustion
of the eruptive matter was most
probably of quite recent origin,
because the comet before its collision with
the earth had
possessed no atmosphere, and that consequently no oxygen
could
have penetrated to its interior.
"Most likely you are right," replied the count; "and so far from
dreading
a failure of the internal heat, I am not quite sure that we may not
be exposed
to a more terrible calamity still?"
"What?" asked Servadac.
"The calamity of the eruption breaking out suddenly again,
and taking us
by surprise."
"Heavens!" cried the captain, "we will not think of that."
"The outbreak may happen again," said the lieutenant, calmly; "but it
will
be our fault, our own lack of vigilance, if we are taken by
surprise."
And so the conversation dropped.
The 15th of January dawned; and the comet was 220,000,000 leagues
from the
sun.
Gallia had reached its aphelion.
CHAPTER XIII
DREARY MONTHS
Henceforth, then, with a velocity ever increasing, Gallia
would
re-approach the sun.
Except the thirteen Englishmen who had been left at Gibraltar,
every
living creature had taken refuge in the dark abyss
of the volcano's
crater.
And with those Englishmen, how had it fared?
"Far better than with ourselves," was the sentiment that would
have been
universally accepted in Nina's Hive. And there was every
reason to
conjecture that so it was. The party at Gibraltar,
they all agreed,
would not, like themselves, have been compelled
to have recourse to a stream
of lava for their supply of heat;
they, no doubt, had had abundance of fuel
as well as food;
and in their solid casemate, with its substantial
walls,
they would find ample shelter from the rigor of the cold.
The time
would have been passed at least in comfort, and perhaps
in contentment; and
Colonel Murphy and Major Oliphant would have
had leisure more than sufficient
for solving the most abstruse
problems of the chess-board. All of them, too,
would be happy
in the confidence that when the time should come, England
would
have full meed of praise to award to the gallant soldiers
who had
adhered so well and so manfully to their post.
It did, indeed, more than once occur to the minds both of
Servadac and his
friends that, if their condition should become
one of extreme emergency, they
might, as a last resource,
betake themselves to Gibraltar, and there seek a
refuge;
but their former reception had not been of the kindest,
and they
were little disposed to renew an acquaintanceship
that was marked by so
little cordiality. Not in the least
that they would expect to meet with
any inhospitable rebuff.
Far from that; they knew well enough that
Englishmen,
whatever their faults, would be the last to abandon
their
fellow-creatures in the hour of distress. Nevertheless, except
the
necessity became far more urgent than it had hitherto proved,
they
resolved to endeavor to remain in their present quarters.
Up till this time
no casualties had diminished their original number,
but to undertake so long
a journey across that unsheltered
expanse of ice could scarcely fail to
result in the loss of some
of their party.
However great was the desire to find a retreat for every living thing
in
the deep hollow of the crater, it was found necessary to slaughter
almost all
the domestic animals before the removal of the community
from Nina's
Hive. To have stabled them all in the cavern below would
have been
quite impossible, whilst to have left them in the upper
galleries would only
have been to abandon them to a cruel death;
and since meat could be preserved
for an indefinite time in the original
store-places, now colder than ever,
the expedient of killing the animals
seemed to recommend itself as equally
prudent and humane.
Naturally the captain and Ben Zoof were most anxious that their
favorite
horses should be saved, and accordingly, by dint of the greatest
care,
all difficulties in the way were overcome, and Zephyr and
Galette
were conducted down the crater, where they were installed in a
large
hole and provided with forage, which was still abundant.
Birds, subsisting only on scraps thrown out to them did not cease
to
follow the population in its migration, and so numerous did they
become that
multitudes of them had repeatedly to be destroyed.
The general re-arrangement of the new residence was no easy business,
and
occupied so much time that the end of January arrived before
they could be
said to be fairly settled. And then began a life
of dreary
monotony. Then seemed to creep over everyone a kind
of moral torpor as
well as physical lassitude, which Servadac,
the count, and the lieutenant did
their best not only to combat
in themselves, but to counteract in the general
community.
They provided a variety of intellectual pursuits; they
instituted
debates in which everybody was encouraged to take part; they read
aloud,
and explained extracts from the elementary manuals of science,
or
from the books of adventurous travel which their library supplied;
and
Russians and Spaniards, day after day, might be seen gathered
round the large
table, giving their best attention to instruction
which should send them back
to Mother Earth less ignorant than they
had left her.
Selfish and morose, Hakkabut could never be induced to be present
at these
social gatherings. He was far too much occupied in his own
appropriated
corner, either in conning his accounts, or in counting
his money.
Altogether, with what he had before, he now possessed
the round sum of
150,000 francs, half of which was in sterling gold;
but nothing could give
him any satisfaction while he knew that the days
were passing, and that he
was denied the opportunity of putting out his
capital in advantageous
investments, or securing a proper interest.
Neither did Palmyrin Rosette find leisure to take any share in
the mutual
intercourse. His occupation was far too absorbing for him
to suffer it
to be interrupted, and to him, living as he did perpetually
in a world of
figures, the winter days seemed neither long nor wearisome.
Having
ascertained every possible particular about his comet,
he was now devoting
himself with equal ardor to the analysis of all
the properties of the
satellite Nerina, to which he appeared to assert
the same claim of
proprietorship.
In order to investigate Nerina it was indispensable that he should
make
several actual observations at various points of the orbit;
and for this
purpose he repeatedly made his way up to the grotto above,
where, in spite of
the extreme severity of the cold, he would
persevere in the use of his
telescope till he was all but paralyzed.
But what he felt more than anything
was the want of some retired apartment,
where he could pursue his studies
without hindrance or intrusion.
It was about the beginning of February, when the professor brought
his
complaint to Captain Servadac, and begged him to assign
him a chamber, no
matter how small, in which he should be free
to carry on his task in silence
and without molestation.
So readily did Servadac promise to do everything in
his power
to provide him with the accommodation for which he asked,
that
the professor was put into such a manifest good temper
that the captain
ventured to speak upon the matter that was ever
uppermost in his mind.
"I do not mean," he began timidly, "to cast the least imputation
of
inaccuracy upon any of your calculations, but would you
allow me, my dear
professor, to suggest that you should revise
your estimate of the duration of
Gallia's period of revolution.
It is so important, you know, so all
important; the difference
of one half minute, you know, would so certainly
mar the expectation
of reunion with the earth--"
And seeing a cloud gathering on Rosette's face, he added:
"I am sure Lieutenant Procope would be only too happy to render
you any
assistance in the revision."
"Sir," said the professor, bridling up, "I want no assistant;
my
calculations want no revision. I never make an error.
I have made my
reckoning as far as Gallia is concerned.
I am now making a like estimate of
the elements of Nerina."
Conscious how impolitic it would be to press this matter further, the
captain
casually remarked that he should have supposed that all the
elements
of Nerina had been calculated long since by astronomers on the
earth.
It was about as unlucky a speech as he could possibly have
made.
The professor glared at him fiercely.
"Astounding, sir!" he exclaimed. "Yes! Nerina was a planet
then;
everything that appertained to the planet was determined;
but Nerina
is a moon now. And do you not think, sir, that we have
a right to know
as much about our moon as those _terrestrials_"--
and he curled his lip as he
spoke with a contemptuous
emphasis--"know of theirs?"
"I beg pardon," said the corrected captain.
"Well then, never mind," replied the professor, quickly appeased;
"only
will you have the goodness to get me a proper place for study?"
"I will, as I promised, do all I can," answered Servadac.
"Very good," said the professor. "No immediate hurry;
an hour hence
will do."
But in spite of this condescension on the part of the man of science,
some
hours had to elapse before any place of retreat could be discovered
likely to
suit his requirements; but at length a little nook was found
in the side of
the cavern just large enough to hold an armchair and a table,
and in this the
astronomer was soon ensconced to his entire satisfaction.
Buried thus, nearly 900 feet below ground, the Gallians
ought to have had
unbounded mental energy to furnish an
adequate reaction to the depressing
monotony of their existence;
but many days would often elapse without any one
of them ascending
to the surface of the soil, and had it not been for the
necessity
of obtaining fresh water, it seemed almost probable that
there
would never have been an effort made to leave the cavern at all.
A few excursions, it is true, were made in the downward direction.
The
three leaders, with Ben Zoof, made their way to the lower
depths of the
crater, not with the design of making any further
examination as to the
nature of the rock--for although it
might be true enough that it contained
thirty per cent.
of gold, it was as valueless to them as granite--but
with
the intention of ascertaining whether the subterranean fire
still
retained its activity. Satisfied upon this point,
they came to the
conclusion that the eruption which had so suddenly
ceased in one spot had
certainly broken out in another.
February, March, April, May, passed wearily by; but day
succeeded to day
with such gloomy sameness that it was little
wonder that no notice was taken
of the lapse of time.
The people seemed rather to vegetate than to
live,
and their want of vigor became at times almost alarming.
The
readings around the long table ceased to be attractive,
and the debates,
sustained by few, became utterly wanting
in animation. The Spaniards
could hardly be roused to quit
their beds, and seemed to have scarcely energy
enough to eat.
The Russians, constitutionally of more enduring
temperament,
did not give way to the same extent, but the long and
drear
confinement was beginning to tell upon them all.
Servadac, the count, and the
lieutenant all knew well enough
that it was the want of air and exercise that
was the cause
of much of this mental depression; but what could they
do?
The most serious remonstrances on their part were entirely in vain.
In
fact, they themselves occasionally fell a prey to the same
lassitude both of
body and mind. Long fits of drowsiness,
combined with an utter aversion
to food, would come over them.
It almost seemed as if their entire nature had
become degenerate,
and that, like tortoises, they could sleep and fast
till
the return of summer.
Strange to say, little Nina bore her hardships more bravely than
any of
them. Flitting about, coaxing one to eat, another to drink,
rousing
Pablo as often as he seemed yielding to the common languor,
the child became
the life of the party. Her merry prattle enlivened
the gloom of the
grim cavern like the sweet notes of a bird;
her gay Italian songs broke the
monotony of the depressing silence;
and almost unconscious as the
half-dormant population of Gallia
were of her influence, they still would
have missed her bright
presence sorely. The months still glided on;
how, it seemed
impossible for the inhabitants of the living tomb to
say.
There was a dead level of dullness.
At the beginning of June the general torpor appeared slightly to relax
its
hold upon its victims. This partial revival was probably due
to the
somewhat increased influence of the sun, still far, far away.
During the
first half of the Gallian year, Lieutenant Procope had
taken careful note of
Rosette's monthly announcements of the comet's
progress, and he was able now,
without reference to the professor,
to calculate the rate of advance on its
way back towards the sun.
He found that Gallia had re-crossed the orbit of
Jupiter, but was
still at the enormous distance of 197,000,000 leagues from
the sun,
and he reckoned that in about four months it would have
entered
the zone of the telescopic planets.
Gradually, but uninterruptedly, life and spirits continued to revive,
and
by the end of the month Servadac and his little colony had
regained most of
their ordinary physical and mental energies.
Ben Zoof, in particular, roused
himself with redoubled vigor,
like a giant refreshed from his slumbers.
The visits, consequently,
to the long-neglected galleries of Nina's Hive
became more
and more frequent.
One day an excursion was made to the shore. It was still bitterly
cold,
but the atmosphere had lost nothing of its former stillness, and not a
cloud
was visible from horizon to zenith. The old footmarks were all as
distinct
as on the day in which they had been imprinted, and the only
portion
of the shore where any change was apparent was in the little
creek.
Here the elevation of the ice had gone on increasing, until the
schooner
and the tartan had been uplifted to a height of 150 feet, not only
rendering
them quite inaccessible, but exposing them to all but certain
destruction
in the event of a thaw.
Isaac Hakkabut, immovable from the personal oversight of his property
in
the cavern, had not accompanied the party, and consequently
was in blissful
ignorance of the fate that threatened his vessel.
"A good thing the old
fellow wasn't there to see," observed Ben Zoof;
"he would have screamed like
a peacock. What a misfortune it is,"
he added, speaking to himself, "to
have a peacock's voice,
without its plumage!"
During the months of July and August, Gallia advanced 164,000,000
leagues
along her orbit. At night the cold was still intense,
but in the
daytime the sun, here full upon the equator,
caused an appreciable difference
of 20 degrees in the temperature.
Like birds, the population spent whole days
exposed to its
grateful warmth, rarely returning till nightfall to the
shade
of their gloomy home.
This spring-time, if such it may be called, had a most
enlivening
influence upon all. Hope and courage revived as day by
day
the sun's disc expanded in the heavens, and every evening
the earth
assumed a greater magnitude amongst the fixed stars.
It was distant yet, but
the goal was cheeringly in view.
"I can't believe that yonder little speck of light contains my mountain
of
Montmartre," said Ben Zoof, one night, after he had been gazing long
and
steadily at the far-off world.
"You will, I hope, some day find out that it does," answered his master.
"I hope so," said the orderly, without moving his eye from
the distant
sphere. After meditating a while, he spoke again.
"I suppose Professor
Rosette couldn't make his comet go
straight back, could he?"
"Hush!" cried Servadac.
Ben Zoof understood the correction.
"No," continued the captain; "it is not for man to disturb the order
of
the universe. That belongs to a Higher Power than ours!"
CHAPTER XIV
THE PROFESSOR PERPLEXED
Another month passed away, and it was now September, but it was
still
impossible to leave the warmth of the subterranean retreat
for the more airy
and commodious quarters of the Hive, where "the bees"
would certainly have
been frozen to death in their cells.
It was altogether quite as much a matter
of congratulation as of
regret that the volcano showed no symptoms of
resuming its activity;
for although a return of the eruption might have
rendered their
former resort again habitable, any sudden outbreak would have
been
disastrous to them where they were, the crater being the sole
outlet
by which the burning lava could escape.
"A wretched time we have had for the last seven months,"
said the orderly
one day to his master; "but what a comfort
little Nina has been to us
all!"
"Yes, indeed," replied Servadac; "she is a charming little creature.
I
hardly know how we should have got on without her."
"What is to become of her when we arrive back at the earth?"
"Not much fear, Ben Zoof, but that she will be well taken care of.
Perhaps
you and I had better adopt her."
"Ay, yes," assented the orderly. "You can be her father,
and I can
be her mother."
Servadac laughed. "Then you and I shall be man and wife."
"We have been as good as that for a long time," observed Ben Zoof, gravely.
By the beginning of October, the temperature had so far moderated that
it
could scarcely be said to be intolerable. The comet's distance
was
scarcely three times as great from the sun as the earth from the
sun,
so that the thermometer rarely sunk beyond 35 degrees below zero.
The
whole party began to make almost daily visits to the Hive, and
frequently
proceeded to the shore, where they resumed their skating
exercise,
rejoicing in their recovered freedom like prisoners liberated from
a dungeon.
Whilst the rest were enjoying their recreation, Servadac and the
count
would hold long conversations with Lieutenant Procope about their
present
position and future prospects, discussing all manner of
speculations
as to the results of the anticipated collision with the
earth,
and wondering whether any measures could be devised for
mitigating
the violence of a shock which might be terrible in its
consequences,
even if it did not entail a total annihilation of
themselves.
There was no visitor to the Hive more regular than Rosette. He had
already
directed his telescope to be moved back to his former observatory,
where,
as much as the cold would permit him, he persisted in making his
all-absorbing
studies of the heavens.
The result of these studies no one ventured to inquire;
but it became
generally noticed that something was very seriously
disturbing the
professor's equanimity. Not only would he be seen
toiling more
frequently up the arduous way that lay between his nook
below and his
telescope above, but he would be heard muttering
in an angry tone that
indicated considerable agitation.
One day, as he was hurrying down to his study, he met Ben Zoof,
who,
secretly entertaining a feeling of delight at the professor's
manifest
discomfiture, made some casual remark about things not being very
straight.
The way in which his advance was received the good orderly never
divulged,
but henceforward he maintained the firm conviction that there was
something
very much amiss up in the sky.
To Servadac and his friends this continual disquietude and ill-humor
on
the part of the professor occasioned no little anxiety.
From what, they
asked, could his dissatisfaction arise?
They could only conjecture that he
had discovered some flaw
in his reckonings; and if this were so, might there
not be reason
to apprehend that their anticipations of coming into
contact
with the earth, at the settled time, might all be falsified?
Day followed day, and still there was no cessation of the
professor's
discomposure. He was the most miserable of mortals. If really
his
calculations and his observations were at variance, this, in a man
of his
irritable temperament, would account for his perpetual perturbation.
But he
entered into no explanation; he only climbed up to his telescope,
looking
haggard and distressed, and when compelled by the frost to retire,
he would
make his way back to his study more furious than ever.
At times he was heard
giving vent to his vexation. "Confound it!
what does it mean? what is
she doing? All behind! Is Newton a fool?
Is the law of universal
gravitation the law of universal nonsense?"
And the little man would seize
his head in both his hands, and tear
away at the scanty locks which he could
ill afford to lose.
Enough was overheard to confirm the suspicion that there was
some
irreconcilable discrepancy between the results of his computation
and
what he had actually observed; and yet, if he had been called
upon to say, he
would have sooner insisted that there was derangement
in the laws of
celestial mechanism, than have owned there was
the least probability of error
in any of his own calculations.
Assuredly, if the poor professor had had any
flesh to lose he would
have withered away to a shadow.
But this state of things was before long to come to an end.
On the 12th,
Ben Zoof, who was hanging about outside the great
hall of the cavern, heard
the professor inside utter a loud cry.
Hurrying in to ascertain the cause, he
found Rosette in a state
of perfect frenzy, in which ecstasy and rage seemed
to be struggling
for the predominance.
"Eureka! Eureka!" yelled the excited astronomer.
"What, in the name of peace, do you mean?" bawled Ben Zoof,
in
open-mouthed amazement.
"Eureka!" again shrieked the little man.
"How? What? Where?" roared the bewildered orderly.
"Eureka! I say," repeated Rosette; "and if you don't understand
me,
you may go to the devil!"
Without availing himself of this polite invitation, Ben Zoof betook
himself
to his master. "Something has happened to the professor," he
said;
"he is rushing about like a madman, screeching and yelling
'Eureka!'"
"Eureka?" exclaimed Servadac. "That means he has made a
discovery;"
and, full of anxiety, he hurried off to meet the professor.
But, however great was his desire to ascertain what this
discovery
implied, his curiosity was not yet destined to be gratified.
The
professor kept muttering in incoherent phrases: "Rascal! he shall
pay
for it yet. I will be even with him! Cheat! Thrown me
out!"
But he did not vouchsafe any reply to Servadac's inquiries,
and
withdrew to his study.
From that day Rosette, for some reason at present incomprehensible,
quite
altered his behavior to Isaac Hakkabut, a man for whom he had
always hitherto
evinced the greatest repugnance and contempt.
All at once he began to show a
remarkable interest in the Jew and
his affairs, paying several visits to the
dark little storehouse,
making inquiries as to the state of business and
expressing some
solicitude about the state of the exchequer.
The wily Jew was taken somewhat by surprise, but came to an
immediate
conclusion that the professor was contemplating borrowing some
money;
he was consequently very cautious in all his replies.
It was not Hakkabut's habit ever to advance a loan except at an
extravagant
rate of interest, or without demanding far more than an adequate
security.
Count Timascheff, a Russian nobleman, was evidently rich;
to him
perhaps, for a proper consideration, a loan might be made:
Captain Servadac
was a Gascon, and Gascons are proverbially poor;
it would never do to lend
any money to him; but here was a professor,
a mere man of science, with
circumscribed means; did _he_ expect to borrow?
Certainly Isaac would as soon
think of flying, as of lending money to him.
Such were the thoughts that made
him receive all Rosette's approaches
with a careful reservation.
It was not long, however, before Hakkabut was to be called upon
to apply
his money to a purpose for which he had not reckoned.
In his eagerness to
effect sales, he had parted with all the
alimentary articles in his cargo
without having the precautionary
prudence to reserve enough for his own
consumption.
Amongst other things that failed him was his stock of
coffee,
and as coffee was a beverage without which he deemed it
impossible
to exist, he found himself in considerable perplexity.
He pondered the matter over for a long time, and ultimately
persuaded
himself that, after all, the stores were the common property of
all,
and that he had as much right to a share as anyone else.
Accordingly, he made
his way to Ben Zoof, and, in the most amiable tone he
could assume,
begged as a favor that he would let him have a pound of
coffee.
The orderly shook his head dubiously.
"A pound of coffee, old Nathan? I can't say."
"Why not? You have some?" said Isaac.
"Oh yes! plenty--a hundred kilogrammes."
"Then let me have one pound. I shall be grateful."
"Hang your gratitude!"
"Only one pound! You would not refuse anybody else."
"That's just the very point, old Samuel; if you were anybody else,
I
should know very well what to do. I must refer the matter
to his
Excellency."
"Oh, his Excellency will do me justice."
"Perhaps you will find his justice rather too much for you."
And with this
consoling remark, the orderly went to seek his master.
Rosette meanwhile had been listening to the conversation, and
secretly
rejoicing that an opportunity for which he had been watching had
arrived.
"What's the matter, Master Isaac? Have you parted with all
your coffee?"
he asked, in a sympathizing voice, when Ben Zoof was gone.
"Ah! yes, indeed," groaned Hakkabut, "and now I require some for my own
use.
In my little black hole I cannot live without my coffee."
"Of course you cannot," agreed the professor.
"And don't you think the governor ought to let me have it?"
"No doubt."
"Oh, I must have coffee," said the Jew again.
"Certainly," the professor assented. "Coffee is nutritious;
it warms
the blood. How much do you want?"
"A pound. A pound will last me for a long time."
"And who will weigh it for you?" asked Rosette, scarcely able
to conceal
the eagerness that prompted the question.
"Why, they will weigh it with my steelyard, of course.
There is no other
balance here." And as the Jew spoke,
the professor fancied he could
detect the faintest of sighs.
"Good, Master Isaac; all the better for you! You will get your
seven
pounds instead of one!"
"Yes; well, seven, or thereabouts--thereabouts," stammered the Jew
with
considerable hesitation.
Rosette scanned his countenance narrowly, and was about to
probe him with
further questions, when Ben Zoof returned.
"And what does his Excellency
say?" inquired Hakkabut.
"Why, Nehemiah, he says he shan't give you any."
"Merciful heavens!" began the Jew.
"He says he doesn't mind selling you a little."
"But, by the holy city, why does he make me pay for what anybody
else
could have for nothing?"
"As I told you before, you are not anybody else; so, come along.
You can
afford to buy what you want. We should like to see the color
of your
money."
"Merciful heavens!" the old man whined once more.
"Now, none of that! Yes or no? If you are going to buy, say so at
once;
if not, I shall shut up shop."
Hakkabut knew well enough that the orderly was not a man to be trifled
with,
and said, in a tremulous voice, "Yes, I will buy."
The professor, who had been looking on with much interest,
betrayed
manifest symptoms of satisfaction.
"How much do you want? What will you charge for it?"
asked Isaac,
mournfully, putting his hand into his pocket
and chinking his money.
"Oh, we will deal gently with you. We will not make any profit.
You
shall have it for the same price that we paid for it.
Ten francs a pound, you
know."
The Jew hesitated.
"Come now, what is the use of your hesitating? Your gold will have no
value
when you go back to the world."
"What do you mean?" asked Hakkabut, startled.
"You will find out some day," answered Ben Zoof, significantly.
Hakkabut drew out a small piece of gold from his pocket, took it
close
under the lamp, rolled it over in his hand, and pressed it to his
lips.
"Shall you weigh me the coffee with my steelyard?" he asked, in a
quavering
voice that confirmed the professor's suspicions.
"There is nothing else to weigh it with; you know that well enough,
old
Shechem," said Ben Zoof. The steelyard was then produced;
a tray was
suspended to the hook, and upon this coffee was
thrown until the needle
registered the weight of one pound.
Of course, it took seven pounds of coffee
to do this.
"There you are! There's your coffee, man!" Ben Zoof said.
"Are you sure?" inquired Hakkabut, peering down close to the dial.
"Are
you quite sure that the needle touches the point?"
"Yes; look and see."
"Give it a little push, please."
"Why?"
"Because--because--"
"Well, because of what?" cried the orderly, impatiently.
"Because I think, perhaps--I am not quite sure--perhaps the steelyard
is
not quite correct."
The words were not uttered before the professor, fierce as a tiger,
had
rushed at the Jew, had seized him by the throat, and was shaking
him till he
was black in the face.
"Help! help!" screamed Hakkabut. "I shall be strangled."
"Rascal! consummate rascal! thief! villain!" the professor reiterated,
and
continued to shake the Jew furiously.
Ben Zoof looked on and laughed, making no attempt to interfere;
he had no
sympathy with either of the two.
The sound of the scuffling, however, drew the attention
of Servadac, who,
followed by his companions, hastened to the scene.
The combatants were soon
parted. "What is the meaning of all this?"
demanded the captain.
As soon as the professor had recovered his breath, exhausted by
his
exertions, he said, "The old reprobate, the rascal has cheated us!
His
steelyard is wrong! He is a thief!"
Captain Servadac looked sternly at Hakkabut.
"How is this, Hakkabut? Is this a fact?"
"No, no--yes--no, your Excellency, only--"
"He is a cheat, a thief!" roared the excited astronomer.
"His weights
deceive!"
"Stop, stop!" interposed Servadac; "let us hear.
Tell me, Hakkabut--"
"The steelyard lies! It cheats! it lies!" roared the irrepressible Rosette.
"Tell me, Hakkabut, I say," repeated Servadac.
The Jew only kept on stammering, "Yes--no--I don't know."
But heedless of any interruption, the professor continued, "False
weights!
That confounded steelyard! It gave a false result! The
mass was wrong!
The observations contradicted the calculations; they were
wrong!
She was out of place! Yes, out of place entirely."
"What!" cried Servadac and Procope in a breath, "out of place?"
"Yes, completely," said the professor.
"Gallia out of place?" repeated Servadac, agitated with alarm.
"I did not say Gallia," replied Rosette, stamping his foot impetuously;
"I
said Nerina."
"Oh, Nerina," answered Servadac. "But what of Gallia?"
he inquired,
still nervously.
"Gallia, of course, is on her way to the earth. I told you so.
But
that Jew is a rascal!"
CHAPTER XV
A JOURNEY AND A DISAPPOINTMENT
It was as the professor had said. From the day that
Isaac
Hakkabut had entered upon his mercantile career,
his dealings had all been
carried on by a system of false weight.
That deceitful steelyard had been the
mainspring of his fortune.
But when it had become his lot to be the purchaser
instead
of the vendor, his spirit had groaned within him at
being
compelled to reap the fruits of his own dishonesty.
No one who had
studied his character could be much surprised
at the confession that was
extorted from him, that for every
supposed kilogramme that he had ever sold
the true weight
was only 750 grammes, or just five and twenty per
cent.
less than it ought to have been.
The professor, however, had ascertained all that he wanted to know.
By
estimating his comet at a third as much again as its proper weight,
he had
found that his calculations were always at variance with the
observed
situation of the satellite, which was immediately influenced by the
mass
of its primary.
But now, besides enjoying the satisfaction of having punished
old
Hakkabut, Rosette was able to recommence his calculations
with reference to
the elements of Nerina upon a correct basis,
a task to which he devoted
himself with redoubled energy.
It will be easily imagined that Isaac Hakkabut, thus caught in his own
trap,
was jeered most unmercifully by those whom he had attempted to
make
his dupes. Ben Zoof, in particular, was never wearied of telling
him how on
his return to the world he would be prosecuted for using false
weights,
and would certainly become acquainted with the inside of a
prison.
Thus badgered, he secluded himself more than ever in his dismal
hole,
never venturing, except when absolutely obliged, to face the other
members
of the community.
On the 7th of October the comet re-entered the zone of the telescopic
planets,
one of which had been captured as a satellite, and the origin of the
whole
of which is most probably correctly attributed to the disintegration of
some
large planet that formerly revolved between the orbits of Mars and
Jupiter.
By the beginning of the following month half of this zone had been
traversed,
and only two months remained before the collision with the earth
was to
be expected. The temperature was now rarely below 12 degrees
below zero,
but that was far too cold to permit the slightest symptoms of a
thaw.
The surface of the sea remained as frozen as ever, and the two
vessels,
high up on their icy pedestals, remained unaltered in their critical
position.
It was about this time that the question began to be mooted whether
it
would not be right to reopen some communication with the Englishmen
at
Gibraltar. Not that any doubt was entertained as to their having
been
able successfully to cope with the rigors of the winter;
but Captain
Servadac, in a way that did honor to his generosity,
represented that,
however uncourteous might have been their
former behavior, it was at least
due to them that they should
be informed of the true condition of things,
which they had had
no opportunity of learning; and, moreover, that they
should
be invited to co-operate with the population of Nina's Hive,
in the
event of any measures being suggested by which the shock
of the approaching
collision could be mitigated.
The count and the lieutenant both heartily concurred in
Servadac's
sentiments of humanity and prudence, and all agreed that if the
intercourse
were to be opened at all, no time could be so suitable as the
present,
while the surface of the sea presented a smooth and solid
footing.
After a thaw should set in, neither the yacht nor the tartan could
be reckoned
on for service, and it would be inexpedient to make use of the
steam launch,
for which only a few tons of coal had been reserved, just
sufficient
to convey them to Gourbi Island when the occasion should arise;
whilst as
to the yawl, which, transformed into a sledge, had performed so
successful
a trip to Formentera, the absence of wind would make that quite
unavailable.
It was true that with the return of summer temperature, there
would be certain
to be a derangement in the atmosphere of Gallia, which would
result in wind,
but for the present the air was altogether too still for the
yawl to have
any prospects of making its way to Gibraltar.
The only question remaining was as to the possibility of going on
foot.
The distance was somewhere about 240 miles. Captain Servadac
declared
himself quite equal to the undertaking. To skate sixty or
seventy miles
a day would be nothing, he said, to a practical skater like
himself.
The whole journey there and back might be performed in eight
days.
Provided with a compass, a sufficient supply of cold meat, and a spirit
lamp,
by which he might boil his coffee, he was perfectly sure he
should,
without the least difficulty, accomplish an enterprise that
chimed
in so exactly with his adventurous spirit.
Equally urgent were both the count and the lieutenant to be allowed
to
accompany him; nay, they even offered to go instead; but Servadac,
expressing
himself as most grateful for their consideration,
declined their offer, and
avowed his resolution of taking no other
companion than his own orderly.
Highly delighted at his master's decision, Ben Zoof expressed
his
satisfaction at the prospect of "stretching his legs a bit,"
declaring that
nothing could induce him to permit the captain to go alone.
There was no
delay. The departure was fixed for the following morning,
the 2nd of
November.
Although it is not to be questioned that a genuine desire of doing an
act
of kindness to his fellow-creatures was a leading motive of
Servadac's
proposed visit to Gibraltar, it must be owned that another
idea,
confided to nobody, least of all to Count Timascheff, had been
conceived
in the brain of the worthy Gascon. Ben Zoof had an inkling
that his
master was "up to some other little game," when, just before
starting,
he asked him privately whether there was a French tricolor among
the stores.
"I believe so," said the orderly.
"Then don't say a word to anyone, but fasten it up tight in your knapsack."
Ben Zoof found the flag, and folded it up as he was directed.
Before
proceeding to explain this somewhat enig-matical conduct
of Servadac, it is
necessary to refer to a certain physiological fact,
coincident but
unconnected with celestial phenomena, originating entirely
in the frailty of
human nature. The nearer that Gallia approached
the earth, the more a
sort of reserve began to spring up between
the captain and Count
Timascheff. Though they could not be said
to be conscious of it, the
remembrance of their former rivalry,
so completely buried in oblivion for the
last year and ten months,
was insensibly recovering its hold upon their
minds, and the question
was all but coming to the surface as to what would
happen if, on their
return to earth, the handsome Madame de L---- should
still be free.
From companions in peril, would they not again be avowed
rivals?
Conceal it as they would, a coolness was undeniably stealing
over
an intimacy which, though it could never be called affectionate,
had
been uniformly friendly and courteous.
Under these circumstances, it was not surprising that Hector
Servadac
should not have confided to the count a project which, wild as it
was,
could scarcely have failed to widen the unacknowledged breach that
was
opening in their friendship.
The project was the annexation of Ceuta to the French dominion.
The
Englishmen, rightly enough, had continued to occupy
the fragment of
Gibraltar, and their claim was indisputable.
But the island of Ceuta, which
before the shock had commanded
the opposite side of the strait, and had been
occupied
by Spaniards, had since been abandoned, and was therefore
free to
the first occupant who should lay claim to it.
To plant the tricolor upon it,
in the name of France, was now
the cherished wish of Servadac's heart.
"Who knows," he said to himself, "whether Ceuta, on its return to
earth,
may not occupy a grand and commanding situation? What a proud
thing it
would be to have secured its possession to France!"
Next morning, as soon as they had taken their brief farewell
of their
friends, and were fairly out of sight of the shore,
Servadac imparted his
design to Ben Zoof, who entered into the project
with the greatest zest, and
expressed himself delighted, not only
at the prospect of adding to the
dominions of his beloved country,
but of stealing a march upon England.
Both travelers were warmly clad, the orderly's knapsack
containing all the
necessary provisions. The journey was
accomplished without special
incident; halts were made at
regular intervals, for the purpose of taking
food and rest.
The temperature by night as well as by day was quite
endurable,
and on the fourth afternoon after starting, thanks to
the
straight course which their compass enabled them to maintain,
the
adventurers found themselves within a few miles of Ceuta.
As soon as Ben Zoof caught sight of the rock on the western horizon,
he
was all excitement. Just as if he were in a regiment going into
action,
he talked wildly about "columns" and "squares" and "charges."
The captain,
although less demonstrative, was hardly less eager to reach the
rock.
They both pushed forward with all possible speed till they were
within
a mile and a half of the shore, when Ben Zoof, who had a very keen
vision,
stopped suddenly, and said that he was sure he could see something
moving
on the top of the island.
"Never mind, let us hasten on," said Servadac. A few minutes
carried
them over another mile, when Ben Zoof stopped again.
"What is it, Ben Zoof?" asked the captain.
"It looks to me like a man on a rock, waving his arms in the air,"
said
the orderly.
"Plague on it!" muttered Servadac; "I hope we are not too late."
Again
they went on; but soon Ben Zoof stopped for the third time.
"It is a semaphore, sir; I see it quite distinctly."
And he was not
mistaken; it had been a telegraph in motion
that had caught his eye.
"Plague on it!" repeated the captain.
"Too late, sir, do you think?" said Ben Zoof.
"Yes, Ben Zoof; if that's a telegraph--and there is no doubt of
it--
somebody has been before us and erected it; and, moreover, if it is
moving,
there must be somebody working it now."
He was keenly disappointed. Looking towards the north, he
could
distinguish Gibraltar faintly visible in the extreme distance,
and
upon the summit of the rock both Ben Zoof and himself fancied
they could make
out another semaphore, giving signals, no doubt,
in response to the one
here.
"Yes, it is only too clear; they have already occupied it,
and established
their communications," said Servadac.
"And what are we to do, then?" asked Ben Zoof.
"We must pocket our chagrin, and put as good a face on the matter as we
can,"
replied the captain.
"But perhaps there are only four or five Englishmen to protect the
place,"
said Ben Zoof, as if meditating an assault.
"No, no, Ben Zoof," answered Servadac; "we must do nothing rash.
We have
had our warning, and, unless our representations can induce
them to yield
their position, we must resign our hope."
Thus discomfited, they had reached the foot of the rock,
when all at once,
like a "Jack-in-the-box," a sentinel started
up before them with the
challenge:
"Who goes there?"
"Friends. Vive la France!" cried the captain.
"Hurrah for England!" replied the soldier.
By this time four other men had made their appearance from the upper
part
of the rock.
"What do you want?" asked one of them, whom Servadac remembered
to have
seen before at Gibraltar.
"Can I speak to your commanding officer?" Servadac inquired.
"Which?" said the man. "The officer in command of Ceuta?"
"Yes, if there is one."
"I will acquaint him with your arrival," answered the Englishman,
and
disappeared.
In a few minutes the commanding officer, attired in full uniform,
was seen
descending to the shore. It was Major Oliphant himself.
Servadac could no longer entertain a doubt that the Englishmen had
forestalled
him in the occupation of Ceuta. Provisions and fuel had
evidently been
conveyed thither in the boat from Gibraltar before the sea had
frozen,
and a solid casemate, hollowed in the rock, had afforded Major
Oliphant
and his contingent ample protection from the rigor of the
winter.
The ascending smoke that rose above the rock was sufficient
evidence
that good fires were still kept up; the soldiers appeared to have
thriven
well on what, no doubt, had been a generous diet, and the major
himself,
although he would scarcely have been willing to allow it, was
slightly
stouter than before.
Being only about twelve miles distant from Gibraltar, the little
garrison
at Ceuta had felt itself by no means isolated in its position;
but by
frequent excursions across the frozen strait, and by the constant
use of the
telegraph, had kept up their communication with their
fellow-countrymen on
the other island. Colonel Murphy and the major
had not even been forced
to forego the pleasures of the chessboard.
The game that had been interrupted
by Captain Servadac's former visit
was not yet concluded; but, like the two
American clubs that played
their celebrated game in 1846 between Washington
and Baltimore,
the two gallant officers made use of the semaphore to
communicate
their well-digested moves.
The major stood waiting for his visitor to speak.
"Major Oliphant, I believe?" said Servadac, with a courteous bow.
"Yes, sir, Major Oliphant, officer in command of the garrison
at Ceuta,"
was the Englishman's reply. "And to whom," he added,
"may I have the
honor of speaking?"
"To Captain Servadac, the governor general of Gallia."
"Indeed!" said the major, with a supercilious look.
"Allow me to express my surprise," resumed the captain, "at seeing
you
installed as commanding officer upon what I have always understood
to
be Spanish soil. May I demand your claim to your position?"
"My claim is that of first occupant."
"But do you not think that the party of Spaniards now resident with me
may
at some future time assert a prior right to the proprietorship?"
"I think not, Captain Servadac."
"But why not?" persisted the captain.
"Because these very Spaniards have, by formal contract, made over
Ceuta,
in its integrity, to the British government."
Servadac uttered an exclamation of surprise.
"And as the price of that important cession," continued Major
Oliphant,
"they have received a fair equivalent in British gold."
"Ah!" cried Ben Zoof, "that accounts for that fellow Negrete and his
people
having such a lot of money."
Servadac was silent. It had become clear to his mind what had
been
the object of that secret visit to Ceuta which he had heard
of as being made
by the two English officers. The arguments
that he had intended to use
had completely fallen through;
all that he had now to do was carefully to
prevent any suspicion
of his disappointed project.
"May I be allowed to ask, Captain Servadac, to what I am indebted
for the
honor of this visit?" asked Major Oliphant presently.
"I have come, Major Oliphant, in the hope of doing you and your
companions
a service," replied Servadac, rousing himself from his
reverie.
"Ah, indeed!" replied the major, as though he felt himself
quite
independent of all services from exterior sources.
"I thought, major, that it was not unlikely you were in ignorance
of the
fact that both Ceuta and Gibraltar have been traversing
the solar regions on
the surface of a comet."
The major smiled incredulously; but Servadac, nothing daunted,
went on to
detail the results of the collision between the comet
and the earth, adding
that, as there was the almost immediate
prospect of another concussion, it
had occurred to him that it
might be advisable for the whole population of
Gallia to unite
in taking precautionary measures for the common welfare.
"In fact, Major Oliphant," he said in conclusion, "I am here
to inquire
whether you and your friends would be disposed to join
us in our present
quarters."
"I am obliged to you, Captain Servadac," answered the major stiffly;
"but
we have not the slightest intention of abandoning our post.
We have received
no government orders to that effect; indeed, we have
received no orders at
all. Our own dispatch to the First Lord
of the Admiralty still awaits
the mail."
"But allow me to repeat," insisted Servadac, "that we are no longer
on the
earth, although we expect to come in contact with it again
in about eight
weeks."
"I have no doubt," the major answered, "that England will make every
effort
to reclaim us."
Servadac felt perplexed. It was quite evident that Major Oliphant had
not
been convinced of the truth of one syllable of what he had been
saying.
"Then I am to understand that you are determined to retain
your two
garrisons here and at Gibraltar?" asked Servadac,
with one last effort at
persuasion.
"Certainly; these two posts command the entrance of the Mediterranean."
"But supposing there is no longer any Mediterranean?"
retorted the
captain, growing impatient.
"Oh, England will always take care of that," was Major Oliphant's cool
reply.
"But excuse me," he added presently; "I see that Colonel Murphy has
just
telegraphed his next move. Allow me to wish you
good-afternoon."
And without further parley, followed by his soldiers, he retired
into the
casemate, leaving Captain Servadac gnawing his mustache
with mingled rage and
mortification.
"A fine piece of business we have made of this!" said Ben Zoof,
when he
found himself alone with his master.
"We will make our way back at once," replied Captain Servadac.
"Yes, the sooner the better, with our tails between our legs,"
rejoined
the orderly, who this time felt no inclination
to start off to the march of
the Algerian zephyrs.
And so the French tricolor returned as it had set
out--
in Ben Zoof's knapsack.
On the eighth evening after starting, the travelers again set foot
on the
volcanic promontory just in time to witness a great commotion.
Palmyrin Rosette was in a furious rage. He had completed all his
calculations
about Nerina, but that perfidious satellite had totally
disappeared.
The astronomer was frantic at the loss of his moon.
Captured probably by some
larger body, it was revolving in its proper zone of
the minor planets.
CHAPTER XVI
A BOLD PROPOSITION
On his return Servadac communicated to the count the result of his
expedition,
and, though perfectly silent on the subject of his personal
project,
did not conceal the fact that the Spaniards, without the smallest
right,
had sold Ceuta to the English.
Having refused to quit their post, the Englishmen had virtually
excluded
themselves from any further consideration; they had had their
warning,
and must now take the consequences of their own incredulity.
Although it had proved that not a single creature either at
Gourbi Island,
Gibraltar, Ceuta, Madalena, or Formentera had
received any injury whatever at
the time of the first concussion,
there was nothing in the least to make it
certain
that a like immunity from harm would attend the second.
The
previous escape was doubtless owing to some slight,
though unaccountable,
modification in the rate of motion;
but whether the inhabitants of the earth
had fared so fortunately,
was a question that had still to be determined.
The day following Servadac's return, he and the count and
Lieutenant
Procope met by agreement in the cave, formally to discuss
what would be the
most advisable method of proceeding under
their present prospects. Ben
Zoof was, as a matter of course,
allowed to be present, and Professor Rosette
had been asked to attend;
but he declined on the plea of taking no interest
in the matter.
Indeed, the disappearance of his moon had utterly disconcerted
him,
and the probability that he should soon lose his comet also,
plunged
him into an excess of grief which he preferred to
bear in solitude.
Although the barrier of cool reserve was secretly increasing
between the
captain and the count, they scrupulously concealed
any outward token of their
inner feelings, and without any personal
bias applied their best energies to
the discussion of the question
which was of such mutual, nay, of such
universal interest.
Servadac was the first to speak. "In fifty-one days, if Professor
Rosette
has made no error in his calculations, there is to be a
recurrence
of collision between this comet and the earth. The inquiry
that we
have now to make is whether we are prepared for the coming
shock.
I ask myself, and I ask you, whether it is in our power, by any
means,
to avert the evil consequences that are only too likely to
follow?"
Count Timascheff, in a voice that seemed to thrill with solemnity,
said:
"In such events we are at the disposal of an over-ruling
Providence;
human precautions cannot sway the Divine will."
"But with the most profound reverence for the will of Providence,"
replied
the captain, "I beg to submit that it is our duty to devise
whatever means we
can to escape the threatening mischief.
Heaven helps them that help
themselves."
"And what means have you to suggest, may I ask?" said the count,
with a
faint accent of satire.
Servadac was forced to acknowledge that nothing tangible had
hitherto
presented itself to his mind.
"I don't want to intrude," observed Ben Zoof, "but I don't understand
why
such learned gentlemen as you cannot make the comet go where you
want it to
go."
"You are mistaken, Ben Zoof, about our learning," said the captain;
"even
Professor Rosette, with all his learning, has not a shadow of power
to
prevent the comet and the earth from knocking against each other."
"Then I cannot see what is the use of all this learning,"
the orderly
replied.
"One great use of learning," said Count Timascheff
with a smile, "is to
make us know our own ignorance."
While this conversation had been going on, Lieutenant Procope
had been
sitting in thoughtful silence. Looking up, he now said,
"Incident to
this expected shock, there may be a variety of dangers.
If, gentlemen, you
will allow me, I will enumerate them;
and we shall, perhaps, by taking them
_seriatim_, be in a better
position to judge whether we can successfully
grapple with them,
or in any way mitigate their consequences."
There was a general attitude of attention. It was surprising
how
calmly they proceeded to discuss the circumstances that looked
so threatening
and ominous.
"First of all," resumed the lieutenant, "we will specify the different
ways
in which the shock may happen."
"And the prime fact to be remembered," interposed Servadac,
"is that the
combined velocity of the two bodies will be about
21,000 miles an hour."
"Express speed, and no mistake!" muttered Ben Zoof.
"Just so," assented Procope. "Now, the two bodies may impinge
either
directly or obliquely. If the impact is sufficiently
oblique,
Gallia may do precisely what she did before: she may graze the
earth;
she may, or she may not, carry off a portion of the
earth's
atmosphere and substance, and so she may float away again into
space;
but her orbit would undoubtedly be deranged, and if we survive
the
shock, we shall have small chance of ever returning to the world
of our
fellow-creatures."
"Professor Rosette, I suppose," Ben Zoof remarked, "would pretty soon
find
out all about that."
"But we will leave this hypothesis," said the lieutenant; "our
own
experience has sufficiently shown us its advantages and its
disadvantages.
We will proceed to consider the infinitely more serious
alternative of
direct impact; of a shock that would hurl the comet straight
on to the earth,
to which it would become attached."
"A great wart upon her face!" said Ben Zoof, laughing.
The captain held up his finger to his orderly, making him understand
that
he should hold his tongue.
"It is, I presume, to be taken for granted," continued Lieutenant
Procope,
"that the mass of the earth is comparatively so large that, in the
event
of a direct collision, her own motion would not be sensibly
retarded,
and that she would carry the comet along with her, as part of
herself."
"Very little question of that, I should think," said Servadac.
"Well, then," the lieutenant went on, "what part of this comet
of ours
will be the part to come into collision with the earth?
It may be the
equator, where we are; it may be at the exactly
opposite point, at our
antipodes; or it may be at either pole.
In any case, it seems hard to foresee
whence there is to come
the faintest chance of deliverance."
"Is the case so desperate?" asked Servadac.
"I will tell you why it seems so. If the side of the comet on which
we
are resident impinges on the earth, it stands to reason that we must
be
crushed to atoms by the violence of the concussion."
"Regular mincemeat!" said Ben Zoof, whom no admonitions could
quite reduce
to silence.
"And if," said the lieutenant, after a moment's pause, and the
slightest
possible frown at the interruption--"and if the collision should
occur
at our antipodes, the sudden check to the velocity of the
comet
would be quite equivalent to a shock _in situ_; and, another
thing,
we should run the risk of being suffocated, for all our
comet's
atmosphere would be assimilated with the terrestrial atmosphere, and
we,
supposing we were not dashed to atoms, should be left as it were
upon
the summit of an enormous mountain (for such to all intents and
purposes
Gallia would be), 450 miles above the level of the surface of the
globe,
without a particle of air to breathe."
"But would not our chances of escape be considerably better,"
asked Count
Timascheff, "in the event of either of the comet's
poles being the point of
contact?"
"Taking the combined velocity into account," answered the lieutenant,
"I
confess that I fear the violence of the shock will be too great
to permit our
destruction to be averted."
A general silence ensued, which was broken by the lieutenant
himself.
"Even if none of these contingencies occur in the way we have
contemplated,
I am driven to the suspicion that we shall be burnt alive."
"Burnt alive!" they all exclaimed in a chorus of horror.
"Yes. If the deductions of modern science be true, the speed
of the
comet, when suddenly checked, will be transmuted into heat,
and that heat
will be so intense that the temperature of the comet
will be raised to some
millions of degrees."
No one having anything definite to allege in reply to
Lieutenant Procope's
forebodings, they all relapsed into silence.
Presently Ben Zoof asked whether
it was not possible for the comet
to fall into the middle of the
Atlantic.
Procope shook his head. "Even so, we should only be adding the
fate
of drowning to the list of our other perils."
"Then, as I understand," said Captain Servadac,
"in whatever way or in
whatever place the concussion occurs,
we must be either crushed, suffocated,
roasted, or drowned.
Is that your conclusion, lieutenant?"
"I confess I see no other alternative," answered Procope, calmly.
"But isn't there another thing to be done?" said Ben Zoof.
"What do you mean?" his master asked.
"Why, to get off the comet before the shock comes."
"How could you get off Gallia?"
"That I can't say," replied the orderly.
"I am not sure that that could not be accomplished," said the lieutenant.
All eyes in a moment were riveted upon him, as, with his head
resting on
his hands, he was manifestly cogitating a new idea.
"Yes, I think it could be
accomplished," he repeated.
"The project may appear extravagant, but I do not
know why it
should be impossible. Ben Zoof has hit the right nail on
the head;
we must try and leave Gallia before the shock."
"Leave Gallia! How?" said Count Timascheff.
The lieutenant did not at once reply. He continued pondering for a
time,
and at last said, slowly and distinctly, "By making a balloon!"
Servadac's heart sank.
"A balloon!" he exclaimed. "Out of the question! Balloons
are
exploded things. You hardly find them in novels. Balloon,
indeed!"
"Listen to me," replied Procope. "Perhaps I can convince you that
my
idea is not so chimerical as you imagine." And, knitting his
brow,
he proceeded to establish the feasibility of his plan.
"If we can
ascertain the precise moment when the shock is to happen,
and can succeed in
launching ourselves a sufficient time
beforehand into Gallia's atmosphere, I
believe it will transpire
that this atmosphere will amalgamate with that of
the earth,
and that a balloon whirled along by the combined velocity
would
glide into the mingled atmosphere and remain suspended in
mid-air
until the shock of the collision is overpast."
Count Timascheff reflected for a minute, and said, "I think,
lieutenant, I
understand your project. The scheme seems tenable;
and I shall be ready
to co-operate with you, to the best of my power,
in putting it into
execution."
"Only, remember," continued Procope, "there are many chances to one
against
our success. One instant's obstruction and stoppage in our
passage, and our
balloon is burnt to ashes. Still, reluctant as I am to
acknowledge it,
I confess that I feel our sole hope of safety rests in our
getting free
from this comet."
"If the chances were ten thousand to one against us,"
said Servadac, "I
think the attempt ought to be made."
"But have we hydrogen enough to inflate a balloon?" asked the count.
"Hot air will be all that we shall require," the lieutenant answered;
"we
are only contemplating about an hour's journey."
"Ah, a fire-balloon! A montgolfier!" cried Servadac. "But what are
you
going to do for a casing?"
"I have thought of that. We must cut it out of the sails of the
_Dobryna_;
they are both light and strong," rejoined the lieutenant.
Count
Timascheff complimented the lieutenant upon his ingenuity,
and Ben Zoof could
not resist bringing the meeting to a conclusion
by a ringing cheer.
Truly daring was the plan of which Lieutenant Procope had thus
become the
originator; but the very existence of them all
was at stake, and the design
must be executed resolutely.
For the success of the enterprise it was
absolutely necessary to know,
almost to a minute, the precise time at which
the collision would occur,
and Captain Servadac undertook the task, by gentle
means or by stern,
of extracting the secret from the professor.
To Lieutenant Procope himself was entrusted the superintendence of
the
construction of the montgolfier, and the work was begun at once.
It was to be
large enough to carry the whole of the twenty-three residents
in the volcano,
and, in order to provide the means of floating aloft
long enough to give time
for selecting a proper place for descent,
the lieutenant was anxious to make
it carry enough hay or straw
to maintain combustion for a while, and keep up
the necessary supply
of heated air.
The sails of the _Dobryna_, which had all been carefully
stowed away in
the Hive, were of a texture unusually close,
and quite capable of being made
airtight by means of a varnish,
the ingredients of which were rummaged out of
the promiscuous stores
of the tartan. The lieutenant himself traced out
the pattern
and cut out the strips, and all hands were employed in
seaming
them together. It was hardly the work for little
fingers,
but Nina persisted in accomplishing her own share of it.
The
Russians were quite at home at occupation of this sort,
and having initiated
the Spaniards into its mysteries,
the task of joining together the casing was
soon complete.
Isaac Hakkabut and the professor were the only two members
of
the community who took no part in this somewhat tedious proceeding.
A month passed away, but Servadac found no opportunity of
getting at the
information he had pledged himself to gain.
On the sole occasion when he had
ventured to broach the subject
with the astronomer, he had received for
answer that as there
was no hurry to get back to the earth, there need be no
concern
about any dangers of transit.
Indeed, as time passed on, the professor seemed to become
more and more
inaccessible. A pleasant temperature enabled
him to live entirely in
his observatory, from which intruders
were rigidly shut out. But
Servadac bided his time.
He grew more and more impressed with the importance
of finding
out the exact moment at which the impact would take place,
but
was content to wait for a promising opportunity to put any
fresh questions on
the subject to the too reticent astronomer.
Meanwhile, the earth's disc was daily increasing in magnitude;
the comet
traveled 50,000,000 leagues during the month,
at the close of which it was
not more than 78,000,000 leagues
from the sun.
A thaw had now fairly set in. The breaking up of the frozen
ocean
was a magnificent spectacle, and "the great voice of the sea,"
as
the whalers graphically describe it, was heard in all its solemnity.
Little
streams of water began to trickle down the declivities of
the mountain and
along the shelving shore, only to be transformed,
as the melting of the snow
continued, into torrents or cascades.
Light vapors gathered on the horizon,
and clouds were formed and
carried rapidly along by breezes to which the
Gallian atmosphere
had long been unaccustomed. All these were doubtless
but the prelude
to atmospheric disturbances of a more startling
character;
but as indications of returning spring, they were greeted with
a
welcome which no apprehensions for the future could prevent being
glad
and hearty.
A double disaster was the inevitable consequence of the thaw.
Both the
schooner and the tartan were entirely destroyed.
The basement of the icy
pedestal on which the ships had been upheaved
was gradually undermined, like
the icebergs of the Arctic Ocean,
by warm currents of water, and on the night
of the 12th the huge
block collapsed _en masse_, so that on the following
morning nothing
remained of the _Dobryna_ and the _Hansa_ except the
fragments
scattered on the shore.
Although certainly expected, the catastrophe could not fail
to cause a
sense of general depression. Well-nigh one of their
last ties to Mother
Earth had been broken; the ships were gone,
and they had only a balloon to
replace them!
To describe Isaac Hakkabut's rage at the destruction of the
tartan would
be impossible. His oaths were simply dreadful;
his imprecations on the
accursed race were full of wrath.
He swore that Servadac and his people were
responsible for his loss;
he vowed that they should be sued and made to pay
him damages;
he asserted that he had been brought from Gourbi Island
only
to be plundered; in fact, he became so intolerably abusive,
that
Servadac threatened to put him into irons unless he conducted
himself
properly; whereupon the Jew, finding that the captain was
in earnest, and
would not hesitate to carry the threat into effect,
was fain to hold his
tongue, and slunk back into his dim hole.
By the 14th the balloon was finished, and, carefully sewn and
well
varnished as it had been, it was really a very substantial
structure.
It was covered with a network that had been made from the light
rigging
of the yacht, and the car, composed of wicker-work that had
formed
partitions in the hold of the _Hansa_, was quite commodious
enough
to hold the twenty-three passengers it was intended to convey.
No
thought had been bestowed upon comfort or convenience, as the ascent
was to
last for so short a time, merely long enough for making
the transit from
atmosphere to atmosphere.
The necessity was becoming more and more urgent to get at the true
hour of
the approaching contact, but the professor seemed to grow
more obstinate than
ever in his resolution to keep his secret.
On the 15th the comet crossed the orbit of Mars, at the safe
distance of
56,000,000 leagues; but during that night the community
thought that their
last hour had taken them unawares.
The volcano rocked and trernbled with the
convulsions
of internal disturbance, and Servadac and his
companions,
convinced that the mountain was doomed to some sudden
disruption,
rushed into the open air.
The first object that caught their attention as they
emerged upon the open
rocks was the unfortunate professor,
who was scrambling down the
mountain-side, piteously displaying
a fragment of his shattered
telescope.
It was no time for condolence.
A new marvel arrested every eye. A fresh satellite, in the gloom of
night,
was shining conspicuously before them.
That satellite was a part of Gallia itself!
By the expansive action of the inner heat, Gallia, like Gambart's
comet,
had been severed in twain; an enormous fragment had been
detached
and launched into space!
The fragment included Ceuta and Gibraltar, with the two English garrisons!
CHAPTER XVII
THE VENTURE MADE
What would be the consequences of this sudden and complete
disruption,
Servadac and his people hardly dared to think.
The first change that came under their observation was the rapidity of
the
sun's appearances and disappearances, forcing them to the conviction
that
although the comet still rotated on its axis from east to west,
yet the
period of its rotation had been diminished by about one-half.
Only six hours
instead of twelve elapsed between sunrise and sunrise;
three hours after
rising in the west the sun was sinking again in the east.
"We are coming to something!" exclaimed Servadac. "We have got
a
year of something like 2,880 days."
"I shouldn't think it would be an easy matter to find saints enough
for
such a calendar as that!" said Ben Zoof.
Servadac laughed, and remarked that they should have the professor
talking
about the 238th of June, and the 325th of December.
It soon became evident that the detached portion was not revolving
round
the comet, but was gradually retreating into space.
Whether it had carried
with it any portion of atmosphere,
whether it possessed any other condition
for supporting life,
and whether it was likely ever again to approach to the
earth,
were all questions that there were no means of determining.
For
themselves the all-important problem was--what effect would
the rending
asunder of the comet have upon its rate of progress?
and as they were already
conscious of a further increase
of muscular power, and a fresh diminution of
specific gravity,
Servadac and his associates could not but wonder
whether
the alteration in the mass of the comet would not result in
its
missing the expected coincidence with the earth altogether.
Although he professed himself incompetent to pronounce a decided
opinion,
Lieutenant Procope manifestly inclined to the belief that no
alteration
would ensue in the rate of Gallia's velocity; but Rosette, no
doubt,
could answer the question directly, and the time had now arrived in
which
he must be compelled to divulge the precise moment of collision.
But the professor was in the worst of tempers. Generally taciturn and
morose,
he was more than usually uncivil whenever any one ventured to speak
to him.
The loss of his telescope had doubtless a great deal to do with his
ill-humor;
but the captain drew the most favorable conclusions from
Rosette's
continued irritation. Had the comet been in any way projected
from
its course, so as to be likely to fail in coming into contact with the
earth,
the professor would have been quite unable to conceal his
satisfaction.
But they required to know more than the general truth, and felt
that they
had no time to lose in getting at the exact details.
The opportunity that was wanted soon came.
On the 18th, Rosette was overheard in furious altercation
with Ben
Zoof. The orderly had been taunting
the astronomer with the mutilation
of his little comet.
A fine thing, he said, to split in two like a child's
toy.
It had cracked like a dry nut; and mightn't one as well live
upon an
exploding bomb?--with much more to the same effect.
The professor, by way of
retaliation, had commenced sneering
at the "prodigious" mountain of
Montmartre, and the dispute
was beginning to look serious when Servadac
entered.
Thinking he could turn the wrangling to some good account,
so as to arrive
at the information he was so anxiously seeking,
the captain pretended to
espouse the views of his orderly;
he consequently brought upon himself the
full force of
the professor's wrath.
Rosette's language became more and more violent, till Servadac,
feigning
to be provoked beyond endurance, cried:
"You forget, sir, that you are addressing the Governor-General of Gallia."
"Governor-General! humbug!" roared Rosette. "Gallia is my comet!"
"I deny it," said Servadac. "Gallia has lost its chance of
getting
back to the earth. Gallia has nothing to do with you.
Gallia is mine;
and you must submit to the government which I
please to ordain."
"And who told you that Gallia is not going back to the earth?"
asked the
professor, with a look of withering scorn.
"Why, isn't her mass diminished? Isn't she split in half?
Isn't her
velocity all altered?" demanded the captain.
"And pray who told you this?" again said the professor,
with a sneer.
"Everybody. Everybody knows it, of course," replied Servadac.
"Everybody is very clever. And you always were a very clever scholar
too.
We remember that of old, don't we?"
"Sir!"
"You nearly mastered the first elements of science, didn't you?"
"Sir!"
"A credit to your class!"
"Hold your tongue, sir!" bellowed the captain again, as if his
anger was
uncontrollable.
"Not I," said the professor.
" Hold your tongue!" repeated Servadac.
"Just because the mass is altered you think the velocity is altered?"
"Hold your tongue!" cried the captain, louder than ever.
"What has mass to do with the orbit? Of how many comets do you know the
mass,
and yet you know their movements? Ignorance!" shouted
Rosette.
"Insolence!" retorted Servadac.
Ben Zoof, really thinking that his master was angry, made a
threatening
movement towards the professor.
"Touch me if you dare!" screamed Rosette, drawing himself up
to the
fullest height his diminutive figure would allow.
"You shall answer for your
conduct before a court of justice!"
"Where? On Gallia?" asked the captain.
"No; on the earth."
"The earth! Pshaw! You know we shall never get there;
our
velocity is changed."
"On the earth," repeated the professor, with decision.
"Trash!" cried Ben Zoof. "The earth will be too far off!"
"Not too far off for us to come across her orbit at 42 minutes
and 35.6
seconds past two o'clock on the morning of this coming
1st of January."
"Thanks, my dear professor--many thanks. You have given me all
the
information I required;" and, with a low bow and a gracious smile,
the
captain withdrew. The orderly made an equally polite bow,
and followed
his master. The professor, completely nonplussed,
was left alone.
Thirteen days, then--twenty-six of the original Gallian days, fifty-two
of
the present--was all the time for preparation that now remained.
Every
preliminary arrangement was hurried on with the greatest earnestness.
There was a general eagerness to be quit of Gallia. Indifferent
to
the dangers that must necessarily attend a balloon ascent under
such
unparalleled circumstances, and heedless of Lieutenant
Procope's
warning that the slightest check in their progress would
result
in instantaneous combustion, they all seemed to conclude that
it
must be the simplest thing possible to glide from one atmosphere
to
another, so that they were quite sanguine as to the successful
issue of their
enterprise. Captain Servadac made a point of showing
himself quite
enthusiastic in his anticipations, and to Ben Zoof
the going up in a balloon
was the supreme height of his ambition.
The count and the lieutenant, of
colder and less demonstrative temperament,
alike seemed to realize the
possible perils of the undertaking,
but even they were determined to put a
bold face upon every difficulty.
The sea had now become navigable, and three voyages were made to Gourbi
Island
in the steam launch, consuming the last of their little reserve of
coal.
The first voyage had been made by Servadac with several of the
sailors.
They found the gourbi and the adjacent building quite
uninjured
by the severity of the winter; numbers of little
rivulets
intersected the pasture-land; new plants were springing up
under
the influence of the equatorial sun, and the luxuriant foliage
was
tenanted by the birds which had flown back from the volcano.
Summer had
almost abruptly succeeded to winter, and the days,
though only three hours
long, were intensely hot.
Another of the voyages to the island had been to collect the dry
grass and
straw which was necessary for inflating the balloon.
Had the balloon been
less cumbersome it would have been conveyed
to the island, whence the start
would have been effected;
but as it was, it was more convenient to bring the
combustible
material to the balloon.
The last of the coal having been consumed, the fragments
of the
shipwrecked vessels had to be used day by day for fuel.
Hakkabut began making
a great hubbub when he found that they were
burning some of the spars of the
_Hansa_; but he was effectually
silenced by Ben Zoof, who told him that if he
made any more fuss,
he should be compelled to pay 50,000 francs for a
balloon-ticket,
or else he should be left behind.
By Christmas Day everything was in readiness for immediate departure.
The
festival was observed with a solemnity still more marked than
the anniversary
of the preceding year. Every one looked forward
to spending New Year's
Day in another sphere altogether, and Ben Zoof
had already promised Pablo and
Nina all sorts of New Year's gifts.
It may seem strange, but the nearer the critical moment approached,
the
less Hector Servadac and Count Timascheff had to say to each
other on the
subject. Their mutual reserve became more apparent;
the experiences of
the last two years were fading from their minds
like a dream; and the fair
image that had been the cause of their
original rivalry was ever rising, as a
vision, between them.
The captain's thoughts began to turn to his unfinished rondo;
in his
leisure moments, rhymes suitable and unsuitable,
possible and impossible,
were perpetually jingling in his imagination.
He labored under the conviction
that he had a work of genius to complete.
A poet he had left the earth, and a
poet he must return.
Count Timascheff's desire to return to the world was quite
equaled by
Lieutenant Procope's. The Russian sailors'
only thought was to follow their
master, wherever he went.
The Spaniards, though they would have been
unconcerned to know
that they were to remain upon Gallia, were nevertheless
looking
forward with some degree of pleasure to revisiting the plains
of
Andalusia; and Nina and Pablo were only too delighted
at the prospect of
accompanying their kind protectors on any
fresh excursion whatever.
The only malcontent was Palmyrin Rosette. Day and night he persevered
in his
astronomical pursuits, declared his intention of never abandoning his
comet,
and swore positively that nothing should induce him to set foot in the
car
of the balloon.
The misfortune that had befallen his telescope was a never-ending theme
of
complaint; and just now, when Gallia was entering the narrow zone
of
shooting-stars, and new discoveries might have been within his reach,
his
loss made him more inconsolable than ever. In sheer desperation,
he
endeavored to increase the intensity of his vision by applying to his
eyes
some belladonna which he found in the _Dobryna's_ medicine chest;
with heroic
fortitude he endured the tortures of the experiment,
and gazed up into the
sky until he was nearly blind. But all in vain;
not a single fresh
discovery rewarded his sufferings.
No one was quite exempt from the feverish excitement which
prevailed
during the last days of December. Lieutenant Procope
superintended his
final arrangements. The two low masts of the schooner
had been erected
firmly on the shore, and formed supports for the
montgolfier, which had been
duly covered with the netting, and was ready at
any moment to be inflated.
The car was close at hand. Some inflated
skins had been attached
to its sides, so that the balloon might float for a
time, in the event
of its descending in the sea at a short distance from the
shore.
If unfortunately, it should come down in mid-ocean, nothing but the
happy
chance of some passing vessel could save them all from the certain
fate
of being drowned.
The 31st came. Twenty-four hours hence and the balloon,
with its
large living freight, would be high in the air.
The atmosphere was less
buoyant than that of the earth,
but no difficulty in ascending was to be
apprehended.
Gallia was now within 96,000,000 miles of the sun, consequently not
much
more than 4,000,000 miles from the earth; and this interval
was being
diminished at the rate of nearly 208,000 miles an hour,
the speed of the
earth being about 70,000 miles, that of the comet
being little less than
138,000 miles an hour.
It was determined to make the start at two o'clock, three-quarters
of an
hour, or, to speak correctly 42 minutes 35.6 seconds,
before the time
predicted by the professor as the instant of collision.
The modified rotation
of the comet caused it to be daylight
at the time.
An hour previously the balloon was inflated with perfect success,
and the
car was securely attached to the network.
It only awaited the stowage of the
passengers.
Isaac Hakkabut was the first to take his place in the car. But
scarcely
had he done so, when Servadac noticed that his waist was
encompassed
by an enormous girdle that bulged out to a very extraordinary
extent.
"What's all this, Hakkabut?" he asked.
"It's only my little bit of money, your Excellency; my modest little
fortune--
a mere bagatelle," said the Jew.
"And what may your little fortune weigh?" inquired the captain.
"Only about sixty-six pounds!" said Isaac.
"Sixty-six pounds!" cried Servadac. "We haven't reckoned for this."
"Merciful heavens!" began the Jew.
"Sixty-six pounds!" repeated Servadac. "We can hardly carry
ourselves;
we can't have any dead weight here. Pitch it out, man, pitch
it out!"
"God of Israel!" whined Hakkabut.
"Out with it, I say!" cried Servadac.
"What, all my money, which I have saved so long, and toiled for so hard?"
"It can't be helped," said the captain, unmoved.
"Oh, your Excellency!" cried the Jew.
"Now, old Nicodemus, listen to me," interposed Ben Zoof;
"you just get rid
of that pouch of yours, or we will get rid of you.
Take your choice.
Quick, or out you go!"
The avaricious old man was found to value his life above his money;
he
made a lamentable outcry about it, but he unfastened his girdle at last,
and
put it out of the car.
Very different was the case with Palmyrin Rosette. He avowed over
and
over again his intention of never quitting the nucleus of his
comet.
Why should he trust himself to a balloon, that would blaze
up like
a piece of paper? Why should he leave the comet?
Why should he not go
once again upon its surface into the far-off
realms of space?
His volubility was brought to a sudden check by Servadac's bidding
two of
the sailors, without more ado, to take him in their arms
and put him quietly
down at the bottom of the car.
To the great regret of their owners, the two horses and Nina's pet
goat
were obliged to be left behind. The only creature for which there
was found
a place was the carrier-pigeon that had brought the professor's
message
to the Hive. Servadac thought it might probably be of service
in carrying
some communication to the earth.
When every one, except the captain and his orderly, had taken their
places,
Servadac said, "Get in, Ben Zoof."
"After you, sir," said Ben Zoof, respectfully.
"No, no!" insisted Servadac; "the captain must be the last to leave the ship!"
A moment's hesitation and the orderly clambered over the side of the
car.
Servadac followed. The cords were cut. The balloon rose with
stately
calmness into the air.
CHAPTER XVIII
SUSPENSE
When the balloon had reached an elevation of about 2,500
yards,
Lieutenant Procope determined to maintain it at that level.
A
wire-work stove, suspended below the casing, and filled
with lighted hay,
served to keep the air in the interior at
a proper temperature.
Beneath their feet was extended the basin of the
Gallian Sea. An
inconsiderable speck to the north marked
the site of Gourbi Island.
Ceuta and Gibraltar, which might
have been expected in the west, had utterly
disappeared.
On the south rose the volcano, the extremity of the
promontory
that jutted out from the continent that formed the framework
of
the sea; whilst in every direction the strange soil,
with its commixture of
tellurium and gold, gleamed under the sun's
rays with a perpetual
iridescence.
Apparently rising with them in their ascent, the horizon was
well-defined.
The sky above them was perfectly clear; but away
in the northwest, in
opposition to the sun, floated a new sphere,
so small that it could not be an
asteroid, but like a dim meteor.
It was the fragment that the internal
convulsion had rent from
the surface of the comet, and which was now many
thousands of
leagues away, pursuing the new orbit into which it had been
projected.
During the hours of daylight it was far from distinct, but
after
nightfall it would assume a definite luster.
The object, however, of supreme interest was the great expanse
of the
terrestrial disc, which was rapidly drawing down obliquely
towards
them. It totally eclipsed an enormous portion of the
firmament above,
and approaching with an ever-increasing velocity,
was now within half its
average distance from the moon.
So close was it, that the two poles could not
be embraced in one focus.
Irregular patches of greater or less brilliancy
alternated on
its surface, the brighter betokening the continents, the
more
somber indicating the oceans that absorbed the solar rays.
Above,
there were broad white bands, darkened on the side averted
from the sun,
exhibiting a slow but unintermittent movement;
these were the vapors that
pervaded the terrestrial atmosphere.
But as the aeronauts were being hurried on at a speed of 70 miles a
second,
this vague aspect of the earth soon developed itself into definite
outlines.
Mountains and plains were no longer confused, the distinction
between
sea and shore was more plainly identified, and instead of
being,
as it were, depicted on a map, the surface of the earth appeared as
though
modelled in relief.
Twenty-seven minutes past two, and Gallia is only 72,000 miles
from the
terrestrial sphere; quicker and quicker is the velocity;
ten minutes later,
and they are only 36,000 miles apart!
The whole configuration of the earth is clear.
"Europe! Russia! France!" shout Procope, the count, and
Servadac,
almost in a breath.
And they are not mistaken. The eastern hemisphere lies before
them
in the full blaze of light, and there is no possibility of error
in
distinguishing continent from continent.
The surprise only kindled their emotion to yet keener intensity,
and it
would be hard to describe the excitement with which they gazed
at the
panorama that was before them. The crisis of peril was close
at hand,
but imagination overleaped all consideration of danger;
and everything was
absorbed in the one idea that they were again
within reach of that circle of
humanity from which they had supposed
themselves severed forever.
And, truly, if they could have paused to study it, that panorama of
the
states of Europe which was outstretched before their eyes, was
conspicuous
for the fantastic resemblances with which Nature on the one
hand,
and international relations on the other, have associated
them.
There was England, marching like some stately dame towards the
east,
trailing her ample skirts and coroneted with the cluster of
her
little islets; Sweden and Norway, with their bristling spine
of
mountains, seemed like a splendid lion eager to spring down from
the bosom of
the ice-bound north; Russia, a gigantic polar bear,
stood with its head
towards Asia, its left paw resting upon Turkey,
its right upon Mount
Caucasus; Austria resembled a huge cat curled
up and sleeping a watchful
sleep; Spain, with Portugal as a pennant,
like an unfurled banner, floated
from the extremity of the continent;
Turkey, like an insolent cock, appeared
to clutch the shores of Asia
with the one claw, and the land of Greece with
the other; Italy, as it
were a foot and leg encased in a tight-fitting boot,
was juggling deftly
with the islands of Sicily, Sardinia, and Corsica;
Prussia, a formidable
hatchet imbedded in the heart of Germany, its edge just
grazing
the frontiers of France; whilst France itself suggested a
vigorous
torso with Paris at its breast.
All at once Ben Zoof breaks the silence: "Montmartre! I see
Montmartre!"
And, smile at the absurdity as others might, nothing could
induce the worthy
orderly to surrender his belief that he could actually make
out the features
of his beloved home.
The only individual whose soul seemed unstirred by the approaching earth
was
Palmyrin Rosette. Leaning over the side of the car, he kept his
eyes fixed
upon the abandoned comet, now floating about a mile and a half
below him,
bright in the general irradiation which was flooding the
surrounding space.
Chronometer in hand, Lieutenant Procope stood marking the minutes
and
seconds as they fled; and the stillness which had once again
fallen upon them
all was only broken by his order to replenish
the stove, that the montgolfier
might retain its necessary level.
Servadac and the count continued to gaze
upon the earth with an
eagerness that almost amounted to awe. The
balloon was slightly
in the rear of Gallia, a circumstance that augured
somewhat favorably,
because it might be presumed that if the comet preceded
the balloon
in its contact with the earth, there would be a break in the
suddenness
of transfer from one atmosphere to the other.
The next question of anxiety was, where would the balloon alight?
If upon
_terra firma_, would it be in a place where adequate resources
for safety
would be at hand? If upon the ocean, would any passing
vessel be within
hail to rescue them from their critical position?
Truly, as the count
observed to his comrades, none but a Divine Pilot
could steer them now.
"Forty-two minutes past!" said the lieutenant, and his voice seemed
to
thrill through the silence of expectation.
There were not 20,000 miles between the comet and the earth!
The calculated time of impact was 2 hours 47 minutes 35.6 seconds.
Five
minutes more and collision must ensue!
But was it so? Just at this moment, Lieutenant Procope observed
that
the comet deviated sensibly in an oblique course.
Was it possible that after
all collision would not occur?
The deviation, however, was not great; it did not justify any
anticipation
that Gallia would merely graze the earth, as it had done
before;
it left it certain that the two bodies would inevitably impinge.
"No doubt," said Ben Zoof, "this time we shall stick together."
Another thought occurred. Was it not only too likely that,
in the
fusion of the two atmospheres, the balloon itself,
in which they were being
conveyed, would be rent into ribbons,
and every one of its passengers hurled
into destruction,
so that not a Gallian should survive to tell the tale
of
their strange peregrinations?
Moments were precious; but Hector Servadac resolved that he would adopt
a
device to secure that at least some record of their excursion in
solar
distances should survive themselves.
Tearing a leaf from his note-book, he wrote down the name of the
comet,
the list of the fragments of the earth it had carried off,
the
names of his companions, and the date of the comet's aphelion;
and having
subscribed it with his signature, turned to Nina and told
her he must have
the carrier-pigeon which was nestling in her bosom.
The child's eyes filled with tears; she did not say a word,
but imprinting
a kiss upon its soft plumage, she surrendered it
at once, and the message was
hurriedly fastened to its neck.
The bird wheeled round and round in a few
circles that widened
in their diameter, and quickly sunk to an altitude in
the comet's
atmosphere much inferior to the balloon.
Some minutes more were thus consumed and the interval of distance
was
reduced to less than 8,000 miles.
The velocity became inconceivably great, but the increased rate of
motion
was in no way perceptible; there was nothing to disturb the
equilibrium
of the car in which they were making their aerial adventure.
"Forty-six minutes!" announced the lieutenant.
The glowing expanse of the earth's disc seemed like a vast funnel,
yawning
to receive the comet and its atmosphere, balloon and all,
into its open
mouth.
"Forty-seven!" cried Procope.
There was half a minute yet. A thrill ran through every vein.
A
vibration quivered through the atmosphere. The montgolfier,
elongated
to its utmost stretch, was manifestly being sucked into a vortex.
Every
passenger in the quivering car involuntarily clung spasmodically
to its
sides, and as the two atmospheres amalgamated, clouds accumulated
in heavy
masses, involving all around in dense obscurity, while flashes
of lurid flame
threw a weird glimmer on the scene.
In a mystery every one found himself upon the earth again.
They could not
explain it, but here they were once more
upon terrestrial soil; in a swoon
they had left the earth,
and in a similar swoon they had come back!
Of the balloon not a vestige remained, and contrary to previous
computation,
the comet had merely grazed the earth, and was traversing the
regions
of space, again far away!
CHAPTER XIX
BACK AGAIN
"In Algeria, captain?"
"Yes, Ben Zoof, in Algeria; and not far from Mostaganem." Such
were
the first words which, after their return to consciousness,
were
exchanged between Servadac and his orderly.
They had resided so long in the province that they could not for a
moment
be mistaken as to their whereabouts, and although they were
incapable of
clearing up the mysteries that shrouded the miracle,
yet they were convinced
at the first glance that they had been returned
to the earth at the very
identical spot where they had quitted it.
In fact, they were scarcely more than a mile from Mostaganem,
and in the
course of an hour, when they had all recovered from
the bewilderment
occasioned by the shock, they started off in a body
and made their way to the
town. It was a matter of extreme surprise
to find no symptom of the
least excitement anywhere as they went along.
The population was perfectly
calm; every one was pursuing his
ordinary avocation; the cattle were browsing
quietly upon the pastures
that were moist with the dew of an ordinary January
morning.
It was about eight o'clock; the sun was rising in the
east;
nothing could be noticed to indicate that any abnormal incident
had
either transpired or been expected by the inhabitants.
As to a collision with
a comet, there was not the faintest trace
of any such phenomenon crossing
men's minds, and awakening,
as it surely would, a panic little short of the
certified approach
of the millennium.
"Nobody expects us," said Servadac; "that is very certain."
"No, indeed," answered Ben Zoof, with a sigh; he was manifestly
disappointed
that his return to Mostaganem was not welcomed with a triumphal
reception.
They reached the Mascara gate. The first persons that Servadac
recognized
were the two friends that he had invited to be his seconds in the
duel
two years ago, the colonel of the 2nd Fusiliers and the captain
of
the 8th Artillery. In return to his somewhat hesitating
salutation,
the colonel greeted him heartily, "Ah! Servadac, old
fellow! is it you?"
"I, myself," said the captain.
"Where on earth have you been to all this time? In the name of
peace,
what have you been doing with yourself?"
"You would never believe me, colonel," answered Servadac, "if I
were to
tell you; so on that point I had better hold my tongue."
"Hang your mysteries!" said the colonel; "tell me, where have you been?"
"No, my friend, excuse me," replied Servadac; "but shake hands
with me in
earnest, that I may be sure I am not dreaming."
Hector Servadac had made up
his mind, and no amount of persuasion
could induce him to divulge his
incredible experiences.
Anxious to turn the subject, Servadac took the earliest opportunity of
asking,
"And what about Madame de L----?"
"Madame de L-----!" exclaimed the colonel, taking the words out of his
mouth;
"the lady is married long ago; you did not suppose that she was going
to wait
for you. 'Out of sight, out of mind,' you know."
"True," replied Servadac; and turning to the count he said,
"Do you hear
that? We shall not have to fight our duel after all."
"Most happy to be excused," rejoined the count. The rivals took
each
other by the hand, and were united henceforth in the bonds
of a sincere and
confiding friendship.
"An immense relief," said Servadac to himself, "that I have no occasion
to
finish that confounded rondo!"
It was agreed between the captain and the count that it would
be desirable
in every way to maintain the most rigid silence upon
the subject of the
inexplicable phenomena which had come within
their experience. It was
to them both a subject of the greatest
perplexity to find that the shores of
the Mediterranean had
undergone no change, but they coincided in the opinion
that it
was prudent to keep their bewilderment entirely to
themselves.
Nothing induced them to break their reserve.
The very next day the small community was broken up.
The _Dobryna's_ crew, with the count and the lieutenant, started for
Russia,
and the Spaniards, provided, by the count's liberality, with a
competency
that ensured them from want, were despatched to their native
shores.
The leave taking was accompanied by genuine tokens of regard and
goodwill.
For Isaac Hakkabut alone there was no feeling of regret.
Doubly ruined by
the loss of his tartan, and by the abandonment
of his fortune, he disappeared
entirely from the scene.
It is needless to say that no one troubled himself
to institute
a search after him, and, as Ben Zoof sententiously
remarked,
"Perhaps old Jehoram is making money in America by
exhibiting
himself as the latest arrival from a comet!"
But however great was the reserve which Captain Servadac might make
on his
part, nothing could induce Professor Rosette to conceal
his
experiences. In spite of the denial which astronomer after
astronomer
gave to the appearance of such a comet as Gallia at all,
and of its being
refused admission to the catalogue, he published
a voluminous treatise, not
only detailing his own adventures,
but setting forth, with the most elaborate
precision,
all the elements which settled its period and its
orbit.
Discussions arose in scientific circles; an overwhelming
majority
decided against the representations of the professor;
an unimportant minority
declared themselves in his favor,
and a pamphlet obtained some degree of
notice, ridiculing the whole
debate under the title of "The History of an
Hypothesis." In reply
to this impertinent criticism of his labors,
Rosette issued
a rejoinder full with the most vehement expressions of
indignation,
and reiterating his asseveration that a fragment of
Gibraltar
was still traversing the regions of space, carrying
thirteen
Englishmen upon its surface, and concluding by saying that it
was
the great disappointment of his life that he had not been
taken with
them.
Pablo and little Nina were adopted, the one by Servadac, the other
by the
count, and under the supervision of their guardians,
were well educated and
cared for. Some years later, Colonel,
no longer Captain, Servadac, his
hair slightly streaked with grey,
had the pleasure of seeing the handsome
young Spaniard united
in marriage to the Italian, now grown into a charming
girl,
upon whom the count bestowed an ample dowry; the young
people's
happiness in no way marred by the fact that they had not been
destined,
as once seemed likely, to be the Adam and Eve of a new world.
The career of the comet was ever a mystery which neither Servadac
nor his
orderly could eliminate from the regions of doubt.
Anyhow, they were firmer
and more confiding friends than ever.
One day, in the environs of Montmartre, where they were secure
from
eavesdroppers, Ben Zoof incidentally referred to the experiences
in the
depths of Nina's Hive; but stopped short and said,
"However, those things
never happened, sir, did they?"
His master could only reply, "Confound it, Ben Zoof! What is
a man
to believe?"